TRACTS FOR THE TIMES,
Nos. 67, 68, 69.
SCRIPTURAL VIEWS
OF
HOLY BAPTISM,
WITH AN
APPENDIX.
BY THE REV. E. B. PUSEY, B.D.
REGIUS PROFESSOR OF HEBREW, CANON OF CHRIST CHURCH,
AND LATE FELLOW OF ORIEL COLLEGE.
Since, Lord, to Thee,
A narrow way and little gate
Is all the passage; on my infancy
Thou didst lay hold, and antedate
My Faith in me.
O let me still
Write Thee Great God, and me a child.
Herbert's Holy Baptism.
LONDON:
PRINTED FOR J. G. & F. RIVINGTON,
ST. PAUL'S CHURCH YARD,
AND WATERLOO PLACE, PALL MALL.
1836.
LONDON:
GILBERT & RIVINGTON, PRINTERS,
ST. JOHN'S SQUARE.
PREFACE.
The following tracts having been written in some degree, as they were published, separately, it may, perhaps, contribute to clearness to state their object and their plan. Their immediate object was to aid in removing the perplexities of different individuals, who were harassed by the conflicting opinions, which in these last times, have existed on the subject of Holy Baptism. With one of these individuals my office had brought me into connection. My original purpose was rather to have given hints, which might aid others in thinking profitably upon the subject, than myself to have written at length. I wished to recall men, from their abstract way of looking upon the question as a subject of theological controversy, to their Saviour's feet, and to induce them to think (apart from modern systems) what His words, teachably considered, would lead to. For it is a fearful evil of theological controversy, that men accustom themselves to bandy about words of Holy Scripture, forgetting whose words they are.
When a text has been repeatedly and familiarly used in support of any doctrine, persons, on the one side or the other, involuntarily contract a habit of looking upon it in the abstract as a mere 'dictum probans;' they consider what the words in themselves may, or (as they think) need not, mean, leaving out of sight what they must mean in His mouth, who spoke them. And hence is produced an irreverent mode either of alleging or arguing against them; and most consequently of their weight,—that arising, namely, from the subduing influence of God's words, as such, upon the human soul, is lost. Any one, who has been engaged in religious discussion, will, probably, if he have been led frequently to discuss the same subject, have found himself alleging an accustomed text without an adequate feeling of its import, and been checked perhaps and chided, in the midst, by the greatness of some of the words, which he has taken into his mouth. Something of the same kind is observable in the pulpit. It requires so constant an effort in any degree to realize things spiritual, that even earnest-minded persons may be sometimes observed to speak there of truths the most awful, in a tone, which, if their own words were echoed to them, would startle and pain themselves. This is in fact simply the old observation on the tendency of familiarity with a subject to diminish our sense of its greatness.
Other causes have operated to diminish the force of Scripture-teaching upon the subject of Holy Baptism. It was intended, doubtless, that truth should be preserved upon earth by being transmitted; and this, with regard not only to the great sum of religion, and the main articles of the Faith, but the right understanding of Holy Scripture also. Hence, while all have been made capable of understanding truth, when proposed to them, few, comparatively, have been entrusted with the power of distinguishing for themselves between truth and error, otherwise than they have been taught. A spiritual mind, however limited, will see truth for itself, but it is only by having at the first faithfully followed guidance to that truth. This instinctive adherence, however, to an inherited system, although implanted in us for the maintenance of truth, may become almost equally subservient to the propagation of error. And God, in that mysterious dispensation whereby He makes the trials of the children to depend upon the character of the parents, and entrusts each generation with an awful control over the spiritual privileges of the succeeding, has annexed subsequent perplexity as a punishment for the admission of each new error. This is seen in the history of His Church, as well as of individuals. It is very remarkable to trace from how early a date much interpretation of the Scripture is derived; and that, where such interpretation has not been at all obvious, and so has probably been inherited: and, again, how, when any innovation has been introduced, it also acquires an authority from the personal character or talents of its author, and from authority, prescription; so that, henceforth, (unless the error be speedily suppressed) two systems are perpetuated in the Church, equally traditionary, but the one of late origin, the other ancient, and, until of late, universal. Thus, with regard to the main texts relating to Baptism, until the unhappy innovation of Zuingli, in the 16th century, the whole Church knew but of one sense belonging to them. The whole Church of God, from India to Britain, as expressing itself by the Fathers or its Liturgies, for fifteen centuries, took in one sense the words of our Redeemer, "Except a man be born again of water and the Spirit." But when a man arose, to whom circumstances, and talents, and zeal against error, gave extensive influence, and with a new theory of the Sacraments, introduced a new exposition of our Redeemer's words, thenceforth, a new path was formed; and this too having been tracked by men of great name, and trodden by others of deep piety, those who are ignorant of antiquity, or of the value of its universal agreement, are perplexed which to choose. They have now to decide between two beaten tracks, instead of following simply the footsteps of their fathers.
Under these circumstances, mere controversy, for the most part, does harm. Each party is persuaded of the truth of that system or exposition, which he has inherited, because he has inherited it, or because it has come to him from those whom he respects, or his own spiritual proficiency or usefulness has, as he imagines, become connected with it. Few can see, or even induce themselves to weigh an exposition contrary to that which they have received; and very few ought, or have been intended, so to do; unless indeed they have the weight of higher authority against them, as in cases where the Church having decided one way, individual teachers have instructed them in another.
Still, those who, under more popular names, are following the teaching of Zuingli, and, with Zuingli, explain away the force of their Saviour's words, are very far from meaning to be guilty of this irreverence. It is not because I think that they love not their Saviour, but because they love Him, and because I think that that love is in danger of being injured by the slight which modern systems put upon His ordinances and His words, that I have especially urged, (p. 16 sqq.) them to reconsider His words (St. John iii. 4), and the rejection of an explanation of those words, which they have inherited, but which seems to me in itself inconsistent with reverence for Him. I wished namely that they would ponder the bearing of His words "Except a man be born of water and the Spirit," apart from any modern systems, any temporary circumstances, any regard to consequences, not as a text in a theological controversy, but as uttered by Him, before whose mind the future history of His Church was open, and who was providing for her necessities. And since His Church has, from the very first, rested the doctrine of the heavenly birth in Baptism upon these His words, and has regarded that His gift as unreserved as His words are unlimited, surely we must think that if He had intended her to understand His words more restrainedly, He would Himself have limited them. As it is, He has given no hint, either that the peculiar privileges and powers of the Christian new-birth are bestowed ordinarily, without the "water," or are not bestowed with it.
The argument briefly is; He, by His Divine foreknowledge, must have known this, that His whole Church would so understand His words, and in His goodness, He could not mislead her. He must then have meant to teach as He allowed her to understand Him. The force of this argument is not weakened by the fact, that the modern Church of Rome, or other heretics, allege Scripture in support of their errors. For it can be shown, first, that, however Scripture may now be alleged in the support of these heresies, they did not originate in the misunderstanding of Scripture, but in human reason, worldly wisdom, or the like. Secondly, they are errors, not of the whole Church, but of later sects, who have forsaken the genuine tradition of the Holy Catholic Church. Thirdly, they are not founded on the obvious meaning of Scripture.
This argument weighed strongly in my own mind, so that I should have needed no other; and it is, I think, calculated to have much weight, not with the disputer, but with those who wish simply to know their Lord's will. And therefore, (not with any idea of judging others,) I felt and said that "with one who loved His Saviour, I should be content to rest the question upon this one passage."
Since, however, it is difficult to recover habits of mind, which have been once abandoned, and the teachableness, which in better days followed out the hint of one single expression in Holy Scriptures, is, in our disputatious, demonstrating age, well nigh gone, and people look with an involuntary suspicion upon any doctrine rested upon a single passage, I thought it well to bring together the several passages of Holy Scripture wherein Baptism is mentioned, not with any notion of setting forth all their teaching, but simply of showing that it all led us one way, that it would all tend to far more exalted notions of Holy Baptism, than are in these days current among those who think that they appreciate it even highly. This led me to enlarge my original plan; and as this extension may have obscured the method of the Essay, it may not be amiss to exhibit a summary of it.
Introductory observations (Tract 67. p. 1–12). I. Consideration of passages of Holy Scripture which speak of or imply the greatness of Baptism, (p. 12–48.) passages which speak of the forfeiture of those privileges, and how the heavenly birth may, in some degree, be restored (Tract 68. p. 49–82). II. Baptism, as a Sacrament (p. 82–9). III. History of the introduction of the new doctrine into the Church, (α) views of Zuingli its inventor (p. 89–104.); Agreement of Calvin (Tract 69. p. 105–14.); theory of his school, in detail, destructive of a Sacrament (p. 114–133.); confusion of terms, "regeneration," "sanctification," ensuing on that theory (p. 134–142). (β) Doctrine ofindefectibility of grace. IV. Removal of objections, whether (α) à priori, (p. 149–166.) or (β) derived from Scripture (p. 166–170). Adult Baptism, as distinct from the preceding (p. 171–6). Extracts from the Fathers, in answer to the charge that "Baptismal Regeneration" is a deadening doctrine (p. 176–196). Contrast of the exposition above adopted, with that of the reformed and the Socinians (p. 196–201 ). Importance of the subject (p. 201–end).
I must, however, repeat that neither in pointing out the effects of the views inculcated, nor in quoting the warm healthy language of the Fathers, do I wish to recommend the doctrine on these grounds: I have done so on the defensive only, to clear away a difficulty for others, to remove a prejudice, which may hinder them from seeing the truth, not in support of the truth, or as a ground why they should receive it. For so long as men shall appeal to the effects of a line of teaching, or its popularity, or its fitness for its end, in proof of its truth in the sight of God, so long must error abound.
But, although my object has been to remove perplexity (if it might be) from the minds of young ministers, or candidates for the ministry, perplexity is the least evil: a far greater would be our settling down in low notions of the Sacraments of our Lord, and virtually superseding their necessity, or assigning them a "lower place."
It cannot be denied that there is much reason to dread this. Our general habits of mind are rationalizing; we live in the world of sense; the knowledge which we acquire, is matter of sense; what we call "science" is the knowledge of things tangible to sense: a truly common-sense, or rather a common-place sense, is our rule in all things; and of all this we make our boast. This is an unhealthy atmosphere for faith, which has to do entirely with things unseen, not of sense. Our daily habits, our philosophy, our morals, our politics, our theories of education, or national improvement, are founded upon a low and carnal basis, and are at direct variance with the principles of the faith: one must give way; a more vivid faith must penetrate our social, domestic, intellectual system, or it must itself be stifled. Meanwhile, Rationalism is taking a subtle turn, or rather its author, the author of evil, has been subtly applying it: in the days of our Deists, it openly attacked Christianity, and was defeated; now it appears as the ally and supporter of the faith, which it would undermine: it supports our Evidences; reconciles our difficulties; smooths down the "hard sayings" of the Word of God, and steals away our treasure. The Blessed Sacraments are a peculiar obstacle to its inroads, for their effects come directly from God, and their mode of operation is as little cognizable to reason as their Author: they flow to us from an unseen world: what we see has as little power to heal or strengthen our souls, as the clay and the spittle to give sight to the blind man, or the waters of Jordan to cleanse the leper: those who use them in faith have life and strength; yet is it not their faith alone which gives this life, any more than faith would have cleansed Naaman, but for Him who gave the Jordan power to make his "flesh as a little child." The Blessed Sacraments then are a daily testimony to our faith: we are strengthened, we hold onwards: how we obtain our strength we can give to reason no account: suffice that we know whence it cometh. This then has become a main point of attack.
The preaching of the Cross is now no stumbling-block to the mind of man; it offers no difficulties to the rationalism of the day: nay, it is subjected to illustration, and the system of Redemption is made cognizable by us, and we understand it, and extol the wisdom of the scheme! The Holy Eucharist it has rationalized, and in that degree, as a Sacrament, destroyed: the efficacy of Infant-Baptism it cannot rationalize, and therefore denies it!
The popular theology of America is partly derived from that very source which first brought in the low and rationalist notions of the Sacraments, the Swiss Reformation; partly, it has been tampering with modern apologetic notions[1], and labouring to persuade the infidel that he has, after all, nothing on the score of mysteriousness to object to the Christian faith. And in the absence of any principles of our own, and forgetting those of our Church and its primitive character, and with a certain universalism, which cares not whether the details be sound, so that it finds certain portions of the faith, which it has arbitrarily selected, we borrow at second-hand a mixed farrago of criticism or history from Germany, unsifted and unadapted to ourselves; and from America, a popular illustrative divinity; and hope from the two to compound something which may meet the necessities of the day, and save us the labour of studying primitive Antiquity, wherein our great divines were formed.
It must not also be forgotten, that a popular portion of our religious teaching is ultimately drawn from the same source as that of America—the divines, who, with those of Geneva, fell away from the doctrines of the Ancient Church upon the Sacraments: that (whatever be its other merits or defects) it is founded on the supposition of the inefficacy of the one Sacrament, and throws the other into the shade; leading men to appropriate its benefits, without reference to itself; to ascribe our whole spiritual life simply to the action of faith, not to God's gifts in His Sacraments, whereof faith is the mere channel only. And now, because this preaching is popular, and has claimed to itself the exclusive title to warmth and sincerity and undefiledness, men are falling into it, or rather are amalgamating it with the old system; not upon conviction, and often with a sort of suppressed surmise that there was much good in that former system, as exhibited in its genuine representatives; but because the tide is set too strongly, and they dare not withstand it.
This is said with all respect for those who are earnestly preaching what they believe to be the whole Gospel of Christ; and they will, I trust, think that nothing offensive is intended, if their system is blamed as defective, being derived from modern sources, and founded on a scheme which denies the Sacraments to be means of grace. Neither would I have spoken with a confidence unbeseeming an individual, in behalf of his own opinions, but that the views are not mine, but those of the whole Church previous to Zuingli. As the new system has now the ascendant, it is with deep sorrow that one must regard it as unfavourable to deep and continued repentance, or to the higher degrees of sanctification. May God avert these and all other evils from His Zion!
It is however of the utmost importance that persons should see the tendency of their opinions; and on this ground, I have quoted (p. 124) the statement of a writer of a very different class, who (however by some happy inconsistency he may rescue his own religious belief) yet attributes the reception of the views, retained by our Church on the Holy Sacraments, to "the prevalence of the belief in magic in the early ages[2]." He admits that these views are countenanced by our blessed Saviour's declaration, that "virtue had gone out of Him;" but His saying is regarded, not as matter of instruction to us, but as "a mode of speaking, characteristic of the prevalent idea concerning the operation of the Divine influence." St. Augustine's maxim "Accedit verbum ad elementum et fit Sacramentum," which expresses what has hitherto been the acknowledged teaching of the whole Church, is designated as "an adaptation of the popular belief respecting the power of incantations and charms to the subject of religion." The tendency of this whole lecture is to decry the Church's doctrine, that the Sacraments are instruments or channels of grace, and to transfer their whole efficacy to the simple operation of the mind of the believer. The faith of the believer is not only essential to his beneficial reception of it, but is "the true consecrating principle,—that which brings down Christ to the heart of each individual[3]."
On one point, I fear that the doctrines of the ancient Church are so distinct from modern ultra-Protestant theology on the one hand, (as also) from the Romanist on the other, that the view, which I have exhibited, of the character of grievous sin after Baptism may cause perplexity. It cannot be otherwise; and I pray only that it may be healthful. For our modern system, founded, as it is, on the virtual rejection of Baptism as a Sacrament, confounds the distinction of grievous sin before and after Baptism, and applies to repentance, after falling from Baptismal grace, all the promises which, in Scripture, are pledged, not as the fruit of repentance simply, but as God's free gift in Baptism. Yet our reformers thought differently; for had their theology been like our's, there had been no occasion for an article on "Sin after Baptism" (Art. 16.), or for denying that "every such sin is sin against the Holy Ghost, and unpardonable." It had been a matter of course. The possibility or efficacy of such repentance I have not denied; God forbid: but that such repentance is likely, especially after a relapse, or that men, who have fallen, can be as assured of the adequacy of their repentance, as they might have been of God's free grace in Baptism, daily experience, as well as the probable meaning of Scripture, forbid us to hope. Had repentance been so easy a thing, as men would persuade themselves, how is it that there are so very many hardened sinners, who never apparently repent; so many, of whose repentance one can hardly hope that it is real; so many half-penitents? Again, the pardon in Baptism is free, full, instantaneous, universal, without any service on our part: the pardon on repentance for those who have forfeited their Baptismal pardon, is slow, partial, gradual, as is the repentance itself, to be humbly waited for, and to be wrought out through that penitence: were the repentance at once perfect, so, doubtless, would the pardon be; but it is part of the disease, entailed by grievous sin, that men can but slowly repent; they have disabled themselves from applying completely their only cure: the anguish of repentance, in its early stages, is often the sharpest; it is generally long afterwards that it is in any real degree purified and deepened; and therefore the ancient Church diligently noted out of the Old Testament the means whereby repentance might be heightened and secured, as humiliation, voluntary affliction, prayer, self-denying bountifulness, and the like. Again, the penitent must regard himself, not merely as a novice, but as a very weak one: he has already cast away the armour wherewith he was clad; he is beginning an irksome, distasteful course, and having already failed, it becomes him not to be impatient of suspense, or too confident in his new steadfastness, but to be content to wear "doubt's galling chain[4]," until God shall see it healthful for him gradually to be relieved. The fears, and anxiety, whereof he ignorantly complains, and would rid himself by the one or the other system of theology, is a most important, perhaps an essential condition of his cure, otherwise God would not have sent troubles, often so intolerable.
[5]But where is then the stay of contrite hearts?
Of old they leaned on Thy eternal word;
But with the sinner's fear their hope departs,
Fast linked, as Thy great name to Thee, O Lord.
Man desires to have, under any circumstances, certainty of salvation through Christ: to those who have fallen, God holds out only "a light in a dark place," sufficient for them to see their path, but not bright or cheering as they would have it: and so, in different ways, man would forestall the sentence of his Judge; the Romanist by the Sacrament of penance: a modern class of divines by the appropriation of the merits and righteousness of our Blessed Redeemer; the Methodists by sensible experience: our own, with the ancient Church, preserves a reverent silence, not cutting off hope, and yet not nurturing an untimely confidence, or a presumptuous security.
A further question will, probably, occur to many; what is that grievous sin after Baptism, which involves the falling from grace? What the distinction between lesser and greater, venial and mortal sins? or if mortal sins be "sins against the decalogue," as St. Augustine says, are they only the highest degrees of those sins, or are they the lower also? This question, as it is a very distressing one, I would gladly answer if I could, or dared. But as with regard to the sin against the Holy Ghost, so here, also, Scripture is silent. "What that measure is," to apply St. Augustine's words, "and what are the sins, which prevent men's attaining to the kingdom of God,—it is most difficult to discover, and most dangerous to define. I certainly, much as I have laboured, have not yet been able to decide anything. Perhaps it is therefore concealed, lest men's anxiety to hold onward to the avoiding of all sin should wax cold.—But now, since the degree of venial iniquity, if persevered in, is unknown, the eagerness to make progress by more instant continuance in prayer is quickened, and the carefulness to make holy friends of the mammon of unrighteousness is not despised[6]." It is easier to ascertain what are those which are not venial; some, such as sins of the flesh, or idolatrous covetousness, St. Paul has named; yet, even without these, there may be a state of heart, through the accumulation of lesser sins, equally destructive of the Baptismal life. "Despise them not," says the same St. Augustine[7], "because they are smaller; but fear, because they are more numerous. Attend, my brethren. They are minute; they are not great. It is not a wild beast, as a lion, which destroys life by one grasp,—but human nature is feeble, and may be destroyed by the smallest beasts. So, also, slight sins; ye remark them, because they are small: beware, because they are many. What is smaller than grains of sand? Yet, if much of it be laden into a vessel, it sinks it, that it is lost. How small are drops of rain! Do they not fill rivers, and overthrow houses?"
Yet though it be difficult to determine in the abstract, it is not so much so for one who wishes earnestly to know himself, to ascertain whether he has been, or is in this state of alienation from God, or approximating to it; how wilfully he have sinned; how long remained in sin, or against what present and ready help of God's Holy Spirit. And in proportion to his sin, must be his repentance. Only of this he may be sure, that man always undervalues his sin, and overvalues his repentance; and on this account also, theories, which smooth or shorten the path of repentance, are so peculiarly dangerous.
The differences, then, between these and the current ideas of repentance, relate to, 1st, The difference between grievous sin before and after Baptism; 2dly, The difficulty of recovery; 3dly, Its mode; 4thly, Man's assuredness and knowledge of his pardon; 5thly, The duration of repentance: but they do not relate either to the possibility of repentance, or God's readiness to forgive the penitent. Modern notions appear to me to confound together repentance for all sin, to level those who, after Baptism, have in the main served God, and those who serve Him not; and to represent repentance for grievous sin, too easy, too little painful, too little connected with the outward course of life, too little influenced by or influencing it, too much a matter of mere feeling, too readily secured and ascertained, too transitory, not—too certain to obtain pardon, if real.
On this whole subject of the actual sins of the baptized, and the repentance necessary, I would that men would study the work of Bishop Taylor—"The doctrine and practice of Repentance," not simply on account of his great learning as to Christian antiquity, but because it was written by one who says of himself[8], "having, by the sad experience of my own miseries and the calamities of others, to whose restitution I have been called to minister, been taught something of the secret of souls: I have reason to think that the words of our dearest Lord to St. Peter, were also spoken to me; 'Tu autem conversus, confirma fratres.'" Taught in this school, he "endeavoured to break in pieces almost all those propositions, upon the confidence of which men have been negligent of severe and strict living," and became eminently a preacher of repentance.
Lastly, I would beseech those, for whom these tracts are mainly intended, our younger labourers in our Lord's vineyard, for their own sakes, as well of those, of whose souls they must give account, neither here, nor in any other portion of these tracts, to be deterred by any vague fear of an approximation (as they may be led to think) to any doctrines or practices of the corrupt Church of Rome; not to allow themselves to fall in with any of those charges, which ignorant men are wont to make, of "the early corruptions of Christianity," and which are the bulwark of Socinianism, and of every other heresy. Since the Swiss reformers set aside primitive antiquity, and took a new model of their own. Antiquity, if tried by the standard of Zuinglianism or Calvinism, must, of course, appear to approximate to the modern Church of Rome; for that Church has retained, in a corrupted form, doctrines and rites, which the Swiss reformation rejected. Hence, the Lutheran (see p.104), the Bohemian (p.233), and our own Church, have, by the admirers of that reformation, ever been looked upon as Papistical; as they, in their turn, have, by the "extreme reformation of the Socinians" (p. 198–9), been held, and rightly, to have stopped short of the results of their own principles, and have been represented, though wrongly, as retainers of Alexandrian "corruptions of Christianity." Hooker's defence of our Church is but one instance of this wide difference between ours and the Zuinglian reformation. Our Church (blessed be God,) never took Luther, or Calvin, or any modern name for its teacher or its model, but primitive antiquity: and by the Holy Scripture alone, and the universal consent of Primitive Antiquity, as the depository of its doctrines, and the witness of its teaching, would she be judged[9]. In these principles of our dear mother the Church of England, have we been trained, and in these old ways we would humbly tread.
Christ Church,
The Feast of the Circumcision of Christ.
PASSAGES OF HOLY SCRIPTURE EXPLAINED.
Ps. ii. 7.—p. 17, Note.
Matt. iii. 11.—p. 16–209, 10.
Mark i. 10—p. 46, Note.
vii. 20.—p. 166.
xvi. 16.—p. 20, Note.
John iii. 5.—pp. 12. 15–19.
Acts viii. 13.—p. 172.
x.—pp. 138–142.
xxii. 16.—pp. 47, 48.
xxvi. 12. pp. 222, 223.
Rom. iv. 11.—p. 38, Note.
v. 12, sqq.—p. 87.
vi. 3–7.—pp. 22–27. 211.
— 4—p. 84, Note.
xiii. 14.—p. 27.
1 Cor. i. 5–8.—p. 36, Note, 212–16.
vii. 14.—pp. 161–163. 262–5.
xi. 31.—p. 61, Note.
xii. 13.—p. 43.
2 Cor. i. 22.—pp. 34. 38. 42.
iii. 25.—p. 54.
2 Cor. vii. 11.—p. 61, Note.
Gal. iii. 27.—pp.27–31. 84, Note.
iv. 4. sqq.—p. 43.
— 19.—pp. 72, 73.
Eph. i. 13, 14.—pp. 34–38.
iv. 30.—pp. 34. 38.
v. 22, sqq.—pp. 40, 41. 216–218.
Col.ii. 11.—pp.31–34.
iii. 1.—p. 33, Note.
Tit. iii. 5.—pp. 19, 20, 21. 152. 210, 11.
Heb. vi, 1, sqq.—pp. 49–57.
x. 22.—p. 43.
— 26, 27.—p. 69.
— 38, 39.—p. 80.
1 Pet. i. 23. ii. 1. 3.—p. 14.
iii. 21.—pp. 21. 44, 45. 220–222.
2 Pet. i. 9.—p. 54, Note.
1 John ii., iii. 9.—pp. 166–171.
ii. 20. 27.—pp. 41, 42. 218–220.
Rev. vii. 3.—p. 35, Note.
PASSAGES MISINTERPRETED BY THE SCHOOL OF ZUINGLI,
CALVIN, AND THE SOCINIANS, pp. 198, 199.
John iii. 5.—p. 15.
Acts i. 5.—p. 100.
ii. 38.—pp. 282–284.
viii. 37.–p. 284.
xxii. 16.—pp. 284, 5.
Rom. vi. 3.—p. 270.
1 Cor. xii. 13.—pp.291,292.
Gal. iii. 27.—pp. 285–87.
Eph. v. 26.—pp. 41, Note, 293–295.
Col.ii. 11.—p. 295.
Tit. iii. 5.—pp. 287–289.
Heb. x. 22.—pp. 289, 290.
1 Pet. iii. 21.—pp. 289, 290. 292, 293.
ERRATA.
Page 2, line 20, for untried read restored.
12, Note for 1 Cor. v. 15, read 1 Cor. iv. 15.
22, line 3, for these read there.
38, title, for soul read seal.
39, line 9, for his read this.
43, line 3, for iv. 23. read x. 23.
line 4, for pure read true.
44, line 5, for Testament, read Testament—
TRACTS FOR THE TIMES.
SCRIPTURAL VIEWS OF HOLY BAPTISM.
What sparkles in that lucid flood
Is water, by gross mortals ey'd:
But seen by Faith, 'tis blood
Out of a dear friend's side.
Christian Year. Holy Baptism.
Every pious and well instructed member of our Church will in the abstract acknowledge, that in examining whether any doctrine be a portion of revealed truth, the one subject of inquiry must be, whether it be contained in Holy Scripture; and that in this investigation, he must on the one hand defer, in some degree, to the system of interpretation handed down to us through the early Church, on the other he must lay aside all reference to the supposed influence of such doctrine, the supposed religious character of those who held it at any given time, and the like.
Any right-minded person, I say, will readily acknowledge this in the abstract; for to judge of doctrines by their supposed influence upon men's hearts, would imply that we know much more of our own nature, and what is necessary or conducive to its restoration, than we do: it would be like setting about to heal ourselves, instead of receiving with implicit faith and confidence whatever the Great Physician of our souls has provided for us. The real state of the case is indeed just the contrary of what this habit would imply. We can, in truth, know little or nothing of the efficacy of any doctrine but what we have ourselves believed and experienced. Even in matters of our own experience, we may easily deceive ourselves, and ascribe our spiritual progress exclusively to the reception of the one or the other truth, whereas it has depended upon a number of combining causes, which God has ordered for our good, upon a great variety of means, by which God has been drawing us to Himself, whereof we have seized upon one or two of the principal only. In other cases we may be altogether mistaken. Thus, to take a published instance; a person now living has said of himself that "he read himself into unbelief, and afterwards read himself back into belief." As if mere diligent study could restore any one who had fallen from the faith! Whereas, without considering what circumstances, beside the reading of infidel books, led him to infidelity, or what commencing unsoundness led him to follow up the reading of infidel books, on which he was not competent to judge;—the very fact of reading at one time infidel, at another Christian, writings, implies that the frame of mind was different at each time; so that by his own account, other causes must have combined both to his fall, and his restoration. Again, he himself incidentally shows that, though a sceptic, he still continued to exercise considerable self-denial, for the welfare of others; so that among the instruments of his untried faith, may have been one, which he omitted, that his benevolence, like that of Cornelius, went up as a memorial before God[10]. But if we can be mistaken, even as to the influence of what we have tried, much more assuredly must we, in spiritual matters, be in ignorance of what we have not tried. We may have some intimation with regard to such questions, whether of doctrine or of practice, from the experience of good men; but so far from being judges about them, it will often happen that precisely what we are most inclined to disparage, will be that which is most needful for us. For, since all religious truth or practice is a correction or purification of our natural tendencies, we shall generally be in ignorance beforehand, what will so correct or purify them. Our own palate is disordered, our own eye dimmed: until God then has restored, by His means, our spiritual taste, or our spiritual vision, we should select for ourselves very blindly or injudiciously. In matter of fact, the Christian creed has been repeatedly pared down, as every one knows, in consequence of men's expunging, beforehand, what they thought prejudicial to the effect of the other portions of Scripture truth: thus, early Heretics objected to the truth of the human nature of Christ: against the Reformers it was urged, that the doctrine of "justification by faith only" was opposed to sanctification and holiness: Luther, (although he afterwards repented,) excepted against God's teaching by St. James, and called his Epistle an "Epistle of straw:" fanatics of all ages have rejected the use of both sacraments: stated or premeditated prayer has been regarded as mere formality, and the like. And in these or similar cases, when at a distance, we can readily see how some wrong tendency of mind suggested all these objections, and how the very truth or practice objected to, would have furnished the antidote which the case needed. We can see e.g. how stated or fixed prayer would have disciplined the mind, how a form would have tended to make the subjects of prayer more complete: for we ourselves have felt, how, by the prayers which the Church has put into our mouths, we have been taught to pray for blessings, our need of which we might not have perceived, or which we might have thought it presumption to pray for. And this is a sort of witness placed in our hands, to testify to us, how in other cases also we ought with thankful deference to endeavour to incorporate into the frame of our own minds each portion of the system which God has ordained for us, not daring to call any thing of little moment, which He has allowed to enter into it; much less presuming to "call that common, which God hath cleansed," or to imagine that, because we cannot see its effects, or should think it likely to be injurious, it may not be both healthful and essential.
The doctrine, then, of Baptismal Regeneration (rightly understood) may have a very important station in God's scheme of salvation, although many of us may not understand its relation to the rest, and those who do not believe it, cannot understand it. For this is the method of God's teaching throughout; "first believe and then you shall understand[11]." And this may be said, in Christian warning, against those hard words, in which Christians sometimes allow themselves; as, "the deadening doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration;" language which can only serve to darken the truth to those who use it, and which is by so much the more dangerous, since all Christians believe that Regeneration sometimes accompanies Baptism; and since Baptismal Regeneration was the doctrine of the Universal Church of Christ in its holiest ages, and our own reformers (to whom, on other points, men are wont to appeal as having been highly gifted with God's Holy Spirit) retained this doctrine, a private Christian ought not to feel so confident in his own judgment as to denounce, in terms so unmeasured, what may after all be the teaching of God; "lest haply he be found to fight against God."
Others again, holding rightly the necessity of Regeneration for every one descended of Adam, would strongly set forth this necessity; but whether God have ordinarily annexed this gift to Baptism, this they would have passed over as a difficult or curious question. They bid men to examine themselves whether they have the fruits of regeneration; if not, to pray that they be regenerate. "This absolute necessity of regeneration," they say, "is the cardinal point; this is what we practically want for rousing men to the sense of their danger, and for the saving of their souls: what privileges may have been bestowed upon them in Baptism, or, in a happier state of the Christian Church, might not only be then universally bestowed, but be realized in life, is of lesser moment: regeneration, and the necessity thereof, is the kernel; these and other questions about outward ordinances, are but the husk only: regeneration and 'justification by faith only' are the key-stones of the whole fabric." I would, by the way, protest against such illustrations, whereby men, too commonly, embolden themselves to call any portion of God's institution for our salvation, "husk," or "shell," or the like: let it seem to us never so external, it can in no stage of the Christian course be dispensed with, which these similitudes would imply. Rather, if we use any image, might we better speak of the whole Gospel as an elixir of immortality, whereof some ingredients may be more powerful than the rest, but the efficacy of the whole depends upon the attemperament of the several portions; and we, who formed neither our own souls, nor this cure for them, dare not speak slightingly of the necessity of any portion. Doubtless there are truths, which in one sense (comparatively speaking) may be called the great truths of Christianity, as embodying in them a larger portion of the counsel of God, and exhibiting more fully His attributes of holiness and love. Better perhaps, and more Scripturally might we speak of the truth,—the Gospel itself; yet there is no evil in that other expression, if intended solely as the language of thankfulness for the great instances of His mercy therein conveyed. If used, on the other hand,—I will not say disparagingly, but—as in any way conveying an impression that other doctrines are not in their place essential, or that we can assign to each truth its class or place in the Divine economy, or weigh its value, or measure its importance, then are we again forgetting our own relation to God, and from the corner of His world in which we are placed, would fain judge of the order and correspondencies and harmonies of things, which can only be seen or judged of, from the centre, which is God Himself. We cannot, without great danger, speak of lesser, or less essential, truths, and doctrines, and ordinances, both because the passage from "less essential," to "unessential," is unhappily but too easy, and because although these truths may appear to relate to subjects further removed from what we think the centre of Christianity, the mode in which we hold them, or our neglect of them, may very vitally affect those which we consider more primary truths. We can readily see this in cases in which we are not immediately involved. Thus we can see how a person's whole views of Sanctification by the Holy Ghost will be affected by Hoadley's low notions of the Lord's Supper; or how the addition of the single practice of "soliciting the Saints to pray for men," has in the Romish Church obscured the primary article of Justification: and yet no one could have anticipated beforehand, that this one wrong practice would have had effects so tremendous. If then wrong notions about the one Sacrament, among both Romanists and Pseudo-Protestants have had an influence so extensive, why should we think error, with regard to the other, of slight moment? Rather, should we not more safely argue, that since Baptism is a Sacrament ordained by Christ Himself, a low, or inadequate, or unworthy conception of His institution, must, of necessity almost, be very injurious to the whole of our belief and practice? Does not our very reverence to our Saviour require that we should think any thing, which He deigned to institute, of very primary moment,—not (as some seem now to think) simply to be obeyed or complied with, but to be embraced with a glad and thankful recognition of its importance, because He instituted it?
The other point, which was mentioned as important to be borne in mind, in the inquiry whether any doctrine be a Scriptural truth, was, that we should not allow ourselves to be influenced by the supposed religious character of those who in our times hold it, or the contrary. This we should again see to be a very delusive criterion, in a case where we have no temptation to apply it: we should at once admit that Pascal and Nicole were holy men, nay that whole bodies of men in the Church of Rome had arrived at a height of holiness, and devotion, and self-denial, and love of God, which in this our day is rarely to be seen in our Apostolic Church; yet we should not for a moment doubt that our Church is the pure Church, although her sons seem of late but rarely to have grown up to that degree of Christian maturity, which might have been hoped from the nurture of such a mother: we should not think the comparative holiness of these men of God any test as to the truth of any one characteristic doctrine of the Church of Rome. We should rightly see that the holiness of these men was not owing to the distinctive doctrines of their Church; but that God had quickened the seed of life which He had sown in their hearts, notwithstanding the corrupt mixture with which our Enemy had hoped to choke it: we should rightly attribute the apparent comparative failure among ourselves in these times, not to our not possessing the truth, but to our slothful use of the abundant treasures which God has bestowed upon us. And so also, with regard to any doctrine in which persons either within or without our Church may depart from her; no one can say with confidence, that the superior holiness of those who do not accept it, is attributable to their not accepting it, since it may be only that by their rejection of this one truth, they have not forfeited the blessing of God upon the other truths, which they yet hold: while others who do hold it, may be holding it in name only, and may never have examined the treasure committed to them. It may be, to speak plainly, that many who deny or doubt about Baptismal Regeneration, have been made holy and good men, and yet have sustained a loss in not holding this truth: and again, that others may nominally have held it, and yet never have thought of the greatness or significance of what they professed to hold. If again right practice were a test of doctrine, then could there be no such thing as "holding the truth in unrighteousness," for which however the Apostle pronounces the condemnation of the Heathen. Further, if the comparison were any test at all, it must manifestly be made not at one period only, but throughout the time that such doctrine has been held by the Church; one must compare not the men of our own day only, but those of all former times, Confessors, Saints, and Martyrs, which were impossible! This is not said, as if we were competent judges even as to our own times, or as if any could be, but God alone, who searcheth the hearts; for if the number of those, who being earnest-minded and zealous men, do not hold Baptismal Regeneration, were increased an hundred fold, or, if those who imagining that they hold Baptismal Regeneration, do in fact use it as a skreen to hide from themselves the necessity of the complete actual change of mind and disposition necessary to them, were many more than they are, still, who can tell to how many thousands, or tens of thousands, this same doctrine has been the blessed means of a continued, child-like growth in grace, who have been silently growing up, supported by the inestimable privilege of having been made God's children, before they themselves knew good or evil; who have on the whole been uniformly kept within Christ's fold, and are now thanking their heavenly Father for having placed them thus early in this state of salvation, into which, had it been left to their frail choice, they had never entered; who rejoice with joy unspeakable and full of glory, that they were placed in the Ark of Christ's Church, and not first called, of themselves to take refuge in it out of the ruins of a lost world[12].
All this, people will in the abstract readily acknowledge; they will confess that Scripture is the only ultimate authority in matters of Faith, while still they will probably find on examination that some of these grounds have occasioned them to hold Baptismal Regeneration to be an unscriptural doctrine; and if they examined Scripture at all, yet still the supposed effects of this, and of a contrary doctrine, the supposed character of those who hold it, or the reverse, were in fact their rule for interpreting Scripture; or perhaps wearied with the controversy (which is and must be in itself an evil) they came to the conclusion that, if we but hold the necessity of Regeneration, it matters not when we suppose it to take place,—thus assuming, in fact, the unscripturalness of the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration, since if God has connected Regeneration with Baptism, it must be of importance.
This is very natural; for men must lean upon something. Our Reformers, in their interpretation of Scripture, besides the divine means of prayer, leant on the consent and agreement of the "old holy Catholic Doctors," who had received their doctrine immediately, or but at a little interval, from the Apostles, when every link almost in the chain was a Saint and Martyr. The agreement of the Church was to them the evidence of God's speaking in the Church. But now that men have forgotten these maxims, and look upon deference to the Church almost as a relic of Papal errors, man, since he is not made to be independent, leans upon his fellows, and the supposed spiritual character of individuals is made the test of truth. Man cannot escape from authority: the question only, in religious truth as in civil society, or in private life, is, whose authority he will follow.
Our controversies with infidels, again, have led to some false maxims as to the tests of truth: for men, instead of setting forth, against these despisers, the efficacy of God's word, the power of the preaching of the Gospel, (which are facts,) have dwelt too much upon its intrinsic tendency to produce such or such effects, the efficacy of particular doctrines, or its contrast in such or such points with other religions; thereby fostering the conviction that we are much more judges in these matters than we are. And we, by applying the test to the particular doctrines of Christianity, have made ourselves judges in matters yet more beyond our grasp. Undoubtedly faithful and sound preaching is likely, by God's blessing, to produce a harvest: the holy and earnest life of a religious pastor is a yet more powerful sermon: his performance of his weekly duties, his greater watchfulness over the right dispensation of the Sacraments, his more earnest prayers, are also means of promoting God's kingdom. Obviously then, the blessed effects of a whole ministry cannot be made a test of the truth of each doctrine preached: and yet more obviously perhaps on this ground, that there is not complete agreement in the doctrines the preaching of which is attended with these apparent effects; add also, that even in this way, one must judge not by the preaching of those, who being already full of fervour preached these doctrines, but by that of their disciples. For since we do not think that incidental error will mar the benefit of a whole ministry, or that fallible man, though richly endowed by God's Spirit, is yet rendered infallible, we cannot infer that because his teaching is blessed, therefore every portion of it must be sound. Rather, one might infer from the fact that the same doctrines when preached by a less gifted follower, have not the same efficacy, that the former efficacy was not to be referred to the truth of each doctrine, which was preached, but to the Spirit of God, with which each faithful minister is endowed. Lastly, we must look not to immediate only but to lasting effects, not only to the foundation but to the superstructure: and it may be in part owing to the absence of this doctrine of Baptismal regeneration, that while a foundation is so often laid, the edifice of Christian piety among us still bears such low and meagre proportions, and still further, that there is not more of early Christianity among us. As of course, if it is a Scriptural truth, the neglect of preaching it, must be a loss as well as a negligence.
These observations have been premised both because the habits of mind to which they refer, may have an evil effect, far beyond this one important subject, as also because the difficulties of the subject itself seem to lie entirely in these collateral questions, not in the Scripture evidence for its truth. They are made however, more in the hope of removing difficulties from the minds of such as have not yet forsaken the doctrines of the Church, than of convincing such as have: and to those only will the evidence proposed be addressed. But let not others think, that because the evidence does not persuade them, this is owing to its want of validity: for Scripture evidence is throughout proposed to those who believe, not to those who believe not; it will be enough for those who "continue in the things which they have learned, and have been assured of, knowing of whom they have learned them" (2 Tim. iii. 14); but there is no promise that any, be they nations, sects, or individuals, who have failed to hold fast to them, should be enabled to see their truth. God has provided an institution, the Church, to "hold fast" and to convey "the faithful word as they had been taught." (Tit. ii. 2.) He ordered that the immediate successors of the Apostles should "commit the things which they had heard of them to faithful men, who should be able to teach others also." (2 Tim. ii. 2.) Whoever, then, neglects this ordinance of God, and so seeks truth in any other way than God has directed it to be sought, has no ground to look to obtain it; nay, it appears to be a penalty annexed to departure from this channel of truth, both in individuals and bodies, that they not only lose all insight into Scripture evidence, but gradually decline further from the truth, and but seldom, and not without extraordinary effort, recover. The first misgivings, and restrictions, and limitations, are forgotten: what was originally an exception is made a rule and a principle; and departures, which were at first timidly ventured upon, and excused upon the necessity of the case, (as that of Calvin from episcopal ordination, or the license with regard to the authority and extent of the Canon among several denominations of Christians,) are by their followers looked upon as matters of glory and of boast, and as distinctive marks of Protestantism. For, on the one hand, the dissatisfaction generated by a state of doubt leads us to prefer even wrong decision to suspense or misgiving; we "force ourselves to do this" unbidden "sacrifice:" on the other, our natural listlessness and dislike of exertion tempts us to make an arbitrary selection of such portions of the vast compass of Divine Truth as is most congenial to ourselves, (since to enter equally into all its parts costs much effort,) and this done, we acquire a positive distaste for such truth as we have not adopted into what is practically our religious creed: we dislike having our religious notions disturbed; and since no truth can be without its influence upon the rest, the adoption of any forsaken truth involves not only the admission of a foreign and unaccustomed ingredient, but threatens to compel us to modify much at least of our actual system.
My object then in the following pages is partly to help, by God's blessing, to relieve the minds of such persons as being in the sacred ministry of the Church, or Candidates for the same, have difficulty in reconciling with their ideas of Scripture truth, what appears even to them to be the obvious meaning of our Baptismal and other[13] Formularies, as to the privileges of Baptism; partly (and that more especially) to afford persons a test of their own views of their Saviour's ordinance, by comparing them with the language and feeling of Scripture. And this, because a due sense of the blessings which He has bestowed upon us, must tend to increase our love for Him; as also, because I know not what ground of hope the Church has to look for a full blessing upon its ministry from its Head, so long as a main channel of His grace, be, in comparison, lightly esteemed.
First, then, I would remark on the fact, that whereas, confessedly, Regeneration is in Scripture connected with Baptism, it no where is disconnected from it. Baptism is spoken of as the source of our spiritual birth, as no other cause is, save God: we are not said, namely, to be regenerated by faith, or love, or prayer, or any grace which God worketh in us, but to be "born of[14] water and the Spirit" in contrast to our birth of[15] the flesh; to be saved by the washing of the regeneration, or the new-birth, in like manner as we are said to be born of[16] God, or of[17] incorruptible seed. Other causes are indeed mentioned as connected with our new-birth, or rather that one comprehensive cause, the whole dispensation of mercy in the Gospel, as, "born of seed incorruptible through[18] the Word of God, which liveth and abideth for ever[19]," "in Jesus Christ have I begotten you through the Gospel," "of His own will begat He us by[20] the word of truth;" but no other instrument is spoken of as having the same relation to our heavenly birth as this of Water[21]. Had it even been otherwise, the mention of any other instrument in our regeneration, could not of course have excluded the operation of Baptism: as indeed in Baptism itself, two very different causes are combined, the one, God Himself, the other a creature which He has thought fit to hallow to this end. For then, as Christ's merits, and the workings of the Holy Spirit, and faith, and obedience, operate in very different ways to the final salvation of our souls, so the mention of faith, or of the preaching of the Gospel as means of our regeneration would not have excluded the necessity of Baptism thereto, although mentioned in but one passage of Holy Scripture. But now, as if to exclude all idea of human agency in this our spiritual creation, to shut out all human cooperation or boasting, as though we had in any way contributed to our own birth, and were not wholly the creatures of His hands, no loop-hole has been left us, no other instrument named; our birth (when its direct means are spoken of) is attributed to the Baptism of Water and of the Spirit, and to that only. Had our new birth in one passage only been connected with Baptism, and no intimation been given to show that it was to be detached from it, this had alone been a weighty argument with any one who was wishing for intimations of God's will; but now, besides this, God has so ordered His word that it does speak of the connection of Baptism, and does not speak of any other cause, in the like close union with it.
This circumstance alone, thoughtfully weighed, would lead a teachable disposition readily to incline his faith, whither God seemed to point. For although the privileges annexed to Regeneration are elsewhere spoken of, and the character of mind thereto conformable,—our sonship and the mind which we should have as sons, our new creation,—yet these are spoken of, as already belonging to, or to be cultivated in, us, not as to be begun anew in any once received into the covenant of Christ. There are tests afforded whether we are acting up to our privilege of Regeneration, and cherishing the Spirit therein given us, but there is no hint that Regeneration can be obtained in any way, but by Baptism, or if totally lost, could be restored. We are warned that having been "saved by Baptism through the resurrection of Jesus Christ, we should no longer live the rest of our time in the flesh to the lusts of men but to the will of God," (1 Pet. iii. 21–iv. 2.) that "having been born of incorruptible seed, we should put off all malice, and like new-born infants desire the sincere milk of the word," (1 Pet. i. 23.–ii. 1–3.) that "having been saved by the washing of regeneration and the renewing of the Holy Ghost, we should be careful to maintain good works;" (Tit. iii. 1–8.) and again, those who had fallen in any way are exhorted to repentance; but men are not taught to seek for regeneration, to pray that they may be regenerate: it is no where implied that any Christian had not been regenerated, or could hereafter be so. The very error of the Novatians, that none who fell away after Baptism could be renewed to repentance, will approach nearer to the truth of the Gospel, than the supposition that persons could be admitted as dead members into Christ, and then afterwards, for the first time, quickened. Our life is, throughout, represented as commencing, when we are by Baptism made members of Christ and children of God; that life may through our negligence afterwards decay, or be choked, or smothered, or well-nigh extinguished, and by God's mercy again be renewed and refreshed: but a commencement of spiritual life after Baptism, a death unto sin and a new birth unto righteousness, at any other period than that one first introduction into God's covenant, is as little consonant with the general representations of Holy Scripture, as a commencement of physical life long after our natural birth is with the order of His Providence.
The evidence, however, arising from a general consideration of God's declarations in Holy Scripture, obtains fresh strength from the examination of the passages themselves; only we must not look upon them as a dead letter, susceptible of various meanings, and which may be made to bear the one or the other indifferently, but as the living Word of God; particularly should we regard, with especial reverence, any words which fell from our Saviour's lips, and see that we consider, not what they may mean, but what is their obvious untortured meaning. We would not therefore, as some have done, argue that it is improbable that "Christ, discoursing with a carnal Jew, would lay so much weight upon the outward sign;" (for this teaching was not for Nicodemus only, but for His Church; and of all our Saviour's teaching we can know this only, that it would be far different and far deeper than what we should have expected, and that it would baffle all our rules and measures;) nor again would we say with Calvin, and Grotius, and the Socinians[22] that the "water" may be a mere metaphor, a mere emblem of the Spirit, and so that being "born again of water and the Spirit," means nothing more than "being born of the Spirit" without water[23]. For Hooker[24] well says, "I hold it for a most infallible rule in expositions of sacred Scripture, that where a literal construction will stand, the farthest from the letter is commonly the worst. There is nothing more dangerous than this licentious and deluding art, which changeth the meaning of words, as alchemy doth, or would do, the substance of metals, maketh of any thing what it listeth, and bringeth in the end all truth to nothing. Or however such voluntary exercise of wit might be borne with otherwise; yet in places which usually serve, as this doth, concerning regeneration by water and the Holy Ghost, to be alleged for grounds and principles, less is permitted. To hide the general consent of antiquity, agreeing in the literal interpretation, they cunningly affirm, that certain have taken those words as meant of material water, when they know that of all the ancients there is not one[25] to be named that ever did otherwise either expound or allege the place, than as implying external Baptism."
Rather, as the prophecy which these same persons alleged, that Christ namely shall "baptize with the Holy Ghost, and with fire," received its literal fulfilment at the day of Pentecost and in this the later Baptism of the Apostles, we find, "as well a visible[26] descent of fire, as a secret miraculous infusion of the Spirit; if on us He accomplish, likewise, the heavenly work of our new birth, not with the Spirit alone, but with water thereunto adjoined, sith the faithfullest expounders of His words are His own deeds, let that, which His hand hath manifestly wrought, declare what his speech did doubtfully utter."
But, combined with the consent of antiquity, our Saviour's meaning becomes so clear, that, with one who loves His Saviour, I would gladly rest the whole question of Baptismal regeneration on this single argument. It is confessed, that the Christian Church uniformly, for fourteen centuries, interpreted this text of Baptism; that on the ground of this text alone, they urged the necessity of Baptism; that upon it, mainly, they identified[27] regeneration with Baptism. If, then, this be an error, would our Saviour have used words which (since water was already used in the Jews' and John's baptism) must inevitably, and did lead His Church into error? and which He, who knew all things, must, at the time, have known, would lead His Church into error? and that, when, according to Calvin's interpretation, His meaning had been as fully expressed, had it stood, "born of the Spirit," only. Rather, if one may argue from the result, one should think, that our Saviour added the words, "of water," (upon which, in His immediate converse with Nicodemus, He does not dwell,) with the very view, that His Church should thence learn the truth, which she has transmitted,—that "regeneration" is the gift of God, bestowed by Him, ordinarily, in Baptism only. Indeed, the opposite exposition was so manifestly a mere weapon, by which to demolish a Papal argument for the absolute necessity of Baptism, that it had hardly been worth commenting upon, but that no error ever stops at its first stage; mere repetition hardens, as well as emboldens; what is first adopted as an expedient, is afterwards justified as being alone the truth—the mantle, which was assumed to cover shame, cleaves to us, like that in the fable, until it have sucked out the very life and marrow of our whole system. One text, misquoted in order to disprove the absolute necessity of Baptism, has ended in the scarcely disguised indifference or contempt of an ordinance of our Saviour.
Not less peremptorily, however, do our Blessed Saviour's words refuse to be bound down to any mere outward change of state, or circumstances, or relation, however glorious the privileges of that new condition may be. For this were the very opposite error; and whereas the former interpretation "dried[28] up" the water of Baptism, so does this quench the Spirit therein. One may, indeed, rightly infer, that, since the Jews regarded the baptized proselyte as a new-born child[29], our Saviour would not have connected the mention of water with the new birth, unless the new birth, which He bestowed, had been bestowed through Baptism: but who would so fetter down the fulness of our Saviour's promises, as that His words should mean nothing more than they would in the mouth of the dry and unspiritual Jewish legalists? or, because they, proud of the covenant with Abraham, deemed that the passing of a proselyte into the outward covenant, was a new creation, who would infer that our Saviour spoke only of an outward change? Even some among the Jews had higher notions, and figured[30] that a new soul descended from the region of spirits, upon the admitted proselyte. And if it were merely an outward change—a change of condition only, wherein were the solemnity of this declaration, "Verily, verily, I say unto you, except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God?" for the "seeing" or "entering into" the kingdom of God, i.e. the Church of Christ, first militant on earth, and then triumphant in heaven, was itself a change of state, so that the two sentences would have had nearly the same meaning. And who could endure the paraphrase, "unless a man be brought into a state outwardly different, he cannot enter into the kingdom?" But our Saviour Himself has explained His own words. To be "born of the Spirit," stands opposed to the being "born of the flesh." As the one birth is real, so must the other be; the agents, truly, are different, and so also the character of life produced by each: in the one case, physical agents, and so physical life, desires, powers; and, since from a corrupted author, powers weakened and corrupted: in the other, the Holy Spirit of God, and so spiritual life, strength, faculties, energies; still, in either case, a real existence; and, to the Christian, a new, real, though not physical beginning—an existence, real, though invisible—and, though worked by an unseen Agent, yet felt in its effects, like the energy of the viewless winds[31].
Our Blessed Saviour's words declare the absolute necessity of regeneration, for the entrance into the kingdom of heaven, or our state of grace and glory, in which we live in His Church, and in which we hope to live with Him for ever; and that this regeneration is the being "born of water and the Spirit," or by God's Spirit again moving on the face of the waters, and sanctifying them for our cleansing, and cleansing us thereby. To this St. Paul was directed to add the irrespectiveness of our calling and election to this grace of Baptism, and privilege of sonship. "But when the kindness and love of God our Saviour toward man appeared, not by works of righteousness, which we had done, but according to His mercy. He saved us, by the washing of regeneration, and of the renewing of the Holy Ghost[32], which he shed on us abundantly, through Jesus Christ our Saviour." Thereby is excluded, not merely "grace of congruity," but all such previous preparation as should make Baptism "a seal only of spiritual grace already given;" for we are saved, it is said, not by regeneration which should be attested and confirmed by Baptism, but by "the washing of regeneration, and of the renewing of the Holy Ghost," i.e. a Baptizing, accompanied by, or conveying a re-production, a second birth, a restoration of our decayed natures, by the new and fresh life, imparted by the Holy Ghost. As before our Blessed Saviour had respect unto the contrary tendencies of our nature, the neglect, as well as the bare acquiescence in the outward ordinance; so here, also, the Apostle has been directed both to limit the imparting of the inward grace by the mention of the outward washing, and to raise our conceptions of the greatness of this second birth, by the addition of the spiritual grace.
Such, then, are the only passages of the Holy Scriptures, in which the first origin of regeneration (so to speak) is marked out, and the circumstances under which it takes place are at all hinted at. And surely this ought, to any careful Christian, to be of great moment; and, instead of longing, as the habit of some is, for more evidence, he will thank God, that the evidence is so clear, that all Christians of old times confidently relied upon it, and transmitted it to us.
But though these passages alone speak of the means of regeneration, they do not alone speak of the effects of Baptism. And here, again, if men read Holy Scripture as the living word of God, they would read it with more fruit. For how can one reconcile the way in which some now allow themselves to speak of Baptism, with the stress which our Blessed Saviour lays upon it? "Go and teach all nations, baptizing them." "He that believeth, and is baptized, shall be saved[33]." Does it consist with their reverence to their Saviour, to think or to speak disparagingly of that, which He enjoined, wherever He should be believed on? or, can one think that our age is herein like-minded with Him? or, do they recollect, that this act alone, in the whole Christian life, was commanded by their ascending Saviour, to be done in the name of the ever-blessed Trinity: that, in St. Chrysostom's[34] words, "the holy angels stand by, doing nothing, they only look on what is done; but the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, effect all. Let us, then, obey the declaration of God, for this is more credible than sight; for sight is, yea and oftentimes, deceived; but that can never fail, obey we then it."
A similar test may be afforded, by the way in which Baptism is elsewhere spoken of, in Holy Scripture. When, e.g. we are declared to be "saved by Baptism" (1 Pet. iii. 22), as before (Tit. iii.) by the "washing of regeneration," let men think, whether this does not sound foreign or (if they dared to think it) repulsive to them; whether it finds any place in their system; or, whether they do not dismiss such an expression from their thoughts, as one requiring explanation to give it a sound sense, instead of conveying, of necessity, doctrinal truth. And if this be so, have we not lost a portion of our inheritance?
Contrast, herewith, St. Augustine's unhesitating faith. "Most excellently," saith he, writing against the Pelagians[35], "do the Punic Christians entitle Baptism itself no other than salvation, and the Sacrament of the Body of Christ no other than life. Whence, except from an old, as I deem, and Apostolical tradition, by which they hold it inserted into the Church of Christ, that, without Baptism, and the participation of the Lord's Table, no man can arrive, either at the kingdom of God, or salvation and life eternal. This, as we have said, is what Scripture testifies. For what do they who entitle Baptism salvation, hold other than what is written, 'He hath saved us by the washing of regeneration;' and what Peter saith, 'The like figure whereunto Baptism doth now save you?'"
In other cases, we seem not only to have lost the original meaning of Holy Scripture, but even all suspicion that we are in error; and, where our Forefathers found fervid and heart-uplifting descriptions of our Baptismal privileges, of God's good gifts, which had been actually conferred upon us, these men now find only an emblematic statement of our duties. Take St. Paul's appeal to the Romans (vi. 3.), why they should not continue in sin. "Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into Jesus Christ, were baptized into His death? Therefore we are buried with Him by Baptism into death; that like as Christ was raised from the dead by the glory of the Father, even so we also should walk in newness of life. For, if we have been planted together in the likeness of His death, we shall be also of His resurrection: knowing this, that our old man is crucified in us, that the body of sin might be destroyed." Now, probably, all that a large number of Christians, at the present day, will find in this passage, will be, that Baptism represents (as it does) to us our profession, that we, having been baptized, and having acknowledged Christ as our Lord, are bound to lead a new and godly life, and to be crucified to sin and the world, as He was crucified for our sin; and, if so, that we shall rise with Him. This is very true, and is certainly in the passage; but the question is, whether this be all? whether St. Paul speaks only of duties entailed upon, and not also of strength imparted to us. The Fathers certainly of the Christian Church, educated in holy gratitude for their Baptismal privileges, saw herein, not the death only to sin, which we were to die, but that also which in Christ we had died, the actual weakening of our corrupt propensities, by being baptized and incorporated into Christ; not the life only which we are to live, but the life which, by Baptism, was infused in us, and which as many of us as are now "walking in newness of life," are living in Christ, by virtue of that life. St. Paul, namely, is setting, side by side, our means of grace, and the holiness which we are thereby to strive to attain unto. "We have been all baptized into Christ," i.e. into a participation of Christ, and His most precious death, and union with Him, we, i.e. our old man, our corrupted selves, have been buried with Him, by Baptism, into that death, that we may walk in newness of life. Again, we have been planted in the likeness of His death— that we may be of His resurrection. Again, our old man has been crucified—that the whole body of sin may be destroyed. And so, throughout, there are two deaths, in one of which we were passive[36] only; we were baptized, buried, planted, crucified; the very language marks that this was all God's doing, in us, and for us: there remains the other death, which we must continually die. Sin has once been remitted, slain, crucified; we must, henceforth watch that it live not again in us, that we extirpate all the roots thereof, that we serve it not again, that we live through its death. "It is not here," says St. Chrysostom[37], "as in other Epistles, where St. Paul appropriates one part to doctrine, the other to moral instruction; but he here, throughout, mingles the two. He mentions, then, here, two puttings to death, and two deaths; one, which has taken place through Christ, in Baptism; the other, which must take place through our subsequent diligence. For that our former sins were buried, was His gift; but that we, after Baptism, should remain dead to sin, must be the work of our diligence; for Baptism can not only efface our former offences, but strengthens us also against future. He saith not also, if we have been made partakers of the likeness of death, but if we have been planted; hinting, by the name planting, at the fruit derived to us therefrom. For, as His body, buried in the earth, bore for fruit the salvation of the world; so ours, also, buried in Baptism, bore fruit, righteousness, sanctification, adoption, unnumbered blessings, and hereafter shall bear that of the resurrection. Since, then, we were buried in water, He in the earth, and we in respect to sin, He in regard to the body: therefore he says not, 'planted with Him in death,' but 'in the likeness of death.' For each was death, but not of the same object. Nor does he say merely (v. 6.) our old man was crucified, but was 'crucified together,' bringing Baptism in close union with the cross. He saith this of every man (v. 7.), that he who is dead is freed from sinning, abiding dead; so also he who ascendeth from Baptism; for since he has then once died, he ought to remain throughout dead to sin. If then thou hast died in Baptism, remain dead." And so again[38], "We who have died to sin, how shall we live any longer in it? What is this 'we have died?' is it, that as far as it is concerned, we have all thought right to renounce it? or, rather, that having believed and been enlightened, (received the true light,—been baptized,) we have become dead to it? which the context approves. But what is it to be dead to it? to obey it no longer. For this Baptism has done for us once, it deadened us to it; and for the rest, we must use our own earnest zeal to effect this constantly. So that, though it order us ten thousand times, we should obey it no longer, but remain motionless as the dead. Elsewhere, indeed, he says, that sin itself died; and that, to show how easy goodness becometh; but here, wishing to rouse the hearer, he transfers the death to him. As the death of Christ in the flesh is real, so is our's to sin real; but although it is real, we must for the future contribute our part. "What," saith St. Basil[39] "belongeth to him who hath been born of water? That as Christ died to sin once, so he also should be dead and motionless towards all sin, as it is written, 'as many as have been baptized into Jesus Christ have been baptized into His death.'" And again[40]—"The dispensation of our God and Saviour in behalf of man, is a recalling from his state of fall, a return to a familiar intercourse with God from that state of alienation which took place through the disobedience. For this cause, was the presence of Christ in the flesh; the patterns of evangelical life; the Passion; the Cross; the Burial; the Resurrection; so that man, being saved by the imitation of Christ, receives again that ancient adoption of sons. To the perfection then of life, there is needed the imitation of Christ, not only of the gentleness, and humility, and long suffering, displayed in His Life, but of His Death also; as St. Paul saith—he, the imitator of Christ—'being conformed to His death, if by any means I may attain unto the resurrection of the dead.' How then do we come to the likeness of His death? By 'being buried with Him through Baptism?' What then is the mode of burial, or what the benefit of the imitation? First, it is necessary that the course of the former life should be broken through. But this is impossible, unless a man be born again, as the Lord said. For the re-generation, as the name also itself implies, is the beginning of a second life; so that before we begin the second, an end must be put to the preceding. Wherefore our Lord, in dispensing life to us, gave us the covenant of Baptism, containing an image of death and life—the water fulfilling the image of death, and the Spirit giving the earnest of life. This then is 'to be born again of water and the Spirit,' our death being effected in the water, and our life worked in us by the Spirit. So that whatever grace there is in the water is not from the nature of the water, but from the presence of the Spirit." And St. Augustine, against the Pelagians[41]:—"After the Apostle had spoken of the punishment through one, and the free grace through One, as much as he thought sufficient for that part of his epistle, he then recommended the great mystery of Holy Baptism in the Cross of Christ in this way, that we should understand that Baptism in Christ is nothing else than a likeness of the death of Christ, and the death of Christ crucified nothing else than the likeness of the remission of sin; and as His death is real, so is our remission of sins real, and as His resurrection is real, so is our justification real.—If then we are proved to be dead to sin, because we are baptized into the death of Christ, then the little ones also, who are baptized into Christ, are baptized into His death. For it is said without exception, 'so many of us as are baptized into Christ Jesus, are baptized into His death.' And this is said to prove that we are 'dead to sin.' Yet to what sin do the little ones die, by being born again, but to that which they contracted by being born? And thereby also pertains to them what follows (vv. 4–11.), 'that their old man is crucified with Him—that they are dead indeed unto sin, but alive unto God through Jesus Christ our Lord.'—He saith then to those baptized into the death of Christ, into which not the elder only, but the little ones also are baptized, 'Likewise do ye,'—i.e. as Christ,—'reckon yourselves dead unto sin.'"
In the union also with Christ, in whose death and life they were through Baptism engrafted, the elder Christians saw with the Apostle the pledge of their resurrection. "Hast thou believed," says Chrysostom[42], "that Christ died and rose again, believe then thine own. For this is like to it, since the Cross and the Burial is thine also; for if thou hast shared with Him in the Death and the Burial, much more shalt thou in the Resurrection and the Life. For since the greater, that is, sin, has been destroyed, we may not hesitate about that which is lesser, the destruction of death." And St. Basil[43], in an exhortation to Baptism,—"What can be more akin to Baptism than this day of Easter? for the day is the day of the resurrection, and Baptism is a power to resurrection. On the day then of the resurrection let us receive the grace of the resurrection. Dost thou worship Him who died for thee? Allow thyself then to be buried with Him in Baptism. For if thou be not planted in the likeness of His death, how shalt thou be partaker of His resurrection?" Even Calvin[44], forgetting for a while his dread, lest men should rest in their Baptism, says, "St. Paul proves what he had just said, namely, that 'Christ slays sin in those who are His,' from the effect of Baptism. Know we then that the Apostle does not here merely exhort us to imitate Christ, as if he said, that the death of Christ was a pattern which all Christians should imitate. Assuredly he goes deeper; and brings forward a doctrine, on which afterwards to found exhortation; and this is, that the death of Christ has power to extinguish and abolish the corruption of our flesh, and His resurrection, to raise up in us the newness of a better life; and that by Baptism we are brought into the participation of this grace." And again, on the word "planted," he observes,—"Great is the emphasis of this word, and it clearly shows, that the Apostle is not merely exhorting, but is rather teaching us of the goodness of Christ. For he is not requiring any thing of us, which may be done by our zeal or industry, but sets forth a graffing-in, effected by the hand of God. For graffing-in implies not merely a conformity of life, but a secret union, whereby we become one with Him; so that quickening us by His Spirit, He transfuses His power into us. So then, as the graft shares life and death with the tree into which it is graffed, so are we partakers of the life no less than of the death of Christ."
To take another saying of the Apostle. St. Paul tells the Galatians, (iii. 27.) "For as many of you as have been baptized unto Christ, have put on Christ." Here again what most Christians would now learn from the passage would be the necessity of being conformed to Christ's life, of living consistently with our Christian profession. And this is elsewhere (Rom. xiii. 14) the meaning of the like words, and may be implied here, but as a secondary and derived truth only. The main, great truth refers again to our privileges. For St. Paul is proving that "we are all the children of God through faith in Christ Jesus;" for, he says, as many of you as have been baptized, &c., i.e. whoever of us has been baptized, was thereby incorporated into Christ, and so being made a portion and member of the Son of God, partakes of that sonship, and is himself a child of God: so that henceforth the Father looks upon him, not as what he is in himself, but as in, and a part of, His Well-beloved Son, and loves him with a portion of that ineffable love with which He loves His Son. St. Paul speaks then not of duties, (though every privilege involves a duty corresponding,) but of privileges, inestimable, inconceivable, which no thought can reach unto, but which all thought should aim at embracing,—our union with God in Christ, wherein we were joined in the Holy Baptism. And so again we may see how the foolishness of God, in what men call carnal ordinances, is wiser than man; and how a false spirituality, by disparaging the outward ordinance, loses sight of the immensity of the inward grace; and holding lightly by God's appointment, as being "legal," does thereby fall back into mere legality. God gave adoption and union with Himself in Christ through the Spirit; we, disregarding His ordinance, have found but a Law. Contrast with these cold views the comment of one who prized his Baptism as the source of his spiritual life in Christ, M. Luther. "'To put on Christ' is two-fold; legal and evangelical. Legal, (Rom. xiii.) 'imitate the example and excellencies of Christ,' do and suffer what He has done and suffered: so, 1 Peter ii., 'Christ suffered for us, leaving us an example that ye should follow His steps.' But we see in Christ infinite patience, gentleness, and love, and a wonderful moderation in all things. This ornament of Christ we ought to put on, i.e., imitate these His excellencies. So also we may imitate other Saints. But to put on Christ evangelically is not a matter of imitation, but of birth and new creation; when, namely, I am clothed with Christ Himself, i.e., His innocence, justice, wisdom, power, salvation, life, spirit, &c. We are clothed with Adam, clothes of skins, mortal clothes, and a garment of sin. This raiment, i.e., this corrupt and sinful nature, we contracted by our descent from Adam, which St. Paul calls the old man, and which is to be 'put off with its deeds,' (Eph. iv. Coloss. iii.) that out of sons of Adam we may be made sons of God. This is not done by any change of vestment, not by any laws or works, but by the new birth and renewal which takes place at Baptism; as St. Paul says, 'whoever of you are baptized have put on Christ;' 'according to His mercy He saved us by the washing of regeneration,' &c. For there is kindled in the baptized a new life and flame, there arise new and holy feelings, fear, trust in God, hope, &c.; there ariseth a new will. This, then, is properly, truly, and Evangelically to 'put on Christ.' Therefore in Baptism there is not given us a clothing of legal righteousness or our own works, but Christ is our raiment. But He is not law, nor legislator, nor work, but a Divine and unspeakable gift, which the Father gave us, to be our Justifier, Life-giver, and Redeemer. Wherefore Evangelically to put on Christ is not to put on a law or works, but an inestimable gift, viz. remission of sins, righteousness, peace, consolation, joy in the Holy Ghost, salvation, life, and Christ Himself. This place is to be carefully noted against Fanatic spirits, who depreciate the majesty of Baptism, and speak wickedly thereof. St. Paul on the contrary sets it forth with magnificent titles, calling it the 'washing of regeneration and of the renewal by the Holy Ghost;' and here he says, that all baptized persons have put on Christ; speaking, as I said, of a "putting-on," which should be not by imitating, but by being born. He says not—Ye have received in Baptism a token, whereby ye are enrolled among Christians, as the sectaries dream, who make of Baptism a mere token, i.e. a trivial and empty sign; but he says, 'As many as have been baptized, have put on Christ,' i.e. have been borne away out of the law into a new birth, which took place in baptism. Therefore ye are no longer under the law, but are clothed with a new garment, the righteousness of Christ. St. Paul then teaches that Baptism is not a sign, but the putting on of Christ—yea, that Christ himself is our clothing. Wherefore Baptism is a thing most powerful and efficacious. But when we are clothed with Christ, the clothing of our righteousness and salvation, then also shall we be clothed with Christ, the clothing of imitating Him."
And so Chrysostom[45], "And now he shows that they are sons not of Abraham only, but of God also; 'for ye are all sons of God through faith which is in Christ Jesus'—through faith, not through the law. And then, since this is a great and wonderful thing, he names also the mode of their adoption, ' for as many of you as have been baptized into Christ, have put on Christ.' And why saith he not, 'for as many as have been baptized into Christ have been born of God?' for so had he proved more directly that they were sons. He saith this in a way much more awefully great. For since Christ is the Son of God, and thou hast put Him on, having the Son in thyself, and being transformed into His likeness, thou hast been brought into one kindred and one species with Him."
I will add two passages only to show how the early Church found in this doctrine an incitement to holiness and virtue. "Let us not continue," says St. Chrysostom[46] to the candidate for Baptism, "to gape after the things of this life, the luxury of the table, or the splendour of dress; for thou hast a most glorious garment: thou hast a spiritual table; thou hast the glory which is on high; and Christ becometh every thing to thee, table, and garment, and dwelling-place, and head and root; 'for as many as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ;'" and St. Gregory[47] of Nazianzum, in the midst of similar applications of Baptismal privileges, "Is there any sick and full of sores? respect thy own health, and the wounds from which Christ has freed thee. Seest thou one naked? clothe him, reverencing thy own garment of immortality—and that is Christ, 'for as many as,'" &c.
It might have sufficed, perhaps, to have noticed one passage, in which, through our depreciation of our Blessed Saviour's ordinance, we have lost the support, the strength, the cheering hope, which He provided for us. For our mode of understanding any passage of Holy Scripture is not to be considered as something insulated: resulting, as it does, from our general frame of mind, our habits of thought and feeling, and the character of our religious belief. Our insight into Scripture, as it is an instrument in forming our minds, so is it in part the result of the mind formed within us: our character of mind is a condition of understanding God's Word: according to what we ourselves are become, does that Word appear to us: it is given to us according as we have: our present is in proportion to our past, profit. No misunderstanding then of any portion of Holy Scripture; (I speak—not, of course, of words or expressions, but—of the general tenor of passages of Scripture;) no shallowness of conception; no false spiritualism, or sluggish resting in the letter of any place, can stand singly; for, whatever be the defect which dims our sight in the one place, it will obscure our understanding of other passages also. This, as before said, we readily admit in gross and palpable cases; we know, indeed, from authority, of the veil on the hearts of the Jews, and of the god of this world, who blindeth the understandings of the unbelieving: we readily admit that one who has, practically, vague notions of justification by faith will understand but little of St. Paul; but we fail often to apply the test to our own case, and thoroughly to examine what is wanting to our own mental character, and how that deficiency prevents our more fully understanding God's Word. What our dull eyes see in large and flagrant instances, exists, we may be sure, where they are too heavy to penetrate; so that no one wrong habit of mind, or faulty principle can exist, in however slight a degree, without affecting our views of Scripture truth.
It may be useful, however, to see the effect of our modern principles, and our practical depreciation of Baptism in other passages of Holy Scripture. When people then, again, read (Col. ii. 11.) of our "being circumcised with the circumcision which is made without hands,—buried with Christ in Baptism, raised together with Him through faith of the operation of God, who hath raised Him from the dead," they probably think of the circumcision of the heart which we ought to have, of the complete extinction of all sinful tendencies, at which we ought to aim, of the power of the faith which we ought to cherish. Yet this again is but a portion of the truth: it tells us of the end which we are to arrive at, but not of the means, whereby God gives us strength on our way thitherward: it speaks of the height of God's holy hill, but not of the power by which we are caught up thither. Not so St. Paul. He is persuading the Colossians to abide in the state in which they had been placed; to rest upon the foundation on which they had been laid; to root themselves in the soil in which they had been planted; to be content with the fulness which they had received from Him by whom they had been filled, and in whom dwelt all the fulness of the Godhead bodily; to abide in Him whom they had received. For he feared lest they should be taught by the vain deceit of a false philosophy to take other stays than their Saviour, or to lean on the now abolished tradition of circumcision. To this end he reminds them that they needed nothing out of Christ; for they had been filled with Him, who filleth all in all, the Head of all rule and all power; therefore they needed no other power, but only His,—they had received the true circumcision, and so could require no other; they had been disencumbered of the sinful mass, with which they were naturally encumbered, "the body of the sins of the flesh" by the circumcision which Christ bestowed: their old man had been buried with Him in Baptism; they had been raised with Him, (as they ascended out of the water,) by a power as mighty as that which raised Him from the dead: all their old sins had been forgiven, and they themselves re-born from the dead, and been made partakers of the life of Christ, "quickened with Him;" the powers of darkness had been spoiled of their authority over them, and exhibited as captives and dethroned. All these things had been bestowed upon them by Baptism; the mercies of God had been there appropriated to them; sins blotted out; their sinful nature dead, buried in Christ's tomb: death changed into life; and therefore, as they had no need, so neither were they to make void these gifts by trusting in any other ordinances, or looking to any other Mediator. St Paul dreads that through false teaching and a false self abasement, they should not hold to the Head, (v. 18). But does he depreciate their baptismal privileges? or, because they were tempted to lean on circumcision, does he disparage outward ordinances? or dread that the exaltation of the ordinance should lead to a depreciation of Christ? Rather, he shows them how every thing which they sought, or could need, was comprised, and already bestowed upon them in their Saviour's gift, in His ordinance: that this ordinance was no mere significant rite, but contained within itself the stripping off of the body of sin, death, resurrection, new life, forgiveness, annulment of the hand-writing against us, despoiling of the strong one, triumph over the powers of darkness. We also have been thus circumcised, have been buried, raised, quickened, pardoned, filled with Christ: all this God has done for us, and are we not to prize it? not to thank God for it, "stablished in the faith which we have been taught, and abounding therein with thanksgiving?" (v. 7.) and are we, for fear men should rest in outward privileges, to make the Lord's Sacrament a mere outward gift, deny His bounty, and empty His fulness? or rather ought we not, with the Apostle, to tell men of the greatness of what they have received, and repeat to them His bidding, "since then ye have been raised together with Christ, seek what is above, where Christ sitteth at the right hand of God:" ye have died[48]; slay then your earthly members: ye have laid aside the old man, and have put on the new, and that, in its Creator's image, again restored to you: "put ye on then, as having been chosen and loved of God," the ornaments befitting this new creation in you, mercy, gentleness, and the other graces; ye have been forgiven, forgive. Thus does St. Paul obviate the resting in outward ordinances, by showing namely that the Christian ordinances are not outward; that they are full of life and honor, and immortality, for that they are full of Christ. Is there not danger of our losing our treasures also by a "voluntary humility?" Is not our dread of the consequences of exalting Christ's ordinances, "after the rudiments of the world" (an earthly wisdom) "and not after Christ?"
In these passages, we have deprived ourselves of the strength which God purposed to impart through them to His Church; and, yet more, have robbed ourselves and our flock of the knowledge of the greatness of the gift intended for them, by God, in Baptism. In another class, we have appropriated to ourselves the gift, independently of the channel through which it is conveyed. We are, namely, in different passages of Holy Scripture, said to have been "sealed by God," or "by the Holy Spirit of God," to "have received an anointing from the Holy One," to "have been anointed by God;" and these passages, persons at once, without doubt or misgiving, interpret of the inward and daily graces of God's Holy Spirit (which are, also, undoubtedly involved in them); so that, if any one were to propose to explain these passages of Baptism, as containing the first pledge and earnest of the Spirit, I fear he would be looked upon as a cold and lifeless interpreter, perhaps as a mere formalist. It will, doubtless, startle such to know, that this was, in some passages at least, the interpretation of almost all Christian antiquity[49]; and it may serve as an index of our altered state of religious belief, that most of us, perhaps, would at first regard as cold and formal, the interpretation, which to them spoke of the fulness of their Saviour's gift. This would, itself, be sufficient for our purpose; for it is not so much abstract proof of the value and greatness of our Lord's Sacraments, that we need, as, rather, to be convinced that our feelings have undergone a change, that we fall very far short of the love and respect which the Fathers of the Christian Church bore to them. And then let us consider within ourselves, whether, since those holy men realized in their lives the ordinances which they loved, we must not confess, that our lessened esteem for our Saviour's gift, betokens a diminished, or, at all events, a less humble affectionateness for the Giver. We aim at receiving every thing directly from God's hand, from His Spirit to ours, and so either disparage His sacraments, or else would make them means only, by which our faith might be kindled, to "ascend into heaven," and "bring down Christ from above," instead of being content diligently to cleanse our own hearts, and "keep His words," that so His gracious promise may be fulfilled—"My Father will love him, and we will come unto him and make our abode with him." (John xiv. 23.) This had been an important consideration, quite independent of the question, which were, in this instance, the right interpretation: for, as there could be no doubt which loved his Saviour most, the interpreter who found Him every where in the Old Testament prophecy, or he who found Him nowhere; so, also, could there be little, probably, between the character of mind, which looked joyously to the gift of the Holy Ghost, through his Saviour's ordinance, and that which regarded any reference to that ordinance, lifeless and cold. There could be no doubt, I think, of this generally; although, as was before said, individuals might either "hold the truth in unrighteousness," or, being in error, might still derive food for their piety, from other truth in God's rich storehouse. Since, however, no error in Scripture can be unimportant, it may be well to consider a few points, which tend to shew, that the "sealing[50] by Baptism" was here intended. First, then, it should be observed, that, in each case, St. Paul speaks of this "sealing" as a past action. "He who establisheth us with you in Christ, and anointed us, is God; who, also, is He who sealed us (ὁ καὶ σφραγισάμενος), and gave the earnest of the Spirit in our hearts" (2 Cor. i. 22): "in whom ye also, having heard the word of truth, the gospel of your salvation—in whom ye, having believed also, were sealed ( ἐσφραγίσθητε, by the Holy Spirit of promise, who is the earnest of our inheritance, until the redemption of the purchased possession." (Eph. i. 13, 14.) "Grieve not the Holy Spirit of God, whereby ye were[51] sealed (ἐσφραγίσθητε) unto the day of redemption." (Eph. iv. 30.) 2. In one passage (Eph. i.) this sealing is mentioned, as immediately following upon the belief of the Gospel—"having believed, ye were sealed;" in a second (Eph. iv.) it stands opposed to subsequent performance of duty—"ye were sealed by the Holy Spirit, grieve Him not;" in the third (1 Cor.) it stands opposed[52] to God's subsequent establishing them in Christ, to their being maintained in this state into which they had been brought—"who establisheth you, who also anointed and sealed you." 3. The word "sealed" was already in use among the Jews[53], and is recognized by St. Paul, as designating the act by which men were brought into covenant with God, and received its privileges. Now it would, indeed, be a very perverted mode of arguing, to infer, either that the seal of the Christian covenant only attested the faith which already existed (as in the case of Abraham), or that the seal of the Jewish covenant conveyed the same privileges as the Christian; for this would be to identify the earlier with the later dispensation; and as one exposition unduly derogates from the Christian sacrament, so does the other exalt the seal of the Jewish covenant beyond what we have any certain warrant for, or even intimation-of, from Holy Scripture. Still, one should suppose, that St. Paul, when employing terms, already in use among the Jews, would apply them to the corresponding portion of the Christian system. Since, then, circumcision, by which the covenant was ratified to the Jew, was spoken of as a "seal," and that by St. Paul also (Rom. iv. 11.), St. Paul, if he used the word "seal" with reference to the Christian, would obviously use it of that by which each person was brought within the Christian covenant—the Sacrament of Baptism. But it were the very error of the rationalists to suppose, that God's Holy Spirit, when He took the words used in Jewish Theology, and employed them to express Christian Truth, conveyed nothing more by them, than they would have meant in the mouth of any ordinary Jew; and did not rather, when receiving them into the service of the sanctuary, stamp them anew, and impress upon them His own living image. Since, namely, Baptism is not a mere initiatory rite, but is an appointed means for conveying the Holy Spirit, the language must in some respect be conformed to our higher privileges; and, instead of the covenant being said to be sealed to us, we are declared to be sealed by the Holy Spirit: since the Holy Spirit is then first pledged and imparted to us, and the earnest then given us is a pledge, that unless we wilfully break off the seal, we shall be carried on to eternal life, with larger instalments of our promised possession, until "the possession, purchased" for us, by Christ's precious blood-shedding, shall be fully bestowed upon us, and God's pledge be altogether "redeemed." 4. The Christian fathers have, from Apostolic times, used the word "seal" as a title of Christian Baptism; a relic whereof we have in the doctrine of our Church, that "the promises of forgiveness of sin, and our adoption to be the sons of God, by the Holy Ghost, are therein visibly signed and sealed." Thus Hermas (about A.D. 65–81):—"Before[54] a person receive the seal of the Son of God, he is doomed to death; but when he receives that seal, he is freed from death, and made over to life. But that seal is water, into which men go down bound over to death, but arise, being made over to life. That seal, then, was preached to them also, and they made use of it, to enter into the kingdom of God." The least which this would shew, is that such was the received usage of the word "seal" in the time of St. Paul; but no one, admitting this, will readily suppose, that St. Paul would have used the term with regard to Christians, unless he had meant it to be understood of the Sacrament of Baptism. The Fathers, moreover, uniformly speak of Baptism as sealing, and so keeping, guarding us, as it were a seal placed upon us[55], &c.; moderns call it a seal, ratification, or outward mark, of God's covenant. The two metaphors are essentially distinct; our modern usage is borrowed from St. Paul's description of the older covenant, whereof circumcision was the seal, but was no sacrament; that of the Fathers agrees with this reference to Baptism, which, being a Sacrament, seals, guards, preserves us[56], as well as guarantees the promises of God towards us.
It would appear then, that the interpretation which perhaps most among us would in the first instance have looked upon as cold and formal, is, I might say, certainly true: and if so, it may well be a warning how we hold any thing, which ties us down to Christ's sacraments, to be cold or formal; for in this case it will be God's Holy Spirit which we have ignorantly suspected of teaching coldly and lifelessly. Not as though we supposed that the Apostle here speaks of a sealing, which having taken place once for all, it then remained, as it were on a lifeless mass of goods, or would keep us safe without any effort, self-denial, or prayer; but rather, that as a living seal stamped upon our souls by the Spirit of life, and bearing with it the impress of the Divine Nature, it would renew continually in our souls the image of Him who created us, our Father, our Redeemer, our Sanctifier, make us more and more wholly His, more partakers of that Nature; and that we, having that "seal of God upon our foreheads," (Rev. ix. 4.) and our hearts, the Angel of the bottomless pit should not have any power to hurt us, unless we allow it to be obliterated. The difference between the two interpretations, as before said, is this—the one would date his sealing from the time when any man ceases to oppose the workings of God's Holy Spirit (which might unobjectionably be called, though not by a scriptural phrase, the conversion of such an one); the other would look upon it as our Saviour's gift in His sacrament of Baptism, wherein all the gracious influences of God's Holy Spirit, as well those which any of us contumaciously reject, as those which we at last admit, are pledged to us.
We may learn very much by all such instances, in which our own (as we suppose Christian) views differ from the teaching of God's Word; and, were we to watch all the instances in which (with a but half-acknowledged repugnance or distaste) we glide over statements of doctrine, or practice, or history, which are not in accordance with our state of feeling, we should learn far more, and become far completer Christians, than we now are. For then we should be indeed God's scholars, which we can hardly call ourselves, as long as we make these self-willed selections of what we will learn. Thus one, who looks upon the Lord's Supper as little more than a commemorative sign of an absent thing, passes lightly over our Saviour's words, "This is my Body." Another glosses over the doctrine of justification by faith. In these days we seem almost to have lost sight of the truth, that we shall be judged according to our works. Other's omit passages bearing upon the "godly consideration of predestination, and our election in Christ," (Art. xvii.); others, the possibility of our falling away from God, and its great danger; and so again, the injunctions as to unceasing prayer, self-denial, non-requital of injuries, vain ostentation, or the glorifying of our Heavenly Father, are dispensed with without remorse, and read with what, if men examined it, they would find to be the very spirit of unbelief.
Of such instances, is St. Paul's comparison of the relation of the married state to that of Christ and his Church (Eph. v. 22. sqq.) A portion of "the world" has already begun to shrink from this; and no wonder: for with what different feelings ought marriage to be thought of, encompassed, realized, lived in, if it is in any way to furnish a type of the relation of Christ to His Church! It is not, however, so much to our purpose to dwell on this, as to look on the converse; what different feelings, namely, the Apostle must have had, with regard to the Church as the whole, and to Holy Baptism;—in that he not only speaks of the Church prominently, and then but subordinately of the individual members; but that he in this place speaks in two words only, of Christ's precious blood-shedding, or rather of His whole life and death for the Church, and then dwells on the value of the gift of Baptism, and of the sanctification of the Church thereby intended. "Husbands, love your wives, even as Christ also loved the Church, and gave Himself for it; that He might sanctify it, having cleansed it (ἁγιάσῃ, καθαρίσας)[57] with the washing of water by the word, (i.e. as the Ancients explained it, 'water rendered powerful and efficacious by the Divine word of consecration,') that he might present it to Himself a glorious Church, not having spot or wrinkle, or any such thing, but that it should be holy and without blemish." And this is the more remarkable, inasmuch as the Apostle draws no inference whatever from this description which he gives of the purity of the Church, but simply concludes as he began, "so ought men to love their wives as their own bodies,—even as the Lord the Church." The only point of comparison which he insists on, is the fostering love of Christ, which the husband was, in his relation, to imitate: and therefore, since St. Paul thus singled out and dwelt upon the gift of Baptism, he must have had most exalted notions of that Sacrament, as a proof of the love of the Saviour of the Church, "in nourishing and cherishing it." For a man doth not launch out into such a fervid description as this, without strong emotions of the value and excellency of what he so describes. Or, rather, one should say, the Holy Spirit, in filling the Apostle's mind with such high notions of the continual love and providence of Christ for His Church, as manifested in the efficacy which he gave to the water of Baptism, to sanctify and cleanse it, and in causing him thus to dwell on the purity thereby to be effected, must have intended to work a corresponding love in us, and to correct the cold and unloving sophisms of sense and reason about the power of Christ's institution. And yet I would confidently appeal to a large number of persons in the present day, whether, often as they have dwelt upon this animating description of the sanctification and spotlessness of Christ's Church, they have not (with a tacit feeling of not entering into them) passed by, almost unnoticed, the words "with the washing of water," to which, however, the Apostle throughout refers in his subsequent picture of the Church's unblemishedness? And if so, is it not time that we seek to correct this variance between the Apostle's feelings and our own[58]?
One might apply the same argument to the passages of St. John, (1 Epist. ii. 20, 27,) in which he speaks of the "anointing" which Christians had received from Christ. In each place he speaks of it as abiding in its effects; but in the latter (c. ii. 27,) as having been received of Christ at some former time. Here again it might be natural to infer that a gift, whose operation continued, but which is spoken of as having been formerly received, was first communicated at some particular time, and that having been received from Christ, it was received through some institution of Christ. Again, the very term "anointing" would lead one to think of an act in part outward, and since it was employed under the Jewish law to consecrate things or persons to the service of God, it might the more obviously be used for the consecration of "lay-priesthood[59]" as baptism is called; and that the more, since our Blessed Saviour was actually consecrated and anointed (comp. Luke iii. 21, 22, iv. 1, 14, 16) by the descent and abiding of the Holy Ghost at His Baptism, and then became the Christ: since, moreover, the same "sevenfold gifts" of the Holy Spirit, which were bestowed upon the Christ at His baptism (Is. xi. 1, lxi. 1, Luke iv. 18) are here spoken of by St. John, as having been in their measure imparted to Christians; and "anointing" (as we saw above) is by St. Paul (2 Cor. i.) united with the "sealing" of baptism. To this may be added the very use of the name "the anointing" in Christian antiquity to designate baptism; and the early and general use of Chrism or anointing, as a holy and significant act thereat, and since it was part of Baptism, a Sacramental act also[60]. But whether St. John (as seems to me most probable) referred to a specific act at Baptism, or to Baptism itself, as "making us kings and priests to God," thus far makes no difference. What I would now advert to is this, that Christian antiquity interpreted these passages of Holy Baptism, as being the source of our illumination, as of our sanctification; while moderns find under the term "anointing" the gifts of the Holy Spirit, or grace, or wisdom, or the Blessed Spirit Himself, as anointing Christians either immediately, or mediately through the ministry of the word,—any thing in short rather than the institution of our Blessed Saviour. And I would wish persons to consider whether this do not imply a changed feeling, a less vivid recognition of the value of the "means of grace," and an independence of ordinances which is less humble than that of the early Christians.
The same might be said of other passages; and it may help to set before our eyes the extent of our practical departure from the system of early Christianity, if we touch briefly upon them. Thus, when St. Paul exhorts the Hebrews (iv. 22, 23) to draw near to Christ with a pure heart in full assurance of faith, inasmuch as their hearts had been purified by Christ's blood, and its merits applied by Holy Baptism, for so the Fathers understood the words "our hearts sprinkled from an evil conscience and our bodies washed by pure water," moderns have found mere allusions to legal ablutions, or else have supposed that "the washing of the body with pure water" represented simply the purifying of the soul by the direct influence of the Holy Spirit, without any intervention of the consecrated element.
Again, we might observe how in the Apostolic exhortation to unity (Eph. iv. 4. sqq.) the oneness of baptism is set forth, together with all those things which we account most spiritual, "one body, one spirit, one hope of our calling, one Lord, one faith, one baptism, one God and Father of all, who is above all, and through all, and in you all." As has been well said, "all are things inward, belonging to the Church and to its several members." Our "one regeneration and engraffing into Christ" may well occupy its place among our most glorious privileges, for it is the basis of all the rest; the earnest of the Spirit, the ground of our hope, the gift or confirmation of our faith, the union with Christ, and thereby with His Father and our Father, how should it not be a thing most inward? and how should we be ashamed, if we think only of the outward symbol under which it is made visible to us? This also, we may note, is the fourth mention of baptism in this one short epistle to the Ephesians,—a Church, as it should seem, in the most spiritual state, of those to whom St. Paul wrote. The Sacrament of regeneration is again referred to by St. Paul (1 Cor. xii. 13) as a ground of Christian unity, together with that of the Communion with Christ, "By one Spirit we are all baptized into one body." "Here, also, again," says Bucer[61], "there is ascribed to baptism an incorporation into Christ the Lord, and a concorporation in that Christ with all saints, and that by the same Spirit."
Again, let any one consider the emblems under which Baptism is pointed out in Scripture, as having been figured in the Old Testament, the flood, and the passage of the Red Sea. In modern times, neither has appeared a very obvious similitude: the symbol of the Ark, as an emblem of Christ's Church, has recommended itself to us; not so the resemblance of Baptism to the flood, since the flood destroyed life, Baptism saves it. The Apostle, however, looks upon the flood as the entrance, and the only entrance into the Ark, and laying aside all other points of resemblance or of difference, he fixes our minds upon this one subject,—by what means we were brought in thither[62]; and since the flood was the occasion of Noah's entering the Ark, and the Ark was borne up by that water which destroyed those who entered not therein, he pronounces that "the few, the eight souls were brought therein safe by water: the antitype whereof, Baptism, doth also now save us, not the putting away the filth of the flesh, but the inquiry into a good conscience towards God," i.e. Baptism, not as an outward rite, but accompanied with Faith, the baptized person answering with a good conscience to the inquiry made into his Faith[63]. It was then an object with the Apostle to impress upon the minds of Christians the greatness of the Sacrament of Baptism, by comparing it with the most wonderful displays of Almighty power which this globe had ever witnessed: and the less obvious the resemblance, the more moment we must suppose there to have been in pointing out their connection: or rather we should admire God's mercy, who in the record of His dispensations so harmonized them together, that we should not be "staggered through unbelief," at the meanness of the instruments which he uses[64]; but having seen that the Holy Spirit condescended to brood over the shapeless mass of waters, and thence to produce order and life—that water was the means appointed for saving Noah and his sons—that Moses and Israel descended into the water of the Red Sea as into a tomb, and thence arose again, and were delivered—that water cleansed Naaman from leprosy, and the children of Israel from pollution,—we might the more readily believe that water should be consecrated by God "for the mystical washing away of sin," and connect the admonitions of His previous dispensations with the greatness of our present privilege.
And whoever thinks lightly of Water-Baptism, if he compare his mind with that of St. Peter, will surely find himself reproved, in that the Apostle held the flood, which covered the face of the whole earth, and the tops of the highest mountains, and prevailed upwards, to be but a shadow and type[65] of the baptismal stream, which each of our little ones enters as a child of wrath, and arises "a child of God, a member of Christ, an heir of Heaven." And when men, guided perhaps by these scriptural types, or by tradition, saw in the blood and water which issued from their Saviour's side a pledge of the expiating and sanctifying character of His Baptism, that it was a Baptism "not of water only, but of water and blood," of water purified, and purifying by the efficacy of that blood, one cannot deny that there was at least more of affectionateness in their view; and more of encouragement also, when in the heavens[66] opening at our Saviour's Baptism, they saw the emblem of the higher Heavens, opened by Him to all believers.
The same observation might be extended to the history of the first conversions to the faith. If, namely, we observe all the indications in the Acts, we shall find a stress laid upon baptism, which would surprise us, and thereby evince that there was something faulty in our previous notions. For baptism is not urged upon the converts, as we might suppose, as a proof of sincerity, or a test of faith, in embracing openly the worship of the Crucified, and so being prepared, literally as well as in spirit, to "take up the cross and follow Him," but for its own benefits in and for itself. Let any one think what, according to his views of the Christian truth, would have been his answer to the multitude, who, "pricked in their hearts, asked Peter and the rest. Men and brethren, what shall we do?" I doubt that their answer would not have been, "Repent and be baptized every one of you, in the name of Jesus Christ, for the remission of sins, and ye shall receive the gift of the Holy Ghost." I cannot but think that very many of us would have omitted all mention of baptism, and insisted prominently on some other portion of the Gospel message; i.e. our notions of the relative value of Gospel truths and ordinances differ from those of the inspired Apostles. But to take a single instance, and that the most conspicuous, St. Paul. It is commonly said that he, having been miraculously converted, was regenerated, justified by faith, pardoned, had received the Holy Ghost before he was baptized. Not so, however, Holy Scripture, if we consider it attentively: before his baptism he appears neither to have been pardoned, regenerated, justified, nor enlightened. He had been suddenly told his sin in persecuting Christ, and he asked, under this conviction, "Lord, what wilt thou have me to do?" But Christ tells him not: He neither immediately pronounces his forgiveness nor teaches him how it may be obtained, but informs him solely that He has a work for him to perform, that he is now simply to obey, and what he is to do he shall know hereafter. Thus He sends him, his bodily blindness as an emblem of that of his mind, to tarry the Lord's leisure (Acts ix. 6. xxii. 10.) What took place during those three days and nights of bodily and mental darkness, during which, doubtless, in intense anxiety, (through which he "did neither eat nor drink"), with one only cheering look into the future[67], he reviewed the course of his past life, God's guidance, and his own wilfulness, we are not told; nor how this probation of acute suffering was necessary for the framing of this "chosen vessel:" but it is at least implied, that, as yet, in answer to his prayers, there had been conveyed only a general intimation of God's good intentions toward him, of His purpose to remove the outward sign of His displeasure: "Behold, he prayeth, and hath seen, in a vision, a man named Ananias, coming and putting his hand upon him, that he might receive his sight." But as yet neither were his sins forgiven, nor had he received the Holy Ghost; and consequently was not born again of the Spirit, before it was conveyed to him through his Saviour's Sacrament. "And now, why tarriest thou?" says Ananias; "arise, and be baptized, and wash[68] away thy sins." (Acts xxii. 16.) "The Lord Jesus, that appeared unto thee in the way, as thou comest, hath sent me, that thou mightest receive thy sight, and be filled with the Holy Ghost." And this was done; for "there fell from his eyes as it had been scales, and he received sight forthwith, arose, and was baptized." The account of the fulfilment is obviously commensurate with the promise. As then by the falling of the scales, his outward darkness was removed, and he received sight; so by baptism was the inward, and he was filled with the Holy Ghost. But if even to St. Paul, for whose conversion our Saviour Himself vouchsafed again to become visible to human sight, regeneration and the other gifts of the Holy Spirit were not imparted without the appointed Sacrament of grace, why should this be expected or looked for by others?
Oxford,
Feast of St. Bartholomew.
(TO BE CONCLUDED IN THE NEXT NO.)
These Tracts are published Monthly, and sold at the price of 2d. for each sheet, or 7s. for 50 copies.
LONDON: PRINTED FOR J. G. & F. RIVINGTON,
ST. PAUL'S CHURCH YARD, AND WATERLOO PLACE.
1835.
Gilbert & Rivington, Printers, St. John's Square, London.
TRACTS FOR THE TIMES.
SCRIPTURAL VIEWS OF HOLY BAPTISM.
CONTINUED.
More backward still, and to that water fly.
Which is above the heavens, whose spring and vent
Is in my dear Redeemer's pierced side.
O blessed streams! either ye do prevent
And stop our sins from growing thick and wide,
Or else give tears to drown them as they grow.
George Herbert. Holy Baptism.
Hitherto, we have dwelt on the greatness of the privileges of Baptism: there is yet another, and a very awful view given in Holy Scripture, the danger of losing them. Though "not every deadly sin, willingly committed after Baptism, is sin against the Holy Ghost, and unpardonable; and therefore the grant of repentance is not to be denied to such as fall into sin after Baptism," (Art. 16), still it appears that every deadly sin after Baptism is not only a step towards final impenitence, but weakens Baptismal grace, and tends to deprive the individual of the ordinary means of restoration. The solemn warning of St. Paul to the Hebrews, (who on account of their fiery trials were especially exposed to the danger of falling away) is by the universal voice of Christian antiquity applied to this case. "It is impossible," he says, (vi. 1. sqq.) as his ground for not "laying again the foundation of repentance from dead works, and of faith towards God, of the doctrine of Baptisms and of laying on of hands;" "it is impossible for those who have once been enlightened, and have tasted of the heavenly gift, and been made partakers of the Holy Ghost, and have tasted the good word of God, and the powers of the world to come, and yet have fallen away, to renew them again unto repentance." Some of this language is now become strange to us, and we might be perplexed to affix the precise meaning to the words "having been enlightened," and "to renew again;" and we should therefore attach the more value to the expositions of those who lived near the Apostle's time and spoke his language. These, however, all, without hesitation, explain "the being enlightened," of the light imparted to men's minds by the Holy Ghost through Baptism; the "renewal" (as in Tit. iii. 5) of the renovation of our nature then bestowed.[69] Nor can any other ground be assigned, for the title "illumination" (φωτισμός) applied even in the second century[70] to Christian Baptism, than that they even then understood St. Paul (here and x. 32) to speak of "baptized persons" as "illuminated" (φωτισθέντας): the Syriac rendering "baptized," attests the interpretation of the Eastern Church at the same period. In both passages indeed there is a manifest reference to the commencement of the Christian course; here to the "elements of the doctrine of Christ," in c. x., to the resoluteness with which, in "the former days" they, "having been enlightened," (i.e. as soon as they were enlightened,) "sustained a great struggle of afflictions." The Fathers then, i.e. the whole which we know of the early Church, uno ore, explain this whole passage of the privileges of Christian Baptism, and of the impossibility of man's again conferring those privileges upon those who had once enjoyed them and had forfeited them: nay, they urge it as at once conclusive against the repetition of Baptism[71]. They restrain not, nor limit the mercies of God, that "he may peradventure give them repentance,—and that they may awake out of the snare of the devil, who have been taken alive by him at his will;" (2 Tim. ii. 25, 26) but they say that the Apostle here peremptorily decides that man has no means to restore such; for man it is impossible[72]. "See," says St. Chrysostom[73], "how awfully and forbiddingly he begins. "'Impossible!' i.e. look not for what is not possible. He saith not, it is not fitting, is not expedient, is not allowable, but—'is impossible;' so that he at once casts them into desperation, if they have but once been illuminated.—Is then repentance excluded? Not repentance, God forbid! but a renewal again by Baptism: for he saith not 'impossible that they should be renewed to repentance,' and there stops; but adds 'that they should be renewed,' i.e. become new, 'by crucifying again:' for to 'make men new' belongs only to Baptism; but the office of Repentance is, when they have been made new, and then become old through sins, to free them from this oldness, and make them new; but it cannot bring them to that former brightness: for then (in Baptism) the whole was grace." He then, (as do all the other Fathers) explains the words "crucifiying the Son of God for themselves afresh" of a second Baptism, as the means of their restoration: it is impossible for them to renew themselves by repeating their Baptism, "since this would be crucifying for themselves the Son of God afresh[74]:" (and this corresponds better with the original than our present version, "seeing they crucify to themselves the Son of God afresh," inasmuch as the Apostle changes the tense, "it is impossible having fallen away (παραπεσόντας) to renew them again, crucifying (i.e. by crucifying ἀνασταυροῦντας)." "For," Chrysostom proceeds, "Baptism is the cross: for 'our old man was crucified with Him,' Rom. vi. 6., and again, 'we were conformed to the likeness of His death,' (v. 5.), and again, 'we have been buried with Him by Baptism into death' (v. 4.) As then Christ cannot be crucified again, (for this were to put Him to an open shame,) so cannot a person be baptized again. He then who baptizeth himself a second time, crucifies Him again—for as Christ died on the cross, so we in Baptism, not in the body, but to sin—by Baptism our old man was buried, and our new man arose, which was conformed to the likeness of His death. If then we must be baptized again. He must die again. For Baptism is nothing else than the destroying of that self that is buried, and raising that other. And he well says, 'crucifying again for themselves,' for he who does this, forgetful of the former benefit, and living carelessly, acts throughout as if there were another Baptism. And what means 'having tasted the heavenly gift'? it is the 'forgiveness of sins.' For this grace belongeth to God only to impart; and this grace is once only grace—he shews that here (in Baptism) there are many gifts: hear, that you may understand: God has vouchsafed to thee, he saith, so great a remission; to thee who sattest in darkness, an enemy, opposer, alienated, hater of God, lost—thou, being such an one, wert suddenly enlightened; the Spirit, the heavenly gift, adoption, the kingdom of Heaven, all other blessings, and mysteries unutterable, were vouchsafed to thee; and if, after this, thou art not the better—and that when thou deservedst perdition, but obtainedst salvation and honour, as if thou hadst done excellently,—how couldst thou be baptized again? In two ways then he shows the thing to be impossible, and places the strongest last. First, that one upon whom so great things had been bestowed, and who treacherously abandoned what had been given him, is unworthy of being again renewed: secondly, that it is not possible that He should again be crucified: for this would be to put Him to an open shame. There is then no second Baptism, none. But if there is, there is a third also, and a fourth; and the former Baptism is annulled by each successive one, and so on to infinity. And when he says, 'and having tasted the good word of God, and the powers of the world to come,' he does not conceal this, (that there is no second Baptism) but almost expressly says it. For to live as Angels,—to stand in need of none of these earthly things,—to know that our adoption guaranteeth to us the enjoyment of future ages—to look to enter into that unapproachable sanctuary—this we learn (then) from the Spirit. But what are 'the powers of the world to come'? Life eternal, or an existence like the Angels: of these things we received the earnest through faith from the Spirit. Tell me then, hadst thou been brought into the royal palace, entrusted with all things therein, and then betrayed all, wouldst thou again be entrusted with them?"
"What then?" he asks, "is there according to the Apostle, no repentance? There is repentance, but there is no second Baptism." And he then describes the repentance whereby Christ might again be formed in us, a repentance,—far different from the easy notions of many in modern times,—through condemnation of sin, confession, deep and abiding and abased humility, intense prayer, many tears by night and day, much almsgiving, abandonment of all anger, universal forgiveness, bearing all things meekly"—so that, beyond the ordinary Christian graces, he seems to think that one who after falling from Baptismal grace, should ever be restored, should not look upon himself as in the rank of those who had kept the white robe of Baptism undefiled, but should live continually the life of Penitents. And this is not Chrysostom's opinion only, but that of the ancient Church, that one who shall have fallen grievously after Baptism, though he may "by God's grace arise again and amend his life," (Art. 16.) cannot be in the same condition, as if he had never so fallen. So also in Scripture. Two great branches of our Blessed Saviour's office are set forth to us. His death and His intercession—His death, the merits of which are applied to us in Baptism, as containing the remission of all past sin, the death of the old man, the imparting of a new nature, the quickening and renewing our souls, the placing us in a state of salvation, as saith St. Paul—"God hath set forth Christ Jesus to be a propitiation through faith in His blood, to declare His righteousness for the remission of the sins that are past," the former sins[75] (τῶν προγεγονότων ἁμαρτημάτων) (Rom. iii. 25,) "the sins of the times of ignorance:" (Acts xvii. 30.) His intercession for sins into which through the infirmity of the flesh, though Christians, we may yet fall. "For these," St. John, who is manifestly speaking of the sins of true believers, saith, "we have an Advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ the righteous, and He is the propitiation for our sins:" but we have no account in Scripture of any second remission, obliteration, extinction of all sin, such as is bestowed upon us by "the one Baptism for the remission of sins." And that such was the view of the antient Church, appears the more from the very abuse which we find derived from it; that many, namely, delayed continually the Sacrament of Baptism (much as persons now do the other Sacrament), because, after they should have received it, they should no more have such full remission. And this unholy frame of mind the Fathers endeavoured to correct, not by denying that they therein held truly, but by setting forth the uncertainty of life, (that so perchance persons who thus neglected Baptism might miss it altogether,) the unworthiness of such a frame of mind—which would desire merely to escape punishment, not to obtain reward or a Father's love,—the ungodliness of thus shrinking from labouring in God's vineyard; but they do not deny, nay they urge as a ground of very careful and wary walking, that the Baptismal purity, if once soiled, cannot be altogether restored: "for that there is no second regeneration[76]" (i.e. no second Baptism,) "no re-formation, no restoration to our former state, yea, though we seek this most earnestly, with many groans and tears; whence there with difficulty (as I at least judge) comes over a certain healing process, which leaves a scar. For this healing does come over (and would that we could efface the scars also! since I too need much mercy), yet is it better to stand in need of no second purification, but to abide by the first, which is, I know, common to all and without toil—(common as the breath of heaven, and diffusion of light, and changes of the seasons, and contemplation of God's works,) and imparted with an equal portion of faith. For it is a fearful thing to bring upon ourselves a laborious for an easy cure; and having cast aside God's pitying grace, to indebt ourselves to chastisement, and set reformation against sin. For how great tears shall we bring before God, that we may equal the fountain of Baptism"? This, I am aware, will appear to many in these days a novel doctrine; to some it perhaps may even seem to trench upon the efficacy of our Saviour's Death: one should be much grieved to perplex any one on such a subject as this: yet better were some temporary perplexity, than that we should go on, teaching people to lean on those merits, in a way unauthorised by God. Since then assuredly we have no Scriptural authority for such views, it may be useful, in order to remove some of the prejudice which lies against a forgotten doctrine, to adduce some passages of other Fathers, men who loved and reverenced their Saviour, who were engaged in defending the truth of the Gospel, and the first of whom was one of the greatest instruments whom God ever raised up for its pure and holy transmission. St. Athanasius[77] then says on this same passage: "The Apostle saith not 'it is impossible to repent;' but impossible on the ground of repentance to renew us. And these are very different. For he who repenteth, ceaseth indeed from sinning, but retaineth the scars of his wounds: but he who is baptized, puts off the old man, and is renewed, having been born again by the grace of the Spirit." St. Cyril of Jerusalem has the same metaphor and the same doctrine. In opposition to the heretics, who spoke of the body as of a mere outward garment, whose defilements affect not ourselves, he says[78], "As a wound which has made deep progress in the body, though it be healed, yet the scar remains, so sin also wounds the soul and body, and the marks of the scars remain in all: they are removed wholly from those only who receive the 'bath.' Former wounds then of soul and body God heals through Baptism, but as to the future let us keep ourselves with all diligence; that having preserved this garment of the body pure, we may not, by a little defilement and self-indulgence, or any other sin, forfeit everlasting salvation." And in like manner Epiphanius[79], even when writing against the error of the Novatians, still insists, "In truth it is impossible to renew those who have been once renewed and have fallen away. For neither can Christ be born again that He may be crucified for us, nor may any one crucify again the Son of God, who is not again to be crucified, nor can any one receive a second Baptism, for there is one Baptism and one renewal. But immediately afterwards the holy Apostle, healing the Church, and caring for its members, subjoins the cure of these things, saying 'I am persuaded better things,' &c. (Heb. vi. 9.) You see how absolutely he declared that the renewal cannot take place a second time: but still did not exclude from salvation those who yet repented; but declared that they were yet allied to it, and had God as the helper of their good deeds, when they repented most thoroughly of their offences, and turned and forsook them." And not in the case of gross sin only, but of the infirmities of good Christians, they held that the scar still remained, even towards the end of life; to be effaced only by continued repentance to the very last. "I think," says Basil[80], "that those noble combatants of God, who have during their whole life wrestled thoroughly with the invisible enemies, after they have escaped all their persecutions, and are come to the end of life, are examined by the ruler of this world, that if they be found to have wounds from their contests, or any stain or mark of sin, they may be a while detained [in life]; but if they be found unwounded and unstained, as being invincible and free, they have their rest given them by Christ."
The Fathers urge the difficulty of the cure of sin after Baptism, at the same time that they urge men to seek it: they set side by side the possibility and the pains of repentance; they urge against the Novatian heretic, that there is still "mercy with God, that He may be feared:" they urge this truth against our own fears, and the insinuations of the evil one, who would suggest hard and desponding thoughts of God, in order to keep in his chain those more energetic spirits, who feel the greatness of their fall, and would undergo any pains whereby they might be restored: but the Antient Church consulted at the same time for that more relaxed and listless sort, (of whom the greater part of mankind consist) who would make the incurring of eternal damnation, the breaking of Covenant with God, the forfeiture of His Spirit, the profanation of His Temple (ourselves) a light thing and easy to be repaired. Therefore, while they set forth the greatness of God's mercy, they concealed not the greatness of man's sin, in again defiling what God had anew hallowed: they concealed not that such a fall was worse than Adam's, since it was a fall from a higher state and in despite of greater aids: that though God's mercy was ever open, yet it required more enduring pains, more abiding self-discipline, more continued sorrow, again to become capable of that mercy. God is always ready to forgive: the sins can be forgiven; and yet they are not! why? but because to rise again after falling from Baptismal grace, is far more difficult than the easiness with which men forgive their own sins, leads them to think; the frame of mind which would really seek forgiveness, requires greater conflict, more earnest prayers, more complete self-abasement, and real renunciation of self, than men can bring themselves to think necessary, or comply with. Men will not confess to themselves how far astray they have gone: they cannot endure that all should be begun anew; and so they keep their sins and perish! But on that very account did the early Church the more earnestly warn them of the greatness of the effort needed. While she affectionately tendered the hopes of pardon held out in God's word, she faithfully warned men not to build those hopes on the sand. She called on men to return—not as if now they could at once lay down all their burthen at their Saviour's feet, but to wash His feet with their tears; to turn—not with the mockery of woe, but with weeping, fasting, mourning, and rending of the heart. They separated not what God had joined. This the Romish Church has done in its way. They held in words, as well as we, that the Sacrament of Baptism could not be repeated, and that its efficacy alone would not wash away sins subsequently committed; but by devising the new Sacrament of Penance, they did contrive, without more cost, to restore men, however fallen, to the same state of undisturbed security in which God had by Baptism placed them[81]. Penance became a second Baptism. Man's longing to be once again secure, was complied with: his old sins were effaced, not to rise up again against him: again and again he began afresh: again and again he was told, "Thy sins are forgiven thee," and so the salutary anxiety about past sin, and its fruit "a righteous, godly, and sober life," were in ordinary minds choked and effaced. Perverting the earnest sayings of the Fathers, they turned the hard and toilsome way of Repentance into the easy and royal road of Penance. Let us beware lest by an opposite course we arrive at the same result. The blood of Christ is indeed all-powerful to wash away sin; but it is not at our discretion, at once, on the first expression of what may be a passing sorrow, to apply It. On true repentance It will yet "cleanse men from all sin;" but how much belongs to true repentance! The fountain has been indeed opened to wash away sin and uncleanness, but we dare not promise men a second time the same easy access to it, which they once had: that way is open but once: it were to abuse the power of the keys entrusted to us, again to pretend to admit them thus: now there remains only the "Baptism of tears," a Baptism obtained, as the same fathers said[82], with much fasting, and with many prayers. We are familiar with the striking saying of Tertullian[83] against despair. "God would not threaten the impenitent, unless He forgave the penitent." Would that we equally laid to heart what he says in the same place[84], of the greatness of that penitence! "Thus far, (namely of Baptismal repentance), thus far, O Christ the Lord, may Thy servants hear and learn of the discipline of repentance, to hear which it needs not that [while Thy servants] they should have offended: henceforth let them know and require nothing of [such] repentance. I am loath to subjoin the mention of a second, yea of a last, hope; lest treating again of a yet remaining aid of penitence, I should seem to mark out a space for sin. God forbid, that men should so interpret this, as if a door was open to sin, because it is open to repentance; and the redundancy of divine benevolence should make human rashness to wax wanton. Let no one become the worse, because God is the more good: sinning again, because there is again forgiveness: there will be an end of escaping, if there is not of offending." After praising those then who shrunk from being again a burthen to the Divine mercy, and who dreaded to seem to trample on what they had obtained," he thus at last, timidly, or rather reverently, advances to set forth God's last provision against the malice of Satan, repentance after Baptism. "God, providing against these his poisons, though the door of full oblivion (ignoscentiæ) is closed, and the bolt of Baptism fastened up, alloweth somewhat still to be open. He hath placed in the vestibule (of the Church, where penitents used to kneel) a second repentance, which might be open to those who knock." But how does Tertullian describe this discipline? "Full confession (exomologesis) is the discipline of prostrating and humbling the whole man; enjoining a conversation which may excite pity; it enacts as to the very dress and sustenance—to lie on sackcloth and ashes: the body defiled, the mind cast down with grief: those things, in which he sinned, changed by a mournful treatment: for food and drink, bread only and water, for the sake of life not of the belly: for the most part to nourish prayer by fasting: to groan; to weep; to moan day and night before the Lord their God; to embrace the knees of the Presbyters and of the friends of God; to enjoin all the brethren to pray for them. All this is contained in 'full confession,' with the view to recommend their repentance; to honour the Lord by trembling at their peril; by pronouncing on the sinner, to discharge the office of the indignation of God; and by temporal affliction,—I say not to baffle, but—to blot out eternal torment. When therefore it rolls them on the earth, it the rather raises them: when it defiles, it cleanses them: accusing, it excuses them: condemning, it absolves them. In as far as thou sparest not thyself, in so far will God, be assured, spare thee[85]."
It is not of course the outward instances and expressions of grief, of which Tertullian speaks, which one would contrast with our modern practice; although most sincere penitents will probably have found it a great hindrance to effectual repentance, that they were obliged to bear about the load of their grief in their own bosoms; that they might not outwardly mourn; that they must go through the daily routine of life without unburthening their souls by a public confession; that they could not, without the evils of private confession, obtain the prayers of God's servants[86]; that their outward, must needs be at variance with, thwarting, contradicting their inward, life:—but this is a distinct subject, although it may well make us pray, that God would fit our Church again to receive the godly discipline, whose absence she annually laments[87], and yet cannot restore. And how are we not open to the indignant burst of Tertullian[88], after speaking of the luxury of his day, "Seek the baths or the glad retreats of the sea-side; add to thy expense; bring together large store of food; choose thee wines well refined; and when they ask thee, on whom bestowest thou this? say,—I have offended against God, I am in danger of perishing eternally, and therefore I am now distracted, and wasted, and agonized, if by any means I may reconcile God, whom, by my iniquities, I have offended."
But what one does mourn, is the loss of that inward sorrow, that overwhelming sense of God's displeasure, that fearfulness at having provoked His wrath, that reverent estimation of His great holiness, that participation of His utter hatred of sin, that loathing of self for having been so unlike to Christ, so alien from God; it is that knowledge of the reality and hatefulness of sin, and of self, as a deserter of God; that vivid perception of Heaven and hell, of the essential and eternal contrast between God and Satan, sin and holiness, and of the dreadful danger of having again fallen into the kingdom of darkness, after having been brought into that of light and of God's dear Son,—it is this that we have lost: it was this which expressed itself in what men would now call exaggerated actions, and which must appear exaggerated to us, who have so carnal and common-place a standard of a Christian's privileges, and a Christian's holiness. The absence of this feeling expresses itself in all our intercourse with the bad, our tolerance of evil, our apathy about remediable, and yet unremedied, depravity; our national unconcernedness about men's souls; our carelessness amid the spiritual starvation of hundreds of thousands of our own people. We are in a lethargy. Our very efforts to wake those who are deeper asleep, are numbed and powerless. Until we lay deeper the foundations of repentance, the very preaching of the Cross of Christ becomes but a means of carnal security.
It is indeed a hard and toilsome path which these Fathers point out, unsuited to our degraded notions of Christianity, as an easy religion, wherein sin and repentance are continually to alternate, pardon and Heaven are again and again offered to all who can but persuade themselves that they are sorry for their sins, or who, from circumstances, from time of life, or any other outward cause, have abandoned the grosser of them. But who empowered us to say that Christ's is an easy yoke to those who have again drawn back to the flesh? Our God has indeed once rescued us: our God will still receive those "who, with hearty repentance and true faith, turn unto Him." But the God of the New Testament is not different from the God of the Old. "Our God is a consuming fire." "Repentance," says St. Ambrose[89], "must be not in words but in deed. And this will be, if thou settest before thine eyes from what glory thou hast fallen, and out of what book of life thy name has been blotted, and if thou believest that thou art placed close by the outer darkness, where shall be weeping of eyes and gnashing of teeth, endlessly. When thou shalt have conceived this in thy mind, as it is, with an undoubting faith, that the offending soul must needs be delivered to the infernal pains, and the fires of hell, and that after the one Baptism no other remedy is appointed than the solace of repentance, be content to undergo any affliction, any suffering, so thou mayest be freed from eternal punishment." "Such a life," he adds, in a case still miserably common, since the bodies of all Christians are the temples of the Holy Ghost, "such a life, such a performance of repentance, if it be persevering, may venture to hope, if not for glory, at least for freedom from punishment."
Hereby it is not meant to imply that the efficacy of Baptism for the remission of sin ceases altogether after it has once been bestowed, which is the error of the Romanists; for we are by Baptism brought into covenant with God, and are made members of Christ, and are entitled to His all-prevailing intercession, when with hearty repentance we again turn to Him: but only that we are then washed, once for all, in His blood; and that, if we again sin, there remaineth no more such complete ablution in this life. We must bear the scars of the sins, which we have contracted: we must be judged according to our deeds. The sense of Scripture in either case is clearly expressed by St. Augustine. For, on the one hand, he saith[90], "that, by the same washing of regeneration; and word of sanctification, all the ills of regenerated man are wholly cleansed and healed; not only the sins, which are now in Baptism all forgiven, but those also which are afterwards contracted by human ignorance and infirmity. Not that Baptism is to be repeated as often as sin is committed, but because thereby that it is once given, there is obtained for the faithful, pardon for all sins, not only for those before, but even for those afterwards committed. For what would repentance benefit, either before Baptism, unless Baptism followed; or afterwards, unless it preceded? In the Lord's prayer itself, which is our daily cleansing, with what fruit or effect would the words 'forgive us our trespasses' be used, unless by persons baptized?" On the other hand, he says distinctly[91], "when an infant begins to have sins of its own after Baptism, these are not removed by Regeneration, but are healed by another cure." And so again he distinguishes at length[92] between three sorts of penitence: one, necessary previous to Baptism, for all except infants, (who, since they cannot exercise freewill, may, through the interrogatories and answers of others, be cleansed from the stains of sins which they contracted through others, of whom they were born;) secondly, the daily penitence, during the whole of our mortal life, for those blameworthy and unholy motions, which, day by day, through the infirmity of the flesh, creep over us; thirdly, for those sins comprised under the Decalogue, if they should be committed. So that he distinctly and clearly separates those sins which, by virtue of our Baptism, are directly remitted to us, and those for which the harder and abiding course of repentance is necessary; although it be our Baptism in the blood of Christ, which renders that repentance effectual. In like manner, St. Leo[93] speaks of "the manifold mercy of God, which so succours human failing, as that the hope of eternal life should not only be bestowed by the free grace of Baptism, but repaired also by the medicine of penitence; so that they who had violated the gifts of regeneration, condemning themselves by their own judgment, should yet attain to the remission of sins." And Theodoret[94] in like manner, vindicating the privilege and possibility of repentance after Baptism, still retains this solemn distinction in the character of sin, and the mode of its forgiveness: "When the Lord gave the disciples a form of prayer, He bade them say, 'Forgive us our trespasses.' This prayer we do not teach the unconsecrated, but the consecrated (baptized.) For no unconsecrated person can dare to say 'Our Father,' not having yet received the gift of adoption. But he who has obtained the gift of Baptism, calls God 'Father,' as being accounted among the sons by grace. These then were enjoined to say, 'forgive us our trespasses.' The wounds then received after Baptism are curable; but not as before, in that then remission is given through faith alone, but now through many tears, and mournings, and weepings, and fastings, and prayer, and toil proportioned to the greatness of the sin committed. For we have been taught neither to despair of those thus circumstanced, nor yet readily to impart to them the Holy Rites. 'Give not,' He saith, 'that which is holy to dogs, nor cast the pearls before swine.'"
Nor are these the views of a later age. On the contrary, the higher we ascend, the more we find a reverential and alarmed apprehension of the great danger of grievous falls after Baptism. Easy remission of sin after Baptism, was a fruit of growing corruption; and this, occasioning, rather than occasioned by, the abuse of the power of the keys. The source of the fears of the early writers, is the more remarkable, as it is entirely independent; they namely referring to the oral, as we to the written teaching of the Apostles. That independence obviously strengthens the belief in the accuracy of their tradition, and of the more awful and rigid interpretation of the Apostle's words; and both combine in the more solemn warning to ourselves. St. Irenæus[95], then, expressly referring for his authority to a Presbyter, who had learnt from the disciples of the Apostles, alleges the great danger which we should incur by sin after Baptism, as a ground why we should be reserved in blaming the sins of the old Fathers. "For[96] their history was written for our warning: for, if the ancients, who preceded us in gifts, for whom the Son of God had not yet suffered, if they failed in any thing, and served the desires of the flesh, were visited with such disgrace, what shall they now suffer, who have despised the coming of the Lord, and served their pleasures? And for those the death of the Lord was a cure and remission: but for those who now sin, Christ shall not now die; for death shall not now have dominion over Him; but the Son shall come in the glory of the Father, requiring from His stewards and dispensers, with usury, the money which He lent them: and to whom He gave much, of them He shall ask the more. We ought not, then, said that presbyter, to be proud, nor to blame the ancients; but ourselves to fear, lest after we have acknowledged Christ, if we do anything displeasing to God, we may have no more remission of sins, but be excluded from His kingdom." St. Hermas,[97] again, directly refers to older teachers. "'Now, also, Sir, I have heard from some teachers, that there is no other repentance than that, when we descend into the water, and receive remission of sins: afterwards we must take heed not to sin, but to remain in that purity.' And he said to me, 'Thou hast heard rightly. But since thou inquirest into all things diligently, I will shew thee this also, not giving occasion (of offence) to those who have, or shall, believe in the Lord. For these have (then) not repentance for sin, but remission. But to those who were called before those days, the Lord assigned repentance. Since God knew the thoughts of the heart, and the weakness of man, and the manifold wickedness of the devil, whereby he devises mischief against the servants of God—therefore the merciful Lord had mercy on the work of His hands; and he assigned that repentance, and gave me power over that repentance. And, therefore, I say unto you, that, after that great and holy calling (Baptism) if any be tempted by the devil and sin, he has one repentance. But if he sin again, and repent, it will not profit the man who doth such things, for hardly will he live to God[98].' And I said, 'Sir, I revived, when I diligently heard these commandments. For I know, that if hereafter I add not to my sins, I shall be saved.' And he said, 'Yea, and all who shall do these commandments, shall be saved." This passage of St. Hermas is the more remarkable, since he lays down the principle, upon which more than one repentance after Baptism would probably be very rare, if not altogether hopeless, coinciding with the known teaching of the Apostles, and with subsequent experience, although limiting very awfully what their written teaching has left undefined. And these, and similar Apostolic sayings, were the foundation, doubtless, of that primitive Ecclesiastical rule[99], which, in the case of any grievous offences, granted the Church's ministry of reconciliation once, and once only[100], after Baptism: so that this rule was probably formed, not, as was afterwards thought, for the greater security of the Church, and its greater purity, but because it was much to be feared, that they who had been brought, by repentance, to a second childhood, and, as it were, to a second Baptism (of tears), could not again be even thus restored. "Rightly are they blamed," says St. Ambrose[101], "who think that repentance is frequently to be re-enacted, for they wax wanton in Christ. For if they were truly repenting, they would not think it often to be repeated; for, as there is one Baptism, so also one repentance—one, I say, public repentance—for we ought to repent of our daily sins; but this repentance is for lighter offences, that for heavier. But I have found more readily persons, who retained their innocence, than such as repented, as were fitting. Will any one call that repentance, where men seek for worldly dignity, drink wine to the full, or use the enjoyments of marriage? The world must be renounced. Sleep itself must be less indulged than nature requires, must be interrupted with groans, must be sequestrated for prayer. We must live so as to die to this life. Man must deny himself, and be wholly changed." And if we could now see the contrast of penitence with impenitence, of the world and the flesh with God, as the early Christians did, when the fiery trials, to which they were subjected, left so little room for self-deceit, we should probably see, that their strict rules were founded on truth and reality. St. Clement of Alexandria, himself a diligent follower of Apostolic tradition[102], quoting[103] and commenting on this passage of St, Hermas (whom he regards as having received inspiration second only to Scripture), assigns the same intrinsic ground for the improbability of frequent repentance. Having quoted Heb. x. 26, 27, as expressing the same doctrine, which St. Hermas also delivered, he adds: "But the constant repentances alternating with the sins, differ in nothing from entire infidelity, except only that these are aware that they are sinning; and I know not which is worse, to sin wilfully, or, having repented for past sin, again to offend." And again[104], in answer to Basilides, who contended that involuntary sins, and sins of ignorance, were alone forgiven, he says, that "those who fall into sin after Baptism, those were they who were chastised; for that former sins were freely remitted, but subsequent ones were purged away (by suffering.)" The like earnest language we find in St. Clement of Rome[105] (if, as seems probable, the second epistle also is his, or at all events a very ancient author.) "If such men as Noah, Daniel, and Job, cannot by their righteousnesses save their children, with what confidence shall we approach to the Palace of God, if we keep not Baptism pure and undefiled? He who dealeth corruptly in the fight of incorruption, what shall be done to him? For of such as have not kept the seal, He saith, 'their worm dieth not.' Let us, then, while we are on earth, repent."
The same truth was expressed by the Fathers, in that oft-misinterpreted metaphor, that they who had fallen into grievous sin after Baptism, should cling to repentance, as to a plank from a shipwreck: not (as Romanist writers[106] insist) as if the plank were different from the ship, and so designated a Sacrament of Repentance, a means of grace distinct from that of Baptism; or, again, with some Protestant writers[107], as if the ship yet remained whole, and the plank were to bring them back to their former security in Baptism: the Fathers thought of no such refinements; they would by this metaphor express only the great peril, in which such persons were placed, and would exhort them to cling, for their eternal life, to the only hope yet remaining to them in the shipwreck wherein their souls had well-nigh perished,—an earnest and persevering repentance. Thus St. Ambrose concludes[108] the exhortation to the penitent, before quoted; "If sinners could see what judgment God will send forth, and man's understanding was not distracted by the vanity of the world, or weighed down by unbelief, they would gladly bear any degree or kind of torment for the present, yea, though life were longer than it is, so they might escape the punishment of eternal fire. But thou unhappy one, who hast now entered upon the trial of repentance, hold on, abide fast, as to a plank in shipwreck, hoping thereby to be freed from the depth of sin. Hold fast to repentance to the very end of life, nor anticipate that any pardon should be given you from man's judgment; he who would promise you this would deceive you. For what thou hast sinned against the Lord, thou must expect the remedy from Him alone, in the day of judgment."
The Fathers despaired of none. "We must despair of the conversion of none," says St. Augustine, "either within or without the Church, as long as the patience of God leadeth them to repentance, and He 'visits their offences with a rod, and their sins with scourges.' For thus He does not utterly take away His mercy from them, if they would but at length have compassion on their own souls, pleasing God." But they constantly repeated the Prophet's warning, "Woe to them that are at ease in Zion;" "tremble, ye that are at ease, be troubled, ye careless ones; strip you, and make you bare, and gird sackcloth upon your loins;" and would God, we might once again hear their voice of warning sound through our land, that our sleepers might awake, and arise from the dead, and Christ give them light, before they be awakened by the trump of the Archangel!
Moderns, by giving to this change after Baptism, when it is needed, or occurs, the name of regeneration, or the new birth, so far coincide with the doctrine of the Fathers, and have expressed their conviction also, that this birth takes place once only. Nor were there any objection in itself to the term; nor could any language be too strong to express the vehemence of that change, from the sleep of death to the life of holiness; from the phrenzy and drunkenness of sin to a right mind and God's "reasonable service," from being "fast bound in misery and iron," to the "glorious liberty of the sons of God;" from darkness to light; from Hell to Heaven; from Satan to Christ. No term were too strong for this, if it confused not our apprehensions of other truths of the Gospel; or, because God vouchsafed again to create His lost image in their souls, again to re-mould, re-form, re-fuse them, and bring them, re-created, through the iron fumade of repentance and bitter suffering, into a fresh life, and again "form Christ within them," they did not deny His former mercies, and make His present bountifulness a ground of disbelieving His past loving-kindness. God had given them their former birth in Baptism, and clad them with Christ, and graffed them into Christ, had buried them and raised them up with Christ. This life they had wasted, and destroyed. God now has given them another, whereby "Christ may again be formed in them." Let them not, in conformity to any system of man, lose the benefits of their past experience; but rather take the more earnest warning that they suffer not this life also to decay. They may know from God's word, that they were quickened with Christ in Baptism; they know from their own experience, that they have been since dead. God has taught them to beware of a second death. It may be the last.
There are, then, these limitations in Scripture, or derived from it by the Fathers, to this second birth after Baptism. That it is one of suffering, whereas the former birth, by Baptism, was one of joy and ease; that it is less complete than the former, and is a slower and more toilsome process (the slowness is spoken of by St. Paul, "my little children, of whom I travail in birth again, until Christ be formed in you:") that it is a second regeneration, ("of whom I travail again,")—not differing from the preceding, as if the regeneration of Christ's ordinance were a change of state, the regeneration of repentance a change of nature; that, outward in the flesh; this, inward in the spirit: God forbid that we should so speak of Christ's ordinances!—but that it is a sort of restoration of that life, given to those to whom it is given, by virtue of that ordinance; a restoration of a certain portion of their Baptismal health. It is not "the new birth" simply; that is Baptism; but it is a revival, in a measure, of that life; to be received gratefully, as a renewal of a portion of that former gift; to be exulted in, because it is life; but to be received and guarded with trembling, because it is the renewal of what had been forfeited; not to be boasted of, because it is but the fragment of an inheritance, "wasted in riotous living." Lastly it is bestowed through the ministry of the Church. "Little children, of whom I travail again."
With such limitations, and always presupposing that a former real Spiritual birth had taken place in Baptism, and following the hint given in St. Paul's language, some of the Fathers do not shrink from calling the restoration through the Church, by a hearty and complete repentance, "a sort of second Regeneration," or the like, which might express the greatness of the gift, without trenching upon Baptismal grace. Thus St. Chrysostom[109], paraphrasing the Apostle's words: "Seest thou his fatherly tenderness? seest thou a trouble worthy of an Apostle? seest thou what a bitter cry he uttereth, bitterer far than of a woman in travail? Ye have corrupted, he saith, the image; ye have lost your kindred character; ye have perverted the form (imprinted on you). Ye have need of another regeneration, and re-formation: and yet you, abortive and outcast fruit though ye be, I call children. Yet he doth not say this, but in other terms, for he spares them." And St. Jerome[110]: "This also must be considered, that he who, through sin, had ceased after a way to be a man, through repentance is conceived again by his instructor, and it is promised that Christ may again be formed in him. This," he adds, "against the Novatians, who deny that they whom sin has once broken in pieces, can be re-formed."
To the like effect is the glowing language of the Churches of Vienne and Lyons[111], with respect to those, who in the heat of persecution had denied Christ; "through their (the martyrs') endurance, the immeasurable mercy of Christ was displayed. For, through the living the dead were made alive; and the martyrs procured mercy for those who were no martyrs. And there was much joy in the Virgin Mother (the Church), receiving alive those whom she had cast out as dead. For through these (the martyrs), most of those who had denied were received again into the womb, and re-conceived, and re-quickened, and learned to confess; and now being alive and new braced, approached the judgment-seat: God, who willeth not the death of a sinner, but dealeth graciously towards repentance, pouring a healthful juice within them." In like manner St. Clement of Alexandria[112], relating the restoration of the robber-chief through the self-devotion and earnestness of the aged Apostle St. John, (already referred to,) describes him "as asking pardon, as he could, with groans, and baptized a second time with tears:" St. John "solemnly declaring, that he had obtained pardon for him from the Saviour, and kissing his right hand as having been cleansed by repentance [it had been stained with blood], brought him back to the Church; and interceding with abundant prayers, striving with and for him, by constant fastings, and charming his mind with various words [of Scripture], departed not until he had restored him to the Church: having given," says St. Clement, "a mighty pattern of true repentance, a mighty proof of re-generation, a trophy of the hoped-for resurrection, when, at the end of the world, the angels shall receive the true penitent into everlasting habitations." And this history St. Clement relates, "in order that men may see, that a good hope of salvation yet remains, on true repentance:" and this repentance he describes, in contrast with the complete gift at Baptism[113]. "God gives remission of the former sins: of subsequent, each must obtain it for himself. And this is to repent,—to condemn the past, to beg oblivion of them from the Father, who alone is able to make things done undone, and by His mercy and the dew of His Spirit, to efface former sins. He who hath lived ill, having repented, may afterwards overpower the evil intercourse of a long season, by the season after repentance. But much diligent care is needed, as careful diet and greater heed are for bodies which have laboured under a long disease." And so again, when shewing, that the law which commanded the death of the adulteress was an image of the Gospel which slays the sin, he says[114], "the law agrees then with the Gospel; for the adulteress liveth to sin, but is dead to the commandments; but she, who hath repented, having been, as it were, born again by the change of her mode of life, hath a new birth of her life; the former adulteress being dead, and she who has been born by repentance coming again to life." Since he does not directly speak of Baptism, (which gives in deed a new life,) but of repentance only, he uses a qualifying and lower expression, corresponding to the lower degree of restoration, "being, as it were, born again."
The very fewness of the passages[115], (for I am not aware that there are any more), in which the Fathers, even in this limited way, venture to speak of restoration upon repentance, as a sort of new birth,—the very diffidence with which they speak of it in itself,—the immensity of the mercy, which they view in it,—might well be an admonition to us to beware how we familiarize ourselves to consider it as the ordinary course of God's dealings; the general rule, and a sort of ordeal, which every one or most must go through. There was more piety, more holiness, more gratitude, more reverence, more loyalty, in the view of our forefathers, who seized upon it as a plank, left in the shipwreck of men's souls, to save them that they perish not; but still took shame, that the voyage, presumptuously entered upon, contrary to God's command, had been "with hurt, and much damage, not only of the ship and lading, but also of their lives."
Many perhaps will be ready to say, If this be so, do we not undergo a loss, in that Baptism is administered unto us, while we are Infants, before the commission of actual sin? and had it not been better for us, that it had been delayed until we had come to ourselves, and resolved for ourselves to serve God? so might we have obtained, at once, a complete remission of all our actual sins, without this careful and ever-to-be-renewed repentance! If by this is meant, that it had been better, when any one was living in heathenish sins, not living to God, but "living in pleasure," and "dead while he lived," and "without God in the world," that he had been in fact, as well as in life, a Heathen, this is true: for he would have been sinning against less light, less powerful influences of God's Spirit; he would have done less despite to the Spirit of Grace, and not wilfully have broken his Covenant with God. But if by this complaint, a person means to throw the blame off himself upon his Parents who brought him to be baptized in Infancy, or the Church, which has commanded Infant-Baptism, then he knows neither himself nor the ordinance of God:—not himself; for what ground has he to think that if he had not been put thus early in possession of the privileges of Baptism, and so been entitled to God's Spirit struggling within him, checking him, goading him, recalling him to himself, setting before him a broken Covenant, and God's wrath, how does he know that he ever should have repented? and not rather have gone on, (as many thousands of those who have at any time not been admitted into Christ's Church by Baptism as Infants,) still putting it off until "a more convenient season," still wishing to reserve this complete remission to cover the sins which they had not yet resolved to part with, until the Devil should have so tied and bound him with these habits of delay, that he could not extricate himself, but died at last in sin, unbaptized, and so without the Covenant of God or the seal of pardon? Such was the case formerly, when timid and unbelieving and worldly parents did not bring their children to Baptism, and when half-converts admitted the truth of the Gospel, but would not undertake its obligations. "This delay," says St. Basil[116], "utters no other language than this, 'Let sin first reign in me, then, at some future time, the Lord also shall reign: I will yield my members instruments of unrighteousness unto iniquity, then will I yield them instruments of righteousness unto God! Just so did Cain also offer sacrifice unto God.'" "If," again says St. Gregory of Nazianzum[117] "constantly passing by 'to-day,' you reserve for yourself 'to-morrow,' deceived into these petty delays by the evil one, as is his wont: 'Give me the present, to God the future: to me youth, to God old age: to me the time of pleasures, to Him that of imbecility:' how great is the danger around thee, how many unexpected accidents may destroy thee!" St. Gregory had then to exhort persons[118] to trust their old age at least with this purifying (of Baptism). Why fearest thou the sins of youth, in advanced age and at thy last gasp? or waitest thou to be washed as a corpse (then not an object of pity, more than of disgust)? or longest thou after the relics of pleasure, thyself a relic of life?" And do men, who have fallen into the devil's snares in the one way, think that they should have escaped them in the other? that they, who have sinned against the means of grace, should, without those means of grace, have recovered from sin? that they who have broken the Covenant, which God would have enabled them to keep, would, if they had not been brought into it, have willingly put themselves under its yoke? They may see the result, either in these cases of the antient Church, or, in this very day, among that sect, which delays Baptism. How many among those who are educated in this sect, (for I speak not of those, who, having been baptized as infants, join it in mere ignorance,) how many still delay Baptism year by year, until they die, still strangers to the covenant of promise, and so, as they were "by nature, children of wrath[119]!" St. Ambrose[120] well and concisely speaks upon this point: "Repentance then is a blessing, and but for it, all would put off the grace of Baptismal washing to old age, to whom it were a sufficient answer, that it is better to have what I may repair than not to have wherewith I may be clothed. But as the robe once put on may be renewed, so by frequent repairing it is destroyed." Wherein he strikingly expresses both the possibility of restoration after Baptism, and the danger increasing at each necessity of such restoration.
Further, any one who allows himself to think that it had been better for him not to have been made a "member of Christ" in infancy, knows nothing of the value of God's ordinance: as indeed none can experimentally know it, but those who have grown up in its privileges. Increasing strength was thereby guaranteed to us: strength, which should grow with our growth; surmount every trial with which we should be exercised; be a shield and buckler proportioned to our warfare, in child, in youth, in maturer age: "support us in all dangers, and carry us through all temptations:" and so, strengthened by our Confirmation, we should be delivered on to that other Sacrament, whereby we not only "put on Christ," but "Christ dwelleth in us and we in Him." This might have been; yea, in many has been: but if we cast aside the armour wherewith God had girt us; set at nought His counsels, and listened not to His reproofs; went out naked to the battle, and listlessly neglected our defence; gave way to our enemy daily in little sins, (such as we were then capable of,) and so gradually grew in sin instead of holiness: whom have we to blame, if when the harder trials of life came on, we were worsted? if, when we ought to have been men, we were, in strength but not in innocence, as children? if we reaped as we sowed? sowed little and daily sins, and at last reaped, with increase, a grievous fall? We cannot have both advantages: we cannot have the privilege without the responsibility and the risk. We cannot have all the privileges of Christians, and then, when we have neglected or profaned them, be as if we had been altogether heathens, now, for the first time, to be admitted into the privileges of the Covenant, and so be placed in the same condition as if we had never been put in trust and found unfaithful. Ours is inestimably the higher privilege; to have had God's seal put upon us, God's Spirit within us, from our childhood up: but if we have broken that seal, and resisted that Spirit, we cannot be as if we had kept it safe and listened to His warnings. It may be, it must be, that we knew not the value of that "seal;" but we knew that we were put in trust: and such is uniformly God's dealing with us; whatever gift He confides to us, health, strength, time, talents, reputation. He gives us knowledge enough that we are not to abuse it, and checks us when we begin to do so; but if we persevere, His warnings diminish, and we learn not the value of the gift until we have irrecoverably lost it. So also in spiritual things; all have had their warnings; all knew in a general way, whither their road was leading; all might have known more fully if they had believed; and if the termination of their broad and easy path is more fearful than they anticipated, "Wisdom uttered her voice, but they would not hear." They must eat then of the fruit of their own ways. Away then with all idle speculations as to what we might have been, as we fancy, had our trials been different! It may be well to think what we might have been, had we followed more faithfully God's guidance; so shall we be more humble: but whatever excuse, or imagination, or theory, tends to lead us to throw the blame upon circumstances (whether of nature or of grace) and to withdraw it from ourselves, comes, we may be assured, from the evil one, and would lead us to him. If we have been unfaithful in few things, we should have been yet more so in greater. Rather let us be assured that, however we have failed, our trial was that which was most adapted to us; was allotted us by mercy and wisdom: and let us bless God that, although that first and more joyous way of Baptismal faithfulness may no longer be open to any of us, another, though more rugged and toilsome and watered with bitter tears, is still left. Since we have no longer a whole burnt-offering to lay upon God's altar, let us the more diligently "gather[121] up the fragments which remain," and which, for His Son's sake, He wills "not to be "lost;" content, whatever the road may be, so it but end in Heaven; thankful if, although we cannot have the reward of those who have "followed the Lamb whithersoever He goeth," we may yet be accounted but as the least in the kingdom of Heaven, or as hired servants in our Father's house.
The doctrine, however, does not depend upon this one passage; although had this been so, it had sufficed, and it had been our wisdom to profit by its fearful warning, not to cavil at it, or lay it aside as one of difficulty: for this were but to blind ourselves. But let any one consider, teachably, our Saviour's warnings,—"The last state of that man is worse than the first." (Luke xi. 26.) "Sin no more, lest a worse thing happen unto thee." (John. v. 14.) "Neither do I condemn thee, go and sin no more." (viii. 11.) "No man, having put his hand to the plough, and looking back, is fit for the kingdom of God." (Luke ix. 62.) Or again, "If we sin wilfully after that we have received the knowledge of the truth, there remaineth no more sacrifice for sins, but a certain fearful looking-for of judgment and fiery indignation, which shall devour the adversaries." (Heb. x, 26, 7). "If he (the justified) draw back. My soul shall have no pleasure in him; but we are not of them who draw back unto perdition." (ib. 38, 9). "If, after they have escaped the pollutions of the world through the knowledge of the Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ, they are again entangled therein and overcome, the latter end is worse with them than the beginning; for it had been better for them not to have known the way of righteousness, than after they have known it, to turn from the holy commandment delivered unto them." (2 Pet. ii. 20). "Others save with fear, pulling them out of the fire." (Jude 23.); or again from the old Covenant, "Ye were now turned and had done right in My sight—and ye had made a covenant before Me in the house which is called by My Name; but ye turned and polluted My Name—therefore thus saith the Lord—I will give the men that have transgressed My covenant, which have not performed the words of the covenant which they had made before Me,—I will give them into the hand of their enemies—and their dead bodies shall be meat," &c. (Jer. xxxiv. 15–20); or again, "Rebellious Israel hath justified herself more than treacherous Judah." (Jer. iii. 11). Let any one teachably consider these words, and not put himself off, or stifle his conscience by mere generalities of the greatness of God's mercy; and he will, I trust, by that mercy, be brought to think that wilful sin, after Baptism, is no such light matter as the easiness of our present theology would make it. And so also will it appear that repentance is not a work of a short time, or a transient sorrow, but of a whole life; that, if any man say that he have repented of any great sin, (thereby meaning that his repentance is ended, or sufficient,) he has not yet repented, perhaps not yet begun to repent as he ought[122]: that,—I say not earnest-minded cheerfulness, but—what the world calls gaiety, is ill-suited to the character of a penitent: that his repentance, although its anxiety may by God be removed, ought to increase in depth and sharpness: that things which were allowable in those who are "heirs" of Heaven," ill become one who must now enter in, not through the way of plenary remission, but of repentance for a broken covenant. "Those holy and wise men," says Bishop Taylor[123], "who were our fathers in Christ, did well weigh the dangers into which a sinning man had entered, and did dreadfully fear the issues of Divine anger, and therefore, although they openly taught that God hath set open the gates of mercy to all worthy penitents, yet concerning repentance they had other thoughts than we have; and that, in the pardon of sinners, there are many more things to be considered, besides the possibility of having the sin pardoned."
Yet another and more concise test as to the agreement of our views with those of the whole Christian Church will be furnished to us by considering carefully within ourselves, in what way we consider Baptism to be a Sacrament. For we know how often mankind deceive themselves by words, and, because they retain "the form of sound words," imagine falsely that they hold the substance. And it is an additional blessing in this form of words, that, by comparing our own actual and practical belief therewith, we may often detect in ourselves many lurking tendencies to error, and an unacknowledged abandonment of truth. We need not point out this in detail; any one, whose creed is now sounder than it once was, will at once acknowledge how unmarked a substitution was once going on in his own mind; how unawares to himself his silver was becoming dross. The same names of doctrines were retained, but their substance was gradually departing. Or one may observe it in the gradual declension of the German divines of the last century; or, one can hardly look abroad into the world without observing how much Socinianism, Pelagianism, Anti-Catholicism, Anti-Christianism there is every where in persons who think themselves severally secure from these charges, and would look upon the imputation as a slander. So also with regard to Christ's Sacraments: we can easily see how, in Hoadley's time, many, in fact, held neither to be a Sacrament in the Church's meaning of the word, though they persuaded themselves that they held both. And have we no symptoms of the same defect in our days? does not the very rareness of our Communions, even among earnest-minded Christians, imply that men scarcely regard it as a necessary means of grace? Where is our longing for "our daily bread?" and does not again the very name by which we ordinarily speak of the Lord's Supper—the Sacrament, imply that we have virtually one Sacrament only? for this is not the language used by the Fathers of the Christian Church, or of our own[124]: it is not the language of our formularies, it is the growth of times in which Baptism has been looked upon as a mere initiatory rite. The very defence, which people would set up, that the Lord's Supper is the Sacrament of which we have most frequent occasion to speak, in itself convicts us: for of which Sacrament did the Apostles most speak? and what does our seldom reference to the Sacrament of Baptism,—the sort of effort with which men recal to themselves that it also is a Sacrament,—the charge of precision which they are ready to bring against any who object to the Lord's Supper being called "the Sacrament,"—the very inadvertency with which we again fall back into this error, after having, perhaps, ourselves corrected it in others,—the utter absence of interest, which it is almost professed and recognized, that most congregations would feel about the office of Holy Baptism,—(for otherwise why are the regulations of the Church so often broken, and the Baptism of our infants smuggled through, as a service of which we are ashamed? and our congregations leave us whenever they can, "as if (to use the language of an old Calvinistic writer[125] who lived when the like low notions prevailed) men were loath to be present, where the blessed Trinity presenteth itself to such a gracious purpose as this is, viz. to secure such benefits to one of that congregation?")—what does all this imply, but that, though we in words acknowledge Baptism to be a Sacrament, we have forgotten its power?
We admit, however, that Baptism is a Sacrament; and if so, it must convey the grace annexed to it, whenever no obstacle is placed in its way by the unworthiness of the recipient. For this has been the notion of the whole Christian Church, that the Sacraments are not bare signs, but do convey that also which they signify. Since, then, infants are incapable of opposing any obstacle, we must believe that the grace of Baptism, "a death "unto sin, and a new birth unto righteousness," is hereby conferred upon all who are brought to be engraffed into their Saviour by Baptism.[126] For the question is not, whether Infant Baptism be "most agreeable to the Institution of Christ," but (it being allowed so to be,) whether the full privileges of Baptism be thereby conveyed to all who are brought to Christ in it, or whether some receive the reality, others the empty sign only? And since infants are all alike incapable of opposing the Divine benefits, and the wilfulness which they might hereafter show, has no place there, and God in His Word has given us no ground for making any distinction between them, we must conclude, as the whole Antient Church did, that the benefits of Holy Baptism are by virtue of the Sacrament itself, and of the Divine Institution, imparted to all infants. And herein is a great mercy of God, that this first primary grace, which is the pledge and condition of all the rest, and without which we have no title to them, but should remain "children of wrath and strangers to the covenant of promise," is bestowed upon us at a time when we cannot by our own wilfulness or carelessness fall short of it. It appears also a great charity of our Church, that, whereas we know not when the seeds of evil first spring up in a child, she has ordered Baptism to be administered at the earliest period practicable, that so the spiritual antidote might be infused into its frame before the latent poison of inherited corruption should begin to work. The principle that children are regenerated by virtue of the Sacrament of the Baptism, because they put no bar, of an opposite will, is laid down in the broadest way by St. Augustine[127], in answer to an African Bishop, who felt some difficulty how the sponsors could declare so positively that "the child brought to Baptism believed in God, and the rest, whereas it had no knowledge of God, and the sponsors or parent knew not whether it would hereafter believe and do these things." "The little one then," St. Augustine says, "although he have not as yet that faith which consists in the will of the believer, is made a faithful one by the Sacrament of faith itself. For as he is answered for as believing, so also he is called faithful, not by assenting to the substance thereof by his mind, but by receiving the Sacrament of that substance of faith. But when the man shall begin to understand, then he will not repeat that Sacrament, but will understand it, and be conformed by the harmony of his will to its truth. In the meantime the Sacrament will avail to protect him against the power of the enemy; so that if he should depart out of this life before he have the use of reason, he shall (the love of the Church recommending him through that very Sacrament) be freed, through this Christian succour, from that condemnation which 'by one man entered into the world.' This he who believes not and thinks that it cannot be, is wanting in faith, though he have the Sacrament of faith; and far to be preferred before such an one is that little one, who, though he have not as yet faith formed in his conception, yet at least puts no bar of any thought opposed to it; whence he receives the Sacrament beneficially." St. Augustine's controversy with those who held Pelagian doctrines, makes us still further acquainted with the views of the Church on this subject. For it furnishes us—not with the opinion of St. Augustine as an individual, (although a pillar of the Church,) nor even as an indication (as an individual may be) of the tenets of his time, nor again with what people term an hyperbolical expression of gratitude for the institution which he loved, (as in peaceful times men speak less guardedly,) but—with a direct attestation of the doctrine of the whole Church, as stated against heretical opponents. The doctrines, namely, of Infant Baptism and original sin are closely connected together. And the first deniers of original corruption seem to have been pressed by no argument so hardly as by this practice of the Church and the inference drawn from it: "If there be no original sin, why then are infants baptized for the remission of sin?" So allied are right church-practice and sound doctrine; and such unexpected service does adherence to primitive traditional practice often yield to the true faith[128]! St. Augustine then could appeal to the acknowledged and unquestioned duty of baptizing infants in proof of the Church's doctrine; and thus we incidentally learn, that the whole Church supposed that Baptism bestowed upon all infants all the benefits, whereof it was the channel and instrument to the adult believer. This argument will be best seen detailed at full length. "Christ," he says[129], "came in the flesh, and having taken the form of a servant became obedient to the death of the cross, for no other reason than by this most merciful dispensation of grace to quicken, save, free, redeem, enlighten those who were before in the death of sin, in weakness, slavery, captivity, darkness, under the power of the devil, the prince of sin. This being made clear, it will follow that to that dispensation of Christ which was established through His humiliation, they cannot belong who do not stand in need of life, salvation, freedom, redemption, enlightening. And since Baptism, whereby persons are buried with Christ, in order that His members, i.e. they who believe in Him, may be incorporated into Him, belongeth thereto; then neither is Baptism necessary to those who need not that benefit of remission "and reconciliation, which takes place through the Mediator. Since then these persons allow that little ones must be baptized, inasmuch as they cannot contravene the authority of the universal Church, (as unquestionably handed down from the Lord and the Apostles,) they must allow also that infants need those other benefits of the Mediator; so that, being washed by the Sacrament and through the love of the faithful (who present them to Baptism), and thus being incorporated into the body of Christ, which is the Church, they may be reconciled to God, and in Him be quickened, saved, freed, redeemed, enlightened—whence, but from death, sinfulness, guilt, servitude, darkness of sin?' But since at that age they have not in their own life committed any, it remains that it must be original sin[130]." And again, "Who knows not, that in infants to believe is to be baptized, not to believe is not to be baptized—since little ones do not begin to be of Christ's sheep but by Baptism, then those, who do not receive Baptism, will perish; for they will not have eternal life, which He giveth to His sheep[131]." Further, "The ecclesiastical rule, which reckons baptized infants among the faithful, does not so judge (viz. that they are in a middle state, neither believing nor unbelieving). If then they who are baptized, on account of the virtue and celebration of so great a Sacrament, (although they do not, with their own mouth and heart, any thing appertaining to belief or confession,) are yet accounted among believers, they to whom this Sacrament is wanting, must be accounted among such as do not believe the same." And again[132], "Let them say then, 'what does Christ's righteousness avail to little ones?' Let them say what they will. For of a truth, if they recollect that they themselves are Christians, they will not doubt that it avails something. Whatever then its profit be, it cannot, as they themselves assert, profit those who believe not. Whence they are compelled to account little ones among believers, and to agree with the authority of the Holy Church every where. As, therefore, by the answer of those, through whom they are regenerated, the Spirit of righteousness transfuses into them faith, which of their own will they could not yet have, so the sinful flesh of those by whom they are born, transfers into them guilt, which by their own life they have not yet contracted. And as the Spirit of life in Christ regenerates them as believers, so the body of sin in Adam had generated them as sinners: for that is a carnal birth, this a spiritual: that forms sons of flesh, this, sons of the Spirit; that, sons of the world, this, of God; that, children of wrath, this, of mercy; and thereby that sends them forth bound by original sin, this, freed from every band of sin."
These are but a very few of the passages, in which St. Augustine employs the known Catholic doctrine of the cure universally bestowed upon children at Baptism, as a proof of their need of that cure, and so of their original corruption. They are the more remarkable, not only as being statements of Catholic doctrine, but as being found in him, who, if any of the fathers, might have been expected, on account of his theory of predestination, to have limited it. On the contrary, he adheres uniformly to the teaching of the Church, that all infants, since they could place no obstacle, derived the full benefits of Baptism, and were regenerated. He speaks, moreover, of the inscrutable decrees of God, in respect only, that[133] He admits some children of evil parents to Baptism and to the new-birth, and so (they dying young) certainly to the kingdom of Heaven, while He excluded from Baptism, and so from its blessings, the children of some pious parents; or again[134], that by early death He rescued some from future sin, and yet left others who, He knew, would sin; but the regeneration of all baptized infants he assumes as a known truth.
The Council of Carthage (A.D. 418) held against Pelagius, in which were assembled 214 Bishops, anathematizes[135] those who say that infants brought no original sin into the world, to be expiated by the washing of regeneration, and asserts as a consequence of the mode "in which the Catholic Church everywhere diffused always understood the Apostolic saying, Rom. v. 12. 'By one man sin entered,' &c. that little ones, who could not as yet themselves commit sin, are therefore truly baptized for the remission of sins, that in them what they contracted by their birth might be cleansed by their re-birth."
The universality of the new-birth in infants is on the same principle asserted by our own Hooker[136]. "When the signs and Sacraments of His grace are not either through contempt unreceived, or received with contempt, we are not to doubt, but that they really give what they promise, and are what they signify. For we take not Baptism, nor the Eucharist, for bare resemblances or memorials of things absent, neither for naked signs and testimonies assuring us of grace received before, but (as they are indeed and in verity) for means effectual, whereby God, when we take the Sacraments, delivereth into our hands that grace available unto eternal life, which grace the Sacraments represent or signify." And again[137], "The fruit of Baptism dependeth only upon the covenant which God hath made; God by covenant requireth in the elder sort. Faith and Baptism; in children, the Sacrament of Baptism alone, whereunto he hath also given them right by special privilege of birth within the bosom of the Holy Church: infants, therefore, which have received Baptism complete, as touching the mystical perfection thereof, are by virtue of his own covenant and promise cleansed from all sin."
Such was, for fourteen centuries, the doctrine of the universal Church of God. At the time of the Reformation the English and the Lutheran branches retained the ancient doctrine: the English, upon its acknowledged principle of retaining the truths taught in the early Church; the Lutheran, without perhaps the same defined views, yet with the solemn and instinctive reverence for the known word of God, and that reluctance to tamper with its apparent meaning, which in other cases also characterized its founder. Zuingli, on the contrary, the parent of the Swiss reformation, though possessed (in the common sense of the terms) of honesty and love of truth, perhaps rather hatred of falsehood, was of a character and frame of mind decidedly rationalistic: he was comparatively little of a theologian, and but ill acquainted in detail with the character and teaching of the early Church: he had not been educated as a theologian, nor was his mind well trained. As a member of a Republic, he was less impressed with the value of authority; and that of the Church was to him that of the bishop of Rome only: his mind, clear, masculine, energetic, acute, original, but unsystematic, and unrefined, and uncapacious, saw distinctly, yet saw but a little way; embraced insulated facts, but saw not their bearing upon the whole system. His career also was one of uniform and easy success; God, who forms His different instruments for His several purposes and according to their capacities, faithfulness, and quick acquiescence in His will, did not appoint to him the same discipline, by which he exercised, and strengthened, and purified the faith of our Reformers and of Luther: but chiefly Zuingli does not seem to have received divine truths so deeply: with a straightforwardness, which led him to embrace what he thought truth, he yet in a common-place way laid down what he rejected, or took up the contrary, with the ease which is generally characteristic of shallowness. The belief, whatever it was, having no depth of root, gave way without up-tearing and laying bare the whole mind, as it does when it is more thoroughly fixed; no shock was communicated to the rest of his moral system. In minds, which give way thus without a struggle, truth will be parted with, as well as, and probably in conjunction with, every error. Zuingli's, more than any other, might be called an intellectual reformation. At his new opinions on the Sacraments he arrived in the way of unbelief[138]; a way, to which God appears to have annexed the penalty that it should never lead to entire or full truth. He abandoned the Popish doctrine of transubstantiation; but having lost the link, which bound him to the old Catholic truth of direct spiritual influence, conveyed through the medium of the Sacraments, they became to him mere signs or symbols. He had in his mind constantly the two truths, that the Sacraments, could not in themselves convey grace, and that Christ alone was the author of all grace and spiritual influence, and he could not find the central point, wherein the old Catholic doctrine might yet hold good with both these truths; namely, that Christ conveyed His grace through His Sacraments. Here his rationalistic tendency interfered. He could understand, how whatever strengthened faith, was a mean of greater grace: and also, how faith might be strengthened by these external symbols, as well as by preaching,—by the visible announcement, as well as by spoken word—and for this he could refer to experience[139]: but he could
not understand an actual, real, though not physical, imparting of Christ to the soul of the believer through the Sacraments: it was to him a miracle, of which he had no outward evidence, nor any tangible proof[140]: and having no sense for it, he rejected it as an unattested miracle, and preferred bending the words of Scripture, which pointed to it. Zuingli's system appears to have been, in this respect, negative: he held the two parts upon which the Calvinistic system of the Sacraments was subsequently built: the idea that the Sacraments were signs of grace before received, and the absolute irrespective election by God, not to the privileges of the Covenant, but of persons, whether within or without it, to life eternal. He does not seem, however, to have systematized these views, and though Scriptural authority is alleged, it does not appear to have been the basis of his theory. His notions of the meaning of a Sacrament, were derived originally, not from Scripture, but from classical usage. "Sacramentum," he says[141], "according to Varro is a pledge, which they who had a suit, deposited by some altar. Again, Sacramentum is an oath, which use of the word still holds in the popular language of Gaul and Italy; and lastly, there is the military Sacramentum, whereby soldiers are bound to their leaders: for, that it is used for a sacred and mysterious thing among the antients, appears not. Whence also we have given no place to this meaning. Neither does it express the word μυστήριον, for which it is used in the Latin translation of the Old Testament. Whence we are led to think that a Sacrament is no other than an initiation or pledging. For as litigants deposited a certain sum of money, which the victor only might remove; so those who are initiated by the Sacraments, bind, pledge themselves, and receive as it were a gage, that they should not retreat." This etymology he frequently repeats; and from it he infers that since the Sacrament is an initiation or public sealing, it has no power to set the conscience free." In like manner he argues elsewhere from its theological use, "A Sacrament[142] is a sign of "a sacred thing," "but if[143] they are signs, then they cannot be that whereof they are signs. For if they were the things, then they could not be called the signs. For one and the same thing cannot be the thing, and the sign which signifies the thing." And with such shallow show of common-sense argumentation as this, the whole doctrine of the Sacraments is dispatched: and Zuingli concludes: "On which account Baptism is a sign, which binds and initiates us into Jesus Christ. The Eucharist indicates (innuit) that Christ died for us, and was put to a dreadful death. Of these most holy things Christ willed that these Sacraments should be the outward signs." As if the sign might not also be the instrument, whereby that which is signified is conveyed; or as if this dry arguing from the definition of words, could lead to any truth in things spiritual! Zuingli was so much engaged in arguing against those who extolled the outward signs unduly, or whom he held so to do, and was so intent thereon, that the general impression from his works would be that the Sacraments were simply "outward signs of a Christian man's profession," and unconnected with any spiritual grace. His apologist, Hospinian[144], is compelled to admit that the opinion that the body of Christ was in some way locally included in the Eucharistic bread, being (through the different views of the Papists and of Luther) very deeply rooted in men's minds, Zuingli "applied the whole force of his mind to eradicate it: and this in such wise, that he seemed rather to hold that the Lord was absent than present in the Holy Supper; and that symbols, rather than the Body and Blood of Christ, were then imparted." This is of great moment; for a man's belief is not what he abstractedly holds, or what he would, if questioned, ultimately fall back upon; but his practical belief is just so much of his system as is habitually interwoven in his mind and thoughts; other truths may have been or may again be made part of his belief; but if habitually thrown into the shade by the greater prominence given to another view of the subject, they can hardly be called part of his actual belief; they are for the time in a state of abeyance and lifelessness, almost as if they were not held at all. Thus it comes to pass that very many men deceive themselves; they have in a manner two systems of belief: one which they have been taught, and have not altogether unlearnt, and which, if thrown back upon themselves, they would still hold to be true and acknowledge as their own; and another, (composed perhaps of some portions of the former, or it may be the same only superficialized,) which is the way in which religious truth habitually occurs to their mind. Yet because they have never formally parted with the former, and have it in their mind, locked up, as it were, in a chest, they will, under ordinary circumstances, think that they hold it safely; whereas the governing principle of their affections, heart, and life, and the belief of which they are actually conscious, are all the while very different. But in whatever degree this variance between a man's abstract belief, and his habitual animating faith, may be palliated to the individual, or however the truths which he may be said really and influentially to hold, may maintain in some degree his spiritual existence, (and blessed is he, who has not known some degree of such discrepancy,) the influence which a man has upon his contemporaries, or upon posterity, depends entirely upon that, his prominent system of belief. That which has seized possession of his own mind, is that whereby he influences the minds of others. The more retiring parts of his system, by which it may be to him occasionally modified and controlled, have but little influence on himself; how should they then have strength enough to reach others? They die with him, unless revived through some other instrument. Hereby the gradual decline of religious belief is in some measure accounted for; and herein we may see, how, though held extensively, the truths of the Gospel may fail of any general impression; and that they must be held more vividly, more energetically, more really, more uniformly, before they can break down the strong holds opposed to them. The spark, which smoulders in our bosom, can kindle no flame in those around.
Although, then, Zuingli used occasionally the language "that[145] the sacramental body of Christ was given in the Supper," that[146] "we have the body of Christ with us in the Supper in the most excellent and noblest way," this meant but little, and had therefore the less influence. It was an approximation of words, not of belief. Zuingli's idea of the presence of Christ was only, that He was present to the mind which contemplated Him. "We have said long ago[147], that the body of Christ is in the Supper, by the contemplation of faith; now then, let the adversaries turn which way they will, they will find no help, whereby they may drag it into the Supper in any other way." "We[148] have never denied that the Body of Christ was sacramentally[149], and in a mystery, in the Supper, both on account of the contemplation of faith, and the whole action of the symbol." "We believe[150] that Christ is really in the Supper: yea, we believe not that it is the Lord's Supper unless Christ be present," seem plain words, yet are they immediately explained away; so that He is no further present, than in every other congregation of the faithful. "In proof of this," he proceeds, "'When two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them.' How much more, when the whole Church is gathered to Him!" And in the strongest passage which his Apologist[151], expressly writing upon the doctrine of the Eucharist, could find, we have still nothing more than a sensible representation of Christ's death, and the contemplation of that death in the mind of the worshippers. Some of the words are strong, for he is persuading others, probably himself also, that his views did not derogate from the doctrine of the Sacraments. "When[152] then bread and wine, consecrated by the very words of the Lord, are distributed to the brethren at once, is not now whole Christ, as it were, sensibly, (that if words are needed, I may say even more than is wont) offered to the senses also? But how? Is his very natural body offered to be handled? By no means; that is offered to be contemplated by the mind, but to the senses the sensible sacrament of the thing. For the mind acts more freely and unencumbered, when it is diverted as little as may be, by the senses. When, then, there is presented to the senses what is very similar to that which the mind is engaged in, it is no slight aid to the senses. Add, (which is not least to be accounted of,) that those signs were so instituted by Christ Himself, that, by their analogy also, they may be of much avail to lead to the thing, as present by faith and contemplation. Whence, since Sacraments were instituted to this end, that they may teach, admonish, and delight sensibly, not less than outward speech, it happens that, having acquired the name of those things, whereof they are the signs, and which are themselves the real refreshment of the mind, they inflame the mind more vehemently than if any one were to think over the Divine goodness, however religiously, without them." Zuingli's positive view of the Sacraments is completed by the other passage, part of which is quoted by his Apologist; "Since[153], then, it is irrefragable that in Baptism and the Eucharist, that which is signified by the Sacraments is ours before we use the Sacraments, what reason is there in attributing to the Sacraments what we had before? since Sacraments make confession of, attest, and exercise only what we had before, how long shall we tempt the Spirit of God in a matter so plain? Are then the Sacraments in vain? by no means, as was said. For they preach the salvation which has been given by God, they turn the senses thither, and then exercise faith, the promise of which they hold forth[154], and draw to brotherly charity. And while all this is done, one and the same Spirit operates; who, as He bloweth, draws at one time without, at another with, an instrument, whither, as much as, and whom. He wills." This is the strongest passage in Zuingli; and one rejoices to find even this recognition of spiritual influence at, though not properly through, the Sacrament. This then is the sum of Zuingli's doctrine of the Sacraments, that they are symbols, that they exhibit Divine truths forcibly to the mind, so as to kindle it, and that thereat the Holy Spirit exercises an influence where, and upon whom He wills. But to judge of the effects of Zuingli's doctrine upon others, such an insulated passage will not suffice. We must take into account the illustrations which he continually employs, and which all tend to represent the Sacraments as mere outward symbols. They are "testaments, not the thing bequeathed[155];" "writings;" "the giving up of keys to another;" "signs of a covenant;" "the seal-ring[156] given by the father of a family to the absent wife, with his own image impressed thereon;" signs of a past gift, memorials, tokens, by the sight whereof our love may be cherished, but not means of grace. These popular illustrations convey far more than abstract statement. We must consider also the impression made by the positive contrary statements which Zuingli so often repeated and inculcated; "The Sacraments are only badges of the Christian society, and confer nothing towards salvation," and the like; and that this was his general mode of teaching: but chiefly one must look upon him as bending his great energies to this one point, "to eradicate (in the words of his Apologist[157]) these notions "from the minds of men;" for which end in treating the belief even of Luther, he uses, occasionally at least, a coarseness and profaneness of language, which, upon such a subject, must work incalculable evil, but of which one naturally can give no instances. Some of this offensive language was perpetuated in his school. Besides this there is the fixed and universal tendency of negative principles in religion. They spread, and that downwards.
The two Sacraments are indissolubly connected. An individual or an age may for a while be inconsistent, since of inconsistencies there is happily no end. This variance, however, becomes gradually effaced. Unless by some guidance of God, men are brought back to higher views of the one Sacrament, their estimation of the other will imperceptibly sink. An hereditary awe of that of their Saviour's Body and Blood will for a time continue to raise their reverence for it even above their own theory; but the doctrines are in principle the same; and so will men's veneration, thankfulness, honour, delight in both, at length be. Either they will see in both their Saviour, or in both (I speak of Churches, or Sects, not necessarily of the period of individual life, although very frequently in this also) they will see but an empty symbol.
In the above statement of Zuingli's views, the Lord's Supper is most frequently instanced as being the subject of the controversy; but the principles relate to Baptism also. As to this Sacrament also, Zuingli fixed his theory after an interval of doubt; in this instance, as to the efficacy or propriety of Infant Baptism. "If[158] Sacraments were signs, and signs for the confirmation of faith, how can they confirm the faith of infants, since it is certain that as yet they have none? Wherefore I also, (to own the truth ingenuously) some years ago, deceived by this error, thought it better that children should not be baptized, until they had arrived at a mature age." This difficulty, arising from the first error, that Sacraments were only signs, required a further modification of his views. Zuingli accordingly sums up thus his views on Baptism[159]. "No element of this world, yea no outward thing, can cleanse the soul of man. For the purifying of this is the work of Divine grace alone. Baptism then cannot wash away the defilements of sin. But since it was instituted by God, and yet does not wash away sin, it is altogether certain that it is no other than a Sacramental sign, whereby the people of God are bound and united to one faith and religion." So that his view is just that mentioned by our Articles (Art. 27.) as inadequate. These maxims,—the inadequacy of outward things to wash away sin, and the assumption that Baptism is a sign only, the outward element of water alone,—and the purports of Baptism, which he deduces from these maxims, form the greater part of the statements of Zuingli; and these he inculcates with the utmost earnestness and positiveness. "This[160] conviction abides with me, certain, unshaken, and infallible (which if the authority and power of the whole world would impugn, they will yet effect nothing with me), that no element, outwardly administered, can avail any thing toward the purifying of the soul." And so, assuming as before, the incompatibility of the sign with the thing signified, he argues as if all were outward. "John[161] (whose Baptism he contends to have been the same[162] with that of Christ) taught amendment and true repentance; and those who, influenced by his teaching, embraced repentance and amendment of life, he signed with the outward water of Baptism, yet they were not any way the better for it; for what prevented their repenting without being baptized? Baptism then was only a ceremony, whereby they attested publicly that they were of the number of penitents." The ministers he regards not as instruments in God's hand, but as independent agents, and so performing a mere outward work. "Christ," he says[163], "manifestly distinguishes (Acts i. 5.) between that outward Baptism of water, and that whereby the faithful are baptized by the Holy Spirit. John is declared only to have baptized with the water and the preaching of the outward word: and as many as now baptize do no other. For what else should men here do, than teach with the outward word, or sprinkle with water, or dip the baptized into it[164]? Our controversy then about infant Baptism is only about the outward Baptism of water, and the teaching of the outward word." "So also Peter, Paul, James, and others after them, only baptized with water and the outward word or teaching; but to baptize with the Spirit is the office not of men but of God, who alone, according to the counsel of His wisdom, hath been wont to baptize with the Holy Spirit whomsoever and whensoever He wills." The words of consecration again, appointed by Christ, since spoken through man's mouth, became to him outward also, man's words and not God's. Quoting the language of St. Augustine, "The word is joined to " the element, and it becomes a Sacrament," he answers[165]—"The authority and power of no outward word which proceeds out of the mouth of man, can be greater than the authority and power of the water itself. For no one, save God only, can take and wash away sin." If then occasionally the strong language of Scripture escapes into the pages of Zuingli, so that one might think that some high spiritual benefit was imparted through Baptism, this is presently corrected. Thus, commenting on Rom. vi. he says[166], "Who, examining these things more diligently, would not perceive that Baptism is an initial sign, which engraffs us into Christ, consecrates us wholly to Him, to this end, that we should be made new men, and live a new life in Him;" and again[167], "Baptism is an initial (or initiating) sign, which engraffs us into God (Deo inserit) and shows that we are God's." Yet these cheering words "engraffed into Christ" are explained only to mean that we are "made members of that outward society of Christians:" as indeed how should a mere "outward ceremony" unite us with our Saviour? "It is established," he says[168], "that that outward Baptism, which is by water, confers nothing towards the purifying of the soul; wherefore this is only a ceremony, an outward sign, whereby it is indicated that a man is brought to Jesus Christ our Lord, engraffed and initiated into Him, so that he now wishes not to live to himself but to Christ:" and thus we come back to the old statement, only invested or disguised in Scripture words, that "Baptism is a sign of a covenant whereby we initiate[169], or consecrate[170] any one to God:" for indeed a ceremony, which had no power to purify, could not engraff men into Christ. This initiation also he compares[171] to the garb, wherewith novices in a monastery were invested, or to the oath[172] taken by soldiers, or "the white cross[173] worn by the Swiss, which shows that they are and will remain Swiss."
The excellencies of Baptism are distinctly enumerated by Zuingli in a work, which, being written only five years before his death, of course must contain his mature views, and in which Bullinger says that he surpasses himself—his "Exposition of the Christian Faith to the Christian king[174]." They are these:—1. The Sacraments were instituted by Christ: 2. attest His history: 3. set before us the things which they signify, whence they are called by their names: 4. signify great things: 5. have an analogy or aptness to represent the things signified: 6. aid faith (by withdrawing the senses, to contemplate divine things): 7. are an oath binding Christians together;—in all which there is no vestige of any spiritual influence. Infant Baptism can then have none. Its benefits are also enumerated[175]. "It is the same as Circumcision; that dedicated men to God, but under the yoke and band of the law; Baptism, to the same God, but under Christ, who is grace itself." The rest are, 1. "that we all grow up in the same doctrine, the Christian. 2. Children will be educated Christianly. 3. It removes sluggishness in teaching." Nay, Zuingli often urges against the Anabaptists the unreasonableness of objecting to infant Baptism, "since it is an outward and ceremonial thing[176], which, as well as other outward things, the Church may use worthily and with propriety, or omit and remove it, as seems to her most to conduce to the edification and well-being of the whole body."
It is remarkable, that in Zuingli again, with this depreciation of Baptism is united the denial of original sin, as sin, in all born of faithful parents[177]—which is indeed essential to the whole theory that the Sacraments are signs only, or attest only grace imparted; for if original sin is not remitted through Baptism, then, as these writers affirm, these children must have been holy by virtue of the covenant, i.e. had no original sin. Original corruption Zuingli admits, but its sinfulness he explicitly denies[178].
In taking this view of Baptism, Zuingli was aware that he was setting up a new doctrine, unheard of in the Christian Church from the times of the Apostles to his own. We do not judge him; but in this instance he stands forth as a solemn warning to us, showing how—not only general integrity, and straightforwardness and zeal against corruptions which derogate from the glory of God—but even the assiduous study of Holy Scripture with prayer[179], will not preserve a man from falling into pernicious error, which may destroy the very good which he labours to promote, so long as there is one uncorrected sin remaining within his own bosom. Zuingli's writings discover an arrogant self-confidence, which thinks lightly of any belief opposed to his own, although it were that of the universal Church; and he became the author of tenets which immediately well nigh effaced the Sacraments of his Lord. His rationalistic tone sowed the seeds of a dreadful harvest, which his country is now reaping.
"This I must ingenuously confess, at the beginning of the book,"—thus[180] he opens his work on Baptism, "that all probably (fiere omnes), as many as, from the times of the very Apostles, have undertaken to write on Baptism, have in no few things missed the mark. It is a great thing that I say, but I am compelled against my will to say it. For never would I have allowed this to pass my lips (although I have always delivered the true doctrine on this subject), unless I had been compelled through that contumacious obstinacy of most contentious men. But that I have herein spoken no less truly than openly, is self-evident. For no one of their number can be found, who has not ascribed to the element of water, what neither it has, nor have the Apostles taught that it had. And those Ancients wrongly understood the saying of Christ to Nicodemus, 'Except a man be born again of Water and the Spirit,' &c. Wherefore we also will see what Baptism is, after a manner far different from what all, ancients or moderns, yea, or the writers of our own times, have done. And all this we will establish, not by dreams of our own, but by testimonies from the Divine Word."
The opinions of Zuingli are of chief importance, because he was the parent of the Reformed, as Luther was of the Church which bore his name. He furnished the model, the "form of words," and stamped the character and impress of the Reformed, as Luther did of the theology of the Lutheran Church. He used incredible zeal in propagating his opinions on the Sacraments[181]. Zurich, on account of the peace enjoyed there, was a place of refuge for the Reformed. His writings and opinions were diligently spread in France and Germany; and in Italy appear to have been more known than Luther's. They are addressed to the understanding, and at once cut the knot of the controversy with Rome[182]. For those who had previously disbelieved the Romish doctrine, (and such, Zuingli says, was the case of most ecclesiastics,)[183] it seems, humanly speaking, impossible that they could come to any other result. The doctrine of the Sacraments, as instruments of grace, held by Luther, (I speak not of his peculiar theory of Consubstantiation), was termed "a going back to the flesh-pots of Egypt[184]."
Oxford,
Feast of St. Michael.
(conclusion unavoidably delayed.)
These Tracts are published Monthly, and sold at the price of 2d. for each sheet, or 7s. for 50 copies.
LONDON: PRINTED FOR J. G. & F. RIVINGTON,
ST. PAUL'S CHURCH YARD, AND WATERLOO PLACE.
1835.
Gilbert & Rivington, Printers, St. John's Square, London.
TRACTS FOR THE TIMES.
SCRIPTURAL VIEWS OF HOLY BAPTISM.
CONTINUED.
"MINIME SUNT MUTANDA QUÆ INTERPRETATIONEM CERTAM SEMPER HABUERUNT."
Dig. i. tit. 3. lex 23, p. 78, Ed. Gothofr. 42, quoted by Hooker, B. v. c. l. § 5, ed. Keble.
The character of the Reformation in the several countries of Europe turned mainly upon the doctrine of the Sacraments; as indeed every one will find, that the way in which he embraces and practically holds them, will affect the whole character of his spiritual life. The two continental branches, who cast aside the errors of Rome, each erred in this respect; and thus became new, rather than reformed, Churches. In either, one individual stood too prominently forward, and impressed upon his society the character of his own mind, rather than that of the Church Catholic. And we cannot sufficiently admire the loving-kindness of Almighty God, who allowed the seeds indeed of Reformation to be sown among us by Wickliffe, yet then, notwithstanding the powerful human aid which he had, and his great popularity, caused them to lie, as it were, in the earth, until those which were less sound should by length of time decay; and again, that He placed so many impediments in the way of our final Reformation, (for what man does rapidly, he does rashly,) and held back our steps by the arbitrariness of Henry; and, when we were again going down the stream of the times too readily, checked us at once by the unexpected death of Edward, and proved us by the fire of the Marian persecution, and took away, by a martyr's death, those in whom we most trusted; and then finally employed a number of labourers, in the restoration of His temple, of whom none should yet be so conspicuous, that the edifice should seem to be his design, or that he should be tempted to restore the decayed parts according to any theory of his own, but rather that all things should be made "according to the pattern which He had shown us" in the Church Primitive. Had our reform taken place at first, we had been Wickliffites; under Edward, we had been a branch of the Reformed[185] (the Zuinglian or Calvinist) Church: now we bear no human name; we look to no human founder; we have no one reformer, to set up as an idol; we are neither of Paul nor of Apollos; nor have we any human maxims or theories as the basis of our system; but have been led back at once to the distant fountains, where the waters of life, fresh from their source, flowed most purely.
Both of the continental branches, as was said, erred in this respect; and both have, through their error, suffered. Luther, although scripturally asserting the presence of Christ in the Eucharist, still retained from the Romish Church the idea of the necessity of explaining that presence. His theory of Consubstantiation was, not a development of Divine truth, but a human system, explaining the mode of the Divine operations. This first error entailed the necessity of other expositions, on points about which we know nothing either way, and upon which, consequently, it was a great evil to have to decide or to speculate. Such are the ubiquity of our Saviour's glorified body, the communication of the properties of His Divine to His human nature, and the like. These, however, of necessity, occupied a prominent, because a distinctive, portion of the Lutheran system. Thereby, and through the abolition of Episcopacy, the Lutheran became a new Church, built, indeed, in great part, of the old materials, but still upon a new model, and with untempered mortar. Its connection with the primitive Church, and so its own stability also, was loosened. It was a particular Church, and erected on a narrower platform, than the Church Catholic.
The Reformed Church erred still more widely in that its first departure from the antient model in the doctrine of the Sacraments was opposed to the obvious sense of Scripture also: it was not merely a particular or human, opposed to the Catholic system: but it required a forced exposition of the Word of God. This Church suffered also in proportion more. Its theology limited the favours of Almighty God, when Scripture had declared them free; it restrained the mercies of His Sacraments, where He had not restrained them; and it became itself stiff, harsh, unconfiding, and restrained. We find in it, in comparison, but very little of the child-like, dependent, overflowing and humble joy of the Antient Church, which in part appeared in the older Lutheran writers, and especially in their hymns, and which is found in a portion of our own earlier theology.
The tenets of Zuingli were, as was said, well adapted to human reason; they were suited to men's common-place understanding; they recognized faith, and yet made the operations of faith cognizable by reason; and so appeased at once both conscience, and those common cravings of intellect, which a more vigorous faith restrains. The theory then spread widely, as it was calculated to do. The tenets of Zuingli were shared by Œcolampadius, and had no opponent in the Swiss Church. Their disciples include, directly or indirectly, all the reformed Church, except that of Germany; and even this, as our own, for a time, was indirectly and partially influenced through the medium of their writings. Among the disciples of Zuingli, either orally or in writing, might be named Peter Martyr, Pellican, Bullinger, and Farell, the reformer of Geneva. His most extensive influence, however, was indirectly, and by way of descent, through Calvin. Calvin, namely, as is well known, though he established the discipline of Geneva, was not one of the original reformers: its doctrines he found already established; and especially with regard to the Sacraments[186], he methodized only and arranged and here and there perhaps modified the doctrines, or, rather, perhaps, the language of Zuingli. The doctrines, the arguments, the language, the turn of expression, the subsidiary statements, the very illustrations, which Calvin employs on the subject of the Sacraments, are all to be found scattered up and down in the writings of Zuingli; only in Zuingli they are presented in a polemical form: Calvin has matured them into a doctrinal scheme. The definition of Baptism is the same: "a sign[187] of initiation, whereby we are enrolled in the society of the Church, that, being engrafted into Christ, we may be accounted among the sons of God." The mode of disposing of the old Church's definition, "a visible sign of a sacred thing," or "a visible form of an invisible grace," is the same[188]: there is the same illustration of the Sacraments by the outward sign[189] of the Old Testament: the same denial of grace[190] being imparted through the Sacraments: the assertion of the identity of the Apostles' and John's Baptism[191] (of which assertion Zuingli was the first author)[192]: the like arguments, and the like solutions of the texts opposed[193]: the same statements that the value of Baptism consisted in its being a sign of a previous covenant[194], or promise[195], or rather the transfer of its benefits to a previous election[196]: the reference to Abraham[197] and to Rom. iv.[198] and to the promise, "and to thy seed[199]," as the groundwork and substance of the Sacrament of Christ, and our rule for understanding it: the identifying of Baptism and Circumcision[200], (as of the Paschal[201] lamb with the Lord's Supper): the same assertion, that regeneration[202] precedes Baptism; that infants of Christian parents are holy[203] before Baptism; that the word of consecration is an instrument of teaching[204] only; the same comparison of the Sacraments with the written word[205]: the same language against tying or binding God's grace to the Sacraments[206], or inclosing it within them: the same dread of their value being exaggerated[207], or any mystical virtue being contained in them[208], or their washing away sin[209]: the same view of them, as only representing spiritual things to the mind of man[210]. These, and many other points will strike any one who, having familiarized himself with the language and manner of Zuingli, shall afterwards read Calvin's treatise, so that one seems to be reading Zuingli again, only in a different form. Nor is it, of course, any disparagement to Calvin, that a system of doctrinal theology, written at the age of twenty-seven, should have been worked up from materials furnished by others. Only, as others also have observed, Calvin as well as Zuingli is inconsistent; and whether it be that the tenets of his early years in part break through a system later acquired; or whether, as is probable, he shrunk from the consequences of his own scheme, yet certainly he occasionally uses stronger language than belongs to that system[211]. Here and there he even criticizes language, which resembles that of Zuingli; and (which alone appears to present any real difference in their systems) Zuingli explicitly denies[212] that Sacraments confirm faith; Calvin asserts it[213]. Yet the difference is again in words; for both assert that the contemplation of God's mercy, as represented in the Sacraments, is a mean of confirming and strengthening our faith; and both deny that the Sacraments convey, or are vehicles of grace. Yet between these there is no third system. Indeed, all reformed writers, until of late date, have acknowledged Zuingli as authority for their opinions, equally with Calvin. He was as much, or more, looked up to in his day, by those of that school: nor had it been worth noticing, but that moderns have been inclined to set Zuingli aside, because he speaks out, and shews the effects and character of their theory more plainly than Calvin; or have been misled to draw an unauthorized distinction between them.
If, however, there be any difference in the modes of statement of Calvin and Zuingli, it is this: that, according to Zuingli, Sacraments are testimonies to the Church; according to Calvin, to the Elect; but the essential character of the Sacraments as signs only, not means of grace, remains the same in both. The benefits, accordingly, of which Calvin supposes[214] Baptism to be the instrument, are, 1st, that it is a sort of diploma to attest that all our sins are utterly done away; 2dly, that it shows us (ostendit) our dying in Christ, and our new life in Him; 3dly, that it testifies (testificatur) that we are so united to Christ, that we are partakers of all His benefits. Wherein the blessings indeed comprehend all which the ancient Church also attributed to Baptism: but Baptism itself is but the outward seal, to attest to the believer's soul, mercies already received. Wherever, namely, Calvin explains what he means by the grace of the Sacraments, it is "the sealing of the Covenant of God," an "assuring us of His promises," or "a sort of appendix added to God's promise to confirm and seal it, and to make it more attested, and after a sort established, as God foresees to be needful, first for our ignorance and slowness, then for our weakness[215]: they are props to our faith, mirrors, wherein we see the love of God more clearly[216]." This confirmatory influence of the Sacraments is set forth in a variety of forms and language; but all comes back to this. On the other hand, Calvin, (as strongly, although not so frequently, as Zuingli,) decries the efficacy of the Sacraments, "any hidden virtue of the Sacraments", as a pestilent error: the tenet of the "Schools of the Sophists that the Sacraments of the new law (i.e. those of the Christian Church) justify and confer grace, unless prevented by mortal sin," is condemned as "devilish[217]." The sayings of the ancient Church, as to the Sacraments, are termed "immoderate encomia[218];" the language of St. Augustine, "that the Sacraments of the old law only promised a Saviour, ours impart health and salvation, (salus) and the like figures of speech" are designated as "hyperbolical."
The hard and dry character, indeed, of Calvin or Beza's mind was ill calculated for the restoration of the view of the Sacraments, which was now in the reformed Church destroyed: their mystical character was now effaced; Baptism was a sign to man; a mean of increasing the faith of the parents; a seal of grace before given; a sign of grace hereafter to be conveyed; but in no other sense a sacrament, than was the bow in the cloud[219], which was a sign of God's covenant,—an assurance to the infirmity of men's faith, but, in no sense, an instrument of grace.
This, as was said, belonged to the intellectual character of the theology of this school. The workings of faith, although incredible to the unbeliever, may still be made cognizable to the human intellect: the tendency of outward representations to embody to the mind things spiritual, to employ sense against sense, and to make things seen the means of lifting up the heart to things unseen, is also very obvious; as is also the power of a visible attestation to increase our credence in the things so attested. But this is all plain matter of intellect: the Sacraments are then in no mysterious manner channels of grace: they are all outward: Baptism is only an outward introduction into a visible Church, entitling men to, or rather attesting that they have, privileges, but not itself imparting any: it is no more spiritual than the seal, diploma, safe-conduct, to which they compare it. It is an unspiritual attestation of spiritual privileges. The Eucharist, according to this view, does not convey to the soul of the believer the Body and Blood of Christ, but is an external emblem, by the sight and feeding upon which, through the operation of the Holy Spirit, the faith of the believer is excited to fix itself upon his Saviour[220]. The sacramental participation of Christ becomes the same, as out of the Sacrament. Its mysterious character is resolved into a mere picture. The Sacraments, doubtless, are all this: they are mystical representations to the soul: they are props of faith: they are visible seals of God's promises: they are images of things invisible: they are instruments to lift up our hearts to communion with God in Christ: but they are more; and it is here precisely that this school stops short. They are channels of Divine grace to the soul, which are closed up indeed by unfaithfulness, yet are efficacious, not simply by animating our faith; but the one, by actually incorporating us into Christ, and creating in our souls a new principle of life, and making us "partakers of the Divine nature;" the other, imparting to us increased union with Christ, and (to use a term of the Fathers[221]) a deifying influence, whereby God gives us that which man would have accepted from Satan—to "be as Gods," being partakers of the Son of God. But how the Sacraments effect this we know not: we understand not the mysteries of our first, how should we then of our second, birth? Of both rather we confess, that we are fearfully and wonderfully made, but how we were fashioned, we know not.
This school[222] then, by taking as their one definition of the Christian Sacrament of Baptism what St, Paul says of the Jewish sign of circumcision[223], do in effect destroy the very essentials of a Sacrament. For, whatever general terms they may use of Baptism[224], when they begin to explain themselves, they always resolve its benefits into the sealing or attesting past promises, or the shadowing forth of subsequent regeneration, and this to be effected by the hearing of the word, not by the influence of Baptism[225]: they declare that by seals they do not mean instruments[226] of conveying grace: they deny that Baptism is the means of remitting original sin[227], or of obtaining justification[228]; they assert that those who are truly baptized have the substance of Baptism[229] before they are baptized, and have been regenerated[230]: that the gift of Baptism they have already received; have already been made members of Christ's Church[231]; they deny that all are born in original guilt[232]; they regard it as a grievous error, to suppose that we are regenerated by the act of baptizing[233]: Baptism, according to them, does not make persons children of God, but attests them to be so[234]: the Sacraments do not confer grace[235]: nay, they seem to regard the Sacraments as extolled, if they place their efficacy on a level with that of God's written word[236], (which has, doubtless, also a mystical power, as being God's word, and operates as such on the human soul, independently of, and above its containing Divine truth, yet is not a direct means of union with God in Christ): the Sacraments are in no other way efficacious, contribute nothing in addition to the written word[237]: the words of consecration are of no other avail than by teaching; by teaching alone does the dead element begin to be a Sacrament[238].
These are only so many several ways of saying the same thing, viz. that we derive every thing,—forgiveness of sins, regeneration, sanctification, adoption, strengthening and refreshing,—directly from God, not through the medium of the Sacraments, (for to the Sacraments themselves, except as so many channels from Christ, no one would attribute any efficacy,) that the Sacraments are only means of exhibiting to us God's promises, and disposing as to believe them. Infant Baptism, according to this theory, could manifestly convey nothing to the child; and so Calvin[239] makes its main use to be, a solace to the parent, as assuring them that their child is within the Covenant (which yet one hardly sees how, since if not elect, it was not within the Covenant, nor did its election depend upon the faith of the parent): of the child he says only that it derives "some little benefit (nonnihil emolumenti) from its Baptism, in that being engrafted into the body of the Church it is somewhat more recommended to the other members. Thus when it shall grow up it is thereby excited greatly to the earnest desire of worshipping God, by whom it had been received as a son, by the solemn symbol of adoption, before it was old enough to acknowledge Him as a Father." These outward motives then are all the spiritual benefits of Infant Baptism: just as persons are wont to speak of the exalted motives held forth by Christianity;—true indeed, but a small portion of the truth; as if the Sacraments or the whole Gospel were so many means of persuading man, impelling man, acting upon man's heart, instead of being "a power of God unto salvation."
Baptism, we are told by these writers, is a moral, not a physical instrument; and if by this it had been meant, that it acts upon our moral powers, this would, of course, have been true, but what no one would dispute: but it does mean more; and while the old doctrine of the Sacraments is stigmatized under the term physical, (as if forsooth physical were corporeal,) a subtle rationalism is imperceptibly introduced. For thus the gift of Baptism, and with it, all spiritual influences, instead of being an actual imparting of Divine grace to the human soul, a real union with Christ, are explained away to be the mere exhibition of outward motives, high indeed and heavenly, but still outward to man's soul, whereby he is led to act as he thinks will please God.
The participation of Christ in and out of the Sacraments (though not the same) will be conceived of in the same way; and so the doctrine of the Sacraments again affects that other great doctrine of our sanctification by the Holy Ghost. For if men conceive of Sacraments as external symbols, and acting through a moral operation, by representing to our souls the greatness of His love. His humiliation, His sufferings, and thus kindling our faith, and thereby uniting us with Him; then, and much more, will all the operations of the Holy Spirit be resolved into the presenting to the mind outward motives; and His sanctifying influence will become as merely external, any, far more so, than the ministration of what men call "the outward word." It is well to see the tendency of these doctrines, and how, under the semblance of removing what men call physical, they do in fact destroy all real, immediate, mysterious influence of God upon the human soul. "The Spirit," says one[240], "sanctifies no otherwise than that He impresses upon our minds the objects, which in the cross and resurrection of Christ, and in the other parts of the Christian religion, are incitements to lay hold of Christian virtues, as also whatever is offered to us in the preaching of the Gospel; and moreover, when fading from our mind He recalls them to our recollection, and, lastly, so illumines them with His light, that they descend from the mind into the affections, and in them continually struggle against the vice implanted by nature." And this impressing of objects, or their moral representation, is contrasted with the direct "action upon the soul, which approaches to the nature of physical causes:" wherein, in words only physical operation is excluded, in fact, all that is hyperphysical, in other words, all that is supernatural. It is essential (at the risk of prolixity and repetition) to have the character of these two views fully impressed upon our minds; for upon them depends the whole manner in which we receive God's spiritual influences; and in this age, which so loves what is clear, and definite, and rational, as readily to forfeit all that is deep, and mysterious, and indefinite, because infinite, and which is consequently already swept and garnished for the reception of rationalism, it is of vital importance to see into which of these two paths we are entering. For thereon the whole faith of our country may depend. It is not then the question, whether men call the Sacraments physical or moral causes, but what they mean by denying them to be physical, or asserting them to be moral causes; for although this may formerly, in a different section of the Church[241], have been denied or asserted, in a sense which did not alter men's notions of the Sacraments, it was not so in the Reformed Church, nor is it so now. The question then at issue between the Ancient, the English, and the Lutheran Church on the one side, and the School of Zuingli and Calvin, and so most of the Reformed Church on the other, was this: whether (to take the statement of the pious and learned John Gerhard as to his own Church) "the Sacraments were instruments, means, vehicles, whereby God offers, exhibits, and applies to believers the especial promises of the Gospel, remission of sins, righteousness, and life eternal[242]." What namely is denied, under the name "physical," is, that they are real instruments of conveying God's benefits to the soul: what is asserted by the title "moral" is, that they are signs only of past benefits, which they impress upon the memory, whereby (God's Holy Spirit acting, as He does, in every good thought, word, and work) faith is increased. This is the contrast which is constantly present to the minds of the reformed writers; this is laid down as the fundamental principle of the whole school: "in the sum of the matter," says Witsius[243], "by the grace of God, all the orthodox agree. The Sacraments, in respect to Divine grace, are destitute of a physical efficacy, or efficacy properly so called, and only concur morally towards it:" and in explanation of this language he approves of the defender of the Remonstrants, who defines[244] physical exhibiting or sealing to be, when a thing is brought, given, distributed, either at the same time as, (simul) or, together with, (una) or with, or by, or under, or in, or at, or about the signs (so to speak) physically; hyperphysical or miraculous, when an unknown or doubtful thing is confirmed, established, or certified, and so is exhibited to the mind, as it were, to be seen and felt: such are miracles, and all powers exceeding the force of nature. Lastly, sacramental, evangelical, whereby Divine grace, through certain signs, is—not represented from far or at a distance, nor under certain types, shadows or figures, are shown as through a telescope, as what is to take place hereafter, but—placed before the eyes, as now present, so clearly as if it were given to be handled by the senses and hands, as efficaciously as the mind can by any means be affected by those signs, without destroying the nature and property of signs and their significancy. This last is the doctrine of the Remonstrants." "I know not," subjoins Witsius, "what the Orthodox can find wanting herein." Yet, here, all Divine grace conveyed together, or simultaneously with, or through the signs, all supernatural or miraculous working, is expressly denied, and that alone retained which is consistent with the Sacraments remaining mere signs. And so to the notion of "those[245] who hold that God, by a sort of covenant, operates on occasion of the Sacraments, (although they ascribe all the efficacy to God, not to the Sacraments,") they oppose the reformed doctrine, that God is wont to give His grace before Sacraments are received, and that these are only signs and indications that such grace has been received; "and the notion of uniting God's grace with the Sacraments they regard as little differing from a magical superstition of words and signs;" and when, on the other hand, a writer of this Church[246] would assert more efficacy than usual to the Sacraments, the statement which he denies is that of this school, that "Sacraments only seal grace already received," and he asserts that they "are also means of receiving grace, and signs of grace which is present, and communicated and conferred together with them,—that in the right use of the Sacraments, a certain Divine power is connected therewith, which, through the sure covenant and promise of God, confers a salutary grace on the receiver, and acts in his soul."
Henceforth then there were these two opposite views of the Sacraments: that of the old Church that they were "efficacious instruments or channels of grace to all not unworthy receivers," and the modern one, that "they were signs of grace, which grace was imparted then, or previously, or subsequently directed by the action of the Holy Spirit on the soul of the receiver, in consequence of and through faith, and not through the Sacrament."
Infant Baptism the Ancient Church accounted (as above explained) an efficacious channel of grace to all; only they held that the grace so imparted might be subsequently withdrawn, if the individual permanently resisted its workings; otherwise, by virtue of that Sacrament, they held that the new nature then implanted would gradually overpower, weaken, destroy the old man; the leaven then infused would, at the last, "leaven the whole lump." In adults, faith was required, but only as removing an obstacle to the beneficial workings of God's Spirit through the Sacraments. The modern school, in that they held the children of Christian parents to be "holy in the root," to be "holy and faithful" before Baptism, regarded as the benefits of complying with this ordinance; 1st, obedience to God's command: 2ndly, visible incorporation into the Church; 3dly, increase of grace already received; 4thly, strength and confirmation;—whereby the peculiar graces of Baptism are presupposed as already given, then only to be enlarged and confirmed[247]; so that Baptism hardly occupies the place which in the Ancient Church was assigned to confirmation. If, again, a parent, (not through mischance, for this was almost always allowed for in the early Church, but) through wilful neglect should fail to bring his child to baptism, and it died without Baptism, then the child was consistently held not to be in the state of a heathen child, (which, in fact, though born of Christian parents, it was,) but was assumed to have all the privileges of the Covenant[248]; nay, it was used as an argument[249], why "regeneration should not be supposed ordinarily to be imparted at the same time as Baptism:" that, "so the carefulness of such parents as brought their children betimes to Baptism, would accelerate their regeneration and the benefits consequent thereon, their negligence would retard it; and so the influence of the Divine grace would ordinarily be determined by the carefulness or negligence of other human beings." On this ground it ought, consistently, to follow that Infant Baptism had no benefits at all, since, whatever they are supposed to be, they are obtained through the carefulness and faithful obedience of others; the Word of God ought to have no power upon the soul, since on the carefulness or negligence of parents evidently depends the time when our children become acquainted, nay, in some measure, how they are impressed with it; and so on, with regard to every means wherewith one person is entrusted to promote the soul's health of others. The blessed communion of our Lord's Body and Blood in like manner is made in some way dependant upon the ministry of the Church, since she is entrusted with the power of dispensing it more or less frequently; and so upon her faithfulness depends, in some measure, the richness and fulness of the blessing which her members enjoy. But all this is again a priori and rationalistic arguing. For why should not the spiritual blessings of one man depend upon others? and do they not most manifestly? The Jewish child, if not circumcised on the eighth day, was to be cut off. Did not its inferior privileges depend upon the obedience of its parents? Are not pious parents a high spiritual blessing? and if so, why should not the simple obedience to God's ordinance be a means of obtaining the blessings of that ordinance for our children?
The comparison with Circumcision, which is generally found united with this theory, occasionally served to extol that sign, whence it was asserted to convey regeneration[250] as well as the other privileges of the Christian covenant, (only as was sometimes said, in a lesser fulness than now): for the most part its effect was to bring down Baptism from a Sacrament of Christ to the character of the signs of the older Dispensation[251]. Thus men, in the fears of a papal magnifying of the Sacraments fell into the opposite extreme: for fear it should seem absolutely necessary they made it seem almost indifferent: and for fear God's grace should be "tied to the Sacrament," they virtually disjoined God's grace from His own ordinance.
The language, in which this theory of the Sacraments was expressed, was subjected to various modifications, partly in consequence of the anxiety of this school (which is visible in the vehemence of their protests[252]) to make out to themselves that the Sacraments did not, on their theory, become "empty signs:" partly to satisfy the Lutherans, whose chief ground of complaint against the reformed lay against this innovation. It is, consequently, difficult to ascertain, in the several confessions, how much of this theory[253] they retained, and in what degree they attempted to engraft upon it the language of the old and the Lutheran Church. There is, however, a remarkable correspondence in the decisiveness wherewith this theory is spoken out in the confessions of the several branches of the Reformed Church, and their Liturgies: only these are obviously surer tests of belief, since confessions are often modified for the sake of harmony; prayer would express by its omissions as well as by its actual petitions. The comparison consequently of the old, and the Lutheran, and our own Liturgy on the one hand, with the Reformed Liturgies on the other, is very instructive as to the tenets of the several Churches[254].
Into our own country this theory was introduced partly by Peter Martyr, partly by the intercourse with the Swiss reformers: one might instance Bishop Hooper, as one who inclined, in outward things, to the school of Geneva, and in whose statement of the Sacraments[255] scarcely a vestige of any spiritual influence remains. It appears, also, very prominently in the early controversies with the Romanists. Upon this system it was idle to speak of the connection of Regeneration with Baptism, since Baptism conferred upon infants no spiritual grace. The new birth being separated from Christ's ordinance, it was natural to make it coincide with the first appearance of spiritual life: only, since our Saviour says, "Except a man be born again he cannot see the kingdom of God," it was assumed that those infants who, being elected, died in infancy, were regenerated, although, apparently, not through, or at Baptism[256]. And so the term "regeneration" came to be used for the visible change, or almost for "sanctification[257]," and its original sense, as denoting a privilege of the Christian Church, was wholly lost. Hence, also, it could not but follow that persons were (in this sense) regenerated, some before, some after Baptism; for since regeneration was taken to mean, partly, the first actual commencement of conscious spiritual life, partly that life in its subsequent development; then, since faith and repentance are the commencements of spiritual life, it was held that any one to whom God had given these, was also regenerate; and so also any pious Jew was regenerated, and if baptized, then regenerated before Baptism[258]. But this is not the scriptural usage of the term, and came in with the false view of the Sacraments as signs and seals only. Undoubtedly the pious men under the old dispensation were sanctified; and in these days of ordinary attainment, how must we look back with shame and dejection upon the worthies of the elder Covenant, upon "those three men, Noah, Daniel, and Job," or upon Abraham the "father of the faithful," and the "friend of God." Greatly were they sanctified: the Spirit of God dwelt in their hearts, and wrought therein the incorruption amid a corrupted world, the self-denial, the patience, the unhesitating, unwearied faith, for which we yet venerate them. The Spirit of God, which at last withdrew from every other human heart, hallowed, and, like His emblem the dove, abode in the Ark; He purified the breast of the "preacher of righteousness," and kindled the filial piety of his two sons. Yet was not Noah therefore regenerate. "These all, having obtained a good report through faith, received not the promise; God having provided some better thing for us, that they without us should not be made perfect." They were the faithful servants, but not as yet the sons, of God. Christ had not died: our nature was not yet placed at God's right hand: the ever-blessed Son of God had not yet become man, that we, whom "He is not ashamed to call brethren," might be sons of God, as being in and of Him. One must speak tremblingly of such a mystery: but one dare not lower the greatness of our new creation, nor conceal the immensity of our Birthright, although our feeble brain may turn dizzy, and our faint hearts sink at the exceeding weight of such glory. We dare not shrink from avowing it, although we too may have turned "our glory into shame." Sons of God! brethren of Christ! and if children, then heirs, heirs of God and joint heirs with Christ! when He shall appear, we shall be like Him! We speak not of the heavenly blessedness of the holy Patriarchs, nor how they are to become, or have become parts of the mystical Body of our and their Redeemer, or how they shall be endued with that perfectness, which God, for a while, delayed until we should share it with them. Of the way and means of that blessed consummation we know nothing; but we surely do know that they had not that fulness of privilege which we have, that they "were not made perfect;" that, when the serpent's head was crushed, and the virgin's womb not abhorred, and man delivered, the kingdom of Heaven opened, and the Son of man was also the Son of God, and our flesh sanctified by the Incarnation, and immortalized and glorified; then a great change was wrought upon the earth, the old descent from Adam cut off, in as many as were engraffed into Him, and a new lineage begun for man, even sonship of God, and brotherhood with Christ, the Everlasting Son of the Father! "How," says St. Augustine[259], "How do they become sons of God?" they were born—"'not of blood,' such as is the first birth, a wretched birth, coming of wretchedness, but—of God. The first birth was of man and woman, the second of God and the Church; whence was it then that being first born of man, they were born of God? The Word became flesh. Mighty change! He made flesh, they spirit! What dignity! my brethren. Lift up your mind to hope and seek for better things. Shrink from devoting yourselves to worldly desires! ye have been bought with a price: for you the Word became flesh: for you He, who was the Son of God, became the son of man, that ye, who were sons of men, might be made sons of God. He was the Son of God! What became He? Son of man! Ye were sons of men! what were ye made? Sons of God! He shared our ills, to give us His goodnesses." May God's Holy Spirit open all our hearts to see what of ourselves we cannot see, what our indolence would shrink from thinking on, since it involves such high responsibility, that so we may "know the love of Christ, which passeth knowledge, that we may be filled with all the fulness of God!" Truly, though "none among them that are born of woman be greater than John the Baptist, he that is least in the kingdom of Heaven is greater than he." We dare, then, neither compare ourselves with the Holy Patriarchs, nor dare we compare their privileges with ours: yea, though it he oppressive to every one of us, and force us to weep for the extremity of anguish and shame at our past unfaithfulness, yet we dare not add to our sin by denying the exceeding greatness of the treasures with which we were entrusted.
Regeneration then, or the new-birth whereby we are made sons of God, is a privilege of the Church of Christ; and we dare not extend it where His word doth not warrant us. To the Church alone in this life, it belongs to be the mother of the sons of God. We dare not speculate further. Sanctification, on the contrary, as it includes various degrees, yea! as the Son of God "sanctified" Himself, so also in their several degrees is there the holiness of the blessed Angels, of Apostles, Martyrs, Confessors, Prophets, Patriarchs, Saints in all ages of the world: "one star differeth from another star." We limit too much the manifold operations of God by contracting them within the bounds of our systems. Doubtless, the history of that primeval influence of the Spirit of God upon the chaotic elements was recorded as a type of His universal agency through our whole moral nature; and they, "who having not the law, did by nature the things contained in the law," had that "law written in their hearts" by the Holy Spirit of God. Here we are not left to conjecture. He strove against the deepening corruption of the descendants of Cain; nor have we any reason to think that He withdrew His influences from the cleansed and new-baptized world. As then, inspiration includes every imparting "of wisdom to the wise-hearted," (Ex. xxxi. 6.) from Bezaleel the son of Hur, who was "filled with the Spirit of God in wisdom and understanding, and in knowledge, and all manner of workmanship" for the work of the tabernacle, up to the blessed Evangelist, who saw "Him that sat on the throne" and declared the mystery of the Incarnate Word, so does sanctification comprehend the imparting of all holiness, from the faintest spark that ever purified the heart of a benighted Heathen, to the holiest Angel who stands before the throne of God. And so we may recognize, with thankfulness and without misgiving, the virtues and wisdom which were granted to the Heathen world, as an effluence from Him who filleth all in all, as so many scattered rays from the Father of lights, powerless almost, or very limited beyond the bosom into which they had descended, because so scattered, yet still derived from Him "who divideth to every man severally as He will," and faint emblems of that concentrated glory which was to be shed upon the world through the Sun of righteousness.
The case of Cornelius is very remarkable in this respect, as indeed one should expect the calling of the father of the Gentile Church to have something peculiar, as well as that of the father of the first people of God. Two different points in his history have accordingly been seized upon, and made the Scriptural basis of distinct theories: his previous holiness—of the school-notion of grace of congruity—the descent of the Holy Ghost previous to his Baptism—of the separation of the grace of the Sacrament from the ordinance[260]. Each rests upon the same false assumption, that the works done by Cornelius were done in his own strength, "before" and independently of "the inspiration of God's Holy Spirit," (Art. 13); since otherwise there were no question, on the part of the Schoolmen, of "grace of congruity;" for as the prayers, the almsgiving, the fasting of Cornelius were the fruit of faith in God, and of the guidance of His Spirit, the imparting of "grace after grace" has nothing to do with the question of human fitness. It is but God's ordinary method of dealing with us, to proportion His subsequent gifts to the use which we have made of those before bestowed. "Take from him the pound and give it unto him who hath ten pounds. And they said unto him, Lord! he hath ten pounds. For I say unto you, that unto every one who hath shall be given." (Luke xix. 24, 25). "Unto you who have there shall be added; for he who hath, to him shall be given." (Mark iv. 24, 25). On the other hand, Cornelius was not then first sanctified, when "the Holy Ghost fell on all them which heard the word," but when he beforetime "feared God with all his house, gave much alms to the people, and prayed to God alway." For through Him alone could he have prayed acceptably. He alone putteth the spirit of holy fear into man's heart. He was, then, as a Heathen, sanctified; but because the sanctification of a Heathen who feared God, fell far short of the holiness following upon the Christian birth, God, by a succession of visions, prepared the Centurion to "hear all the things commanded of God," and the Apostle to preach them: and the first-fruits of the Heathen world was one, whom God had already, in a high measure, hallowed, that the pre-eminence of the kingdom of Heaven might be the more manifest, in that it was one universal kingdom, wherein all should receive remission of sins through the blood of Christ, wherein not "the publicans and harlots" only might be cleansed and purified, but also "those who feared God and worked righteousness" might find their "acceptance." Cornelius was already, in a measure, sanctified; and therefore God, who limits not His blessed workings, either to one nation, or to one kind of moral disposition, or of moral evil, but absorbs all the countless varieties of things in heaven and things in earth, animates them all, and fashioneth them "according to the working, whereby He is able to subdue all things unto Himself;" so He received into His universal kingdom all, rich or poor, learned or unlearned, wise or foolish, obedient or disobedient, whoever would now hear His voice and follow Him. And though His Gospel was, and is still, principally received in its fulness and its simplicity by "the foolish, and the weak, and the base things of the world, and things which are despised," yet has it shown its power in giving the true wisdom, and might, and nobleness to those who, in man's school, were already "wise, and mighty, and noble;" and as the first Jewish disciples of the Saviour of the world were those who already followed the austere and self-denying Baptist, the Virgin St. John, and St. Andrew, so was the first convert from the Gentiles one, who, in prayer, in alms-giving, in subduing of the flesh, had already made some progress; that so all might see, that neither the abyss of sin was too deep for God's arm to rescue thence the foulest sinner, nor any holiness, which even He had imparted, sufficed to admit to the glories of His kingdom, without the "birth of water and the Spirit." Cornelius was already, in a measure, sanctified; and therefore He, who "giveth more grace," translated him into the kingdom of His dear Son, chose him first of the Gentile world to be a member of Christ, re-generated him and then sanctified him wholly; that "all who glory might" henceforth "glory in the Lord." The miraculous imparting of the Holy Ghost, whereby they (not Cornelius only) "spake with tongues, and magnified God," does not appear (one must speak reverentially, but still it does not appear) to have been imparted for the sake of Cornelius, but of the Church; or rather for Cornelius' and all our sakes, that it might hence be testified that from that time there was neither Jew nor Greek, but that the "kingdom of Heaven was opened to all believers." And so the Gentile Church, in the house of Cornelius, was inaugurated in the same solemn way wherein the Apostles themselves had received the "promise of the Father;" and it was signified, that "to the Gentiles also was given repentance unto life," that among the Gentiles, also, and through the Gentiles, in every speech, and nation, and language, men "should magnify God." And since the visible descent of the Holy Ghost, and the speaking with tongues, and magnifying God, had, for its immediate object, to convince St. Peter, and the rest of the Apostles, that "no man should forbid water, that these should not be baptized, which have received the Holy Ghost, as well as we;" what are we, that we should venture to say, that Cornelius had received all the benefits of Baptism before he was baptized, when it was his very admittance to Baptism, which God chose in this way to effect[261]? or how dare we lower the greatness of our privilege, in being made the sons of God? Cornelius had faith (for "without faith, it is impossible to please God"); he had love; he had self-denial; he had had the power to pray given to him; but he had not Christian faith, nor love, nor self-denial, nor prayer; for as yet he knew not Christ: he could not call God Father, for, as yet, he knew not the Son. Faith and repentance, in adults, are necessary to the new birth, but they are not the new birth. That, God imparteth as it pleaseth Him, according to the depths of His wisdom: it dependeth not, as faith and repentance, in some measure, may, upon the will of man, but of God, who calleth into His Church whom He will.
St. Augustine simply and strikingly expresses this view: "we ought not," he says[262], "to disparage the righteousness of a man, which began before he was joined to the Church, as the righteousness of Cornelius had begun before he was one of the Christian people; which, had it been disapproved of, the angel had not said, 'Thy alms are accepted,' &c.; nor, if it had sufficed to obtain the kingdom of Heaven, had he been admonished to send to Peter:" and in the very passage[263] generally alleged to disparage what are called "outward ordinances," "Thus, in Cornelius, there preceded a spiritual sanctification in the gift of the Holy Spirit, and the Sacrament of regeneration was added in the washing of Baptism." For St. Augustine does not look upon Baptism as an outward sign even to Cornelius, or to be received only as an act of obedience. For, having instanced the pardoned thief, as a case wherein Baptism had, from necessity, been dispensed with, he adds[264], "much more in Cornelius and his friends might it seem superfluous, that they should be bedewed with water, in whom the gift of the Holy Spirit, (which Holy Scripture testifies, that no others received, unless baptized,) had appeared conspicuously by that sure token (in conformity with that period), viz., that they spake with tongues. Yet they were baptized, and in this event we have apostolic sanction for the like. So surely ought no one, in whatever advanced state of the inner man, (yea, if haply, before Baptism, he should have advanced through a pious heart to a spiritual understanding,) to despise the Sacrament which is administered in the body by the work of the ministers, but thereby God spiritually operates the consecration of the man."
II. There was yet another school, which, not agreeing with Calvin in his theory of the Sacraments, but taking in their obvious sense the statement of our Articles (that "the Sacraments are effectual signs"), were yet deterred from fully embracing the doctrine of Baptismal regeneration, by another doctrine of Calvin,—the indefectibility of grace. This school rested not their objections upon any Scriptural statement of the doctrine of Regeneration, nor upon any new interpretation of Holy Scripture, nor upon any supposed inconsistency between the old interpretation and the actual history of the human soul: that interpretation was virtually admitted to be the more obvious. Temporary wickedness, and utter abandonment to sin, was held (and could not but be held) to be no objection whatever to the truth that such had been regenerated; a man, though, for the time, immersed in sin[265], if elect, and, consequently, destined finally to recover, was held to have been regenerated in Baptism. The objection originated on grounds altogether distinct from the subject itself—the indefectibility of grace.
It will, I fear, to some good men seem invidious, to trace up the rejection of Baptismal regeneration to a peculiar tenet of Calvin, as it's primary source; and at this, one should be much grieved. But it cannot be avoided: for the character of our opinions will be much affected by the source from which they were originally derived, even although we hold them as detached from that source. The waters will be affected by the character of their fountain, although that may be removed out of our sight. It does, indeed, frequently happen, that we adopt maxims or practices, upon certain principles, which we afterwards forget; and habit supplies the place of the principle. In generations of men, the maxim or practice will often be inherited, when the original principles, upon which they are founded, have not only been forgotten, but partially abandoned, and, perhaps, no further retained than is implied virtually by the practice itself. And then it will seem invidious, if we appear to connect with men's acknowledged tenets other principles, which they are scarcely aware of holding. But, in truth, it is not so. Few persons follow out consistently their own principles; and, in these days especially, the different sets of religious tenets are, for the most part, put together out of shreds and patches of different systems, with no aim or thought of consistency or unity. But, though the individuals are not responsible for any tenet, except what they themselves hold, the tenet itself is much affected by its origin: it is part of a large system, which we, perhaps, cannot survey in all its details; but still it is a representative, as it were, of that system, and helps to maintain it, or to repress the contrary. Hence, one's objection to many tenets held by persons, of whom, in many respects, one thinks well; because the tenets are, in themselves, a part of Socianism or Rationalism (though, one would hope, not in these individuals); and, while it would be unfair to charge them in full with either heresy, it is charity to them, and a duty to our Church, to point out to what system these their tenets belong. So, again, it is useful (in the hope that we may come to truer and more consistent views), to show that, whereas the doctrine of the Baptismal regeneration of all infants belongs to the Catholic system, which supposes a free, full, and sufficient grace to be offered unto all men, its rejection originated in that section of the Church, which supposed a portion of mankind, whether they died as infants or adults, elected to life, the rest left to the damnation which their inherited corruption in itself deserved. Therewith it is not said, nor meant to be understood, that those who now reject the doctrine of Baptismal regeneration, hold any such views.
This school, then, made the indefectibility of grace, the rule by which they measured the declarations of God, with respect to His mercies in Baptism. As many as held that none could fall finally from grace given, were obliged to hold, that none but those who should finally be saved, were regenerated in Baptism. Nor did they wish to conceal that this was their only ground. Being fully persuaded of the truth of their first principles, they held, unhesitatingly, that the general declarations of Holy Scripture (they added, also, of the Fathers[266],) must be limited by this known truth. As they expressed it, all "elect children" received the gifts of the Holy Spirit; the rest were washed with water only[267]. These, in some respects, retained the honour of the Sacrament of Baptism; in another, began to derogate from it. They retained it, in that they held, that all who ever received regeneration ordinarily, received it through the Sacrament of Baptism (and this limitation "ordinarily" they annexed only, that they might not seem to tie down[268] as they thought unduly, the operations of the Almighty:) they imagined no other entrance into the Lord's house, than the door which He had appointed. They derogated, on the other hand, from that Sacrament, in that they could no longer consistently hold, that the benefits imparted were by virtue of our Saviour's institution, or of His words of blessing (since, then, they would have been extended to all not unworthy partakers); but they were obliged to ascribe it to the secret[269] counsel of God, giving effect to the outward ordinance when and to whom He willed. Most of these, however, were still able to use our formularies, although not in their original sense, since our Baptismal formulary was immediately derived from the Lutheran Church[270]; and this, with the Fathers, held the universal regeneration of baptized infants[271]. Yet, since man could not tell who of these infants were elect, and who not, they held, that these words could be used by a sort of charity to each infant. And this excuse, Hooker seems to suggest to those who objected to the questions addressed to the god-parents at Baptism, on the ground, that none could have faith, except the elect; and that, therefore, the god-parents could not, with certainty, affirm, that any child did believe. "Were St. Augustine now living, there are which would tell him for his better instruction, that to say of a child, it is elect, and to say, it doth believe, are all one: for which cause, sith no man is able precisely to affirm the one of any infant in particular, it followeth, that precisely and absolutely we ought not to say the other. Which precise and absolute terms are needless in this case. We speak of infants as the rule of piety alloweth both to speak and think. They that can take to themselves, in ordinary talk, a charitable kind of liberty to name men of their own sort God's dear children, (notwithstanding the large reign of hypocrisy,) should not methinks be so strict and rigorous against the Church for presuming as it doth of a Christian innocent. For when we know how Christ in general hath said that 'of such is the kingdom of Heaven,' which kingdom is the inheritance of God's elect; and do withal behold, how His Providence hath called them unto the first beginnings of eternal life, and presented them at the well-spring of new-birth, wherein original sin is purged, besides which sin, there is no hindrance of their salvation known to us, as themselves will grant; hard it were, that having so many fair inducements whereupon to ground, we should not be thought to utter, at the least a truth as probable and allowable in terming any such particular infant an elect babe, as in presuming the like of others whose safety nevertheless we are not absolutely able to warrant."
This objection to Baptismal regeneration is remarkably illustrated by the theory of a class of Divines[272], who conceived that there were two different kinds of regeneration, justification, adoption, one of which was imparted to all by Baptism, the other to those only who were finally saved. For the indefectibility of grace being thus secured, they had then no difficulty in admitting "that to all infants duly baptised the blood of Christ was applied to the remission of original sin, whence they were not only in a manner adopted and justified, but regenerated also and sanctified. Thus then they were put into a state of salvation, according to the measure of children; so that such as died, before the use of reason, were by that their justification, regeneration, and sanctification, indeed eternally saved. But what suffices for little ones for salvation does not suffice for adults. They therefore who perish in maturer age, not fulfilling the vow of Baptism, do not lose the state of salvation which they had proportioned to them as infants, but lose the state of infancy, which, being changed, that ceases to suffice for the state of an adult, which by the Divine appointment was sufficient for the salvation of the little one."
By this theory, which intellectually was acutely framed, three advantages were gained; 1st, the passages of Holy Scripture, which speak of the regeneration of all baptized persons, of the remission of sin to all, and the like, could be taken in their literal sense without interfering with the doctrine which was made the rule of the rest; 2d, they avoided the invidiousness of implying that non-elect infants, who died as infants, although baptized, were damned; which was frequently urged against this school. 3d, The formularies of our Church could be understood in their literal sense.
The distinction here introduced is manifestly without any authority from Scripture, and its sole object to obviate a difficulty, yet on that very ground it the more shows wherein the objection[273] to admit the baptismal regeneration of all infants really lay.
Such were the two great lines of objection then taken to the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration of all infants: the one class generally holding that those who were regenerated were so before Baptism (Baptism sealing it only) the other allowing that all regeneration took place at Baptism, but confining it to the elect. The objections with which we are most familiar in modern times are not directly derived from either of these sources, although indirectly fostered by them, and retaining some of their principles, (as that of the indefectibility of grace,) but from those whom these writers opposed—the Anabaptists.
III. They may be divided into à priori, or which might be called Rationalist objections, and those for which Scripture authority is pleaded.
1. Of the first, it was said that "we would not see that any change took place in infants," that "the child remained apparently the same as before," that "it was incapable of grace," and the like. This is so much rationalism; a dull-hearted and profane unbelief, which even in the things of God would not "any science understand, beyond the grasp of eye or hand:" it is making our reason a measure of God's doings, and denying His operations, because we are not cognisant of the effect. It would also obviously be an argument, not simply against the regeneration of baptized infants, but against baptizing them altogether: for if baptized infants are incapable of regenerating grace, or the full benefits of Baptism, whereas the new-birth is the grace conferred through Baptism, then, by baptizing infants, we should be robbing them of their birth-right, and be guilty of the blood of all the souls whom we thus mocked with the mere semblance of Baptism: and so the universal Church would have erred in interpreting their Saviour's command to "suffer little children to come to Him, for of such is the kingdom of Heaven." This the more consistent Predestinarian writers well saw. "If any man shall so do," says[274] one of them in reply, "he must grant that elect infants do receive but a piece of Baptism, the shell without the kernel, the body without the soul. And if this be true, to what end are they baptized?"—"To say[275] that Baptism admits them to the outward means, is to say just nothing to the purpose. May not an infant unbaptized come to hear the word read or preached? Anabaptists do not shut their children out of the Church, when the word is preached, but only exclude them from the Sacraments. If Anabaptists might as freely show themselves here among us, as they do in other countries, this doctrine of Baptismal grace would be better entertained by such as now oppose it without consideration of this sequel."
The answer was variously worded; but it was in substance this, that since God had, in His ordinary dealings, annexed this grace to Baptism, no doubt that it was imparted to infants then, though we saw it not; but that it remained in them, as people would acknowledge that their powers of thought or reasoning do, which no one could deny them to have, although they did not see the present exercise of them. Or again, they argued[276] (reversing St. Augustine's method, since the opposite truth was now that disputed) whereas it was admitted, that "infants naturally are somewaise capable of Adam's sinne, and so of unbeleefe, disobedience, transgression, &c. then Christian infants supernaturally and by grace, are somewaies capable to Christ's righteousness, and so of faith, obedience, sanctification," &c. silencing rightly men's cavils "how can these things be," by reference to the corresponding case, wherein our ignorance was allowed.
This grace, they most usually called, by a sufficiently apt metaphor, (if not too closely pressed) a seminal[277], (or else an initial, or potential) regeneration; or again an habitual[278] (as opposed to an active) principle of grace; i.e. they would express that the incorruptible seed was then planted in the human heart, which, if not choked, or if continued contumacy provoked not God to withdraw it, would hereafter yield fruit unto life eternal. And with this might agree, I would hope, the modern and colder expression, that "Baptismal Regeneration is a change of state," a virtual, I suppose, as opposed to an actual change of heart—a state of holiness and acceptableness towards God, as derived from our incorporation into the Son of God, and the consequent participation of His holiness, and yet in a manner contrasted with the fuller and complete actual sanctification of the believer, who has grown up in his Baptismal privileges. This view is very clearly expressed by Hooker. "The grace which is given them with their Baptism, doth so far forth depend on the very outward Sacrament, that God will have it embraced, not only as a sign or token what we receive, but also as an instrument or means whereby we receive grace, because Baptism is a Sacrament which God hath instituted in His Church, to the end that they which receive the same might thereby be incorporated into Christ; and so through His most precious merit obtain as well that saving grace of imputation which taketh away all former guiltiness, as also that infused Divine virtue of the Holy Ghost, which giveth to the powers of the soul their first disposition towards future newness of life."
In which passage Hooker, while he expresses the same truth, happily avoids the danger arising from all illustration in Divine things, viz. that the metaphor must in some respects be inapplicable; and in this instance, that by this contrast of initial with actual regeneration, it might seem as if there were two regenerations, or rather that regeneration meant two things—1st, the act of the new-birth bestowed by God; 2d, the spiritual life conformable thereto; whereas in Scripture, and by the ancient Church, the latter is regarded as included in the former; as (if one may compare earthly things,) the ripened corn in the seed, the future intellectual man in the babe.
And thus St. Augustine[279], while (according to Tit. 3.) he asserts both regeneration and renovation to be the fruits of Baptism, yet distinguishes alike in adults and infants, between that renewal which takes place at once in Baptism, by the abolition of the old man, and that entire transformation and complete conversion of the whole mind to God, effected by the finished formation of the "new man" within us, which "having been put on" in Baptism, is day by day "renewed in knowledge after the likeness of Him who created him." (Col. iii. 10.) "Of a truth this renewal does not take place at the one moment of his conversion, as doth in one moment that renewal in Baptism by the remission of all sins; since not even one sin, however small, remains, which is not remitted. But as it is one thing to be freed from fever, another to recover from the sickness caused by fever: one thing to remove a weapon fixed in a body, another by a second cure to heal the wound which it has made; so the first cure is to remove the cause of the weakness, and this is through the forgiveness of all sin; the second is to cure the weakness itself, and this is by gradual progress in the renewal of this image—by daily accession in the knowledge of God, and righteousness and holiness of truth. He who from day to day is being renewed by his continual progress, transfers his love from things temporal to eternal—from visible to invisible—from carnal to spiritual, and diligently presses on to rein in and diminish his desire to these, and to bind himself to those by love." Only we must beware that we relax not our notions of Christian holiness, by applying to the Christian, what St. Augustine here says of an adult convert: for in no one baptized ought sin ever to have grown to that height of feverishness, as to leave such dismal effects as St. Augustine speaketh of: our struggle ought to be against the remains of natural, not (or at least not in any great degree) against acquired corruption; else, as the baptized person sins more grievously than he of whom St. Augustine speaketh, so neither has he the same means of restoration open to him. The case of the baptized infant is rather described in St. Augustine's other words[280], "The Sacrament of regeneration in them doth precede, and if they hold on in Christian piety the conversion of the heart will follow, the mystery whereof preceded in the body." For "mystery" in St. Augustine's language does not mean a mere outward type or emblem; and the very mention of "perseverance" in Christian piety, shows that by "conversion of the heart," he intendeth not a new commencement of spiritual existence, but rather that entire renovation and conforming of the whole soul and spirit to the image of God, which, though pledged, and if it be cherished, actually commencing[281] from baptism, is gradually completed by the sanctification of a whole life.
2. The next objection was akin in character to the former, viz. that "children could not have faith, and therefore could not be re-born, since faith is essential to the new-birth." The answer to this branched into several subjects, which are of moment in this day also: as on whose faith children were accepted in Baptism, whether that of their parents, or their sponsors, or of the Church; and again with regard to the faith of those who brought them, whether that degree of faith, which was implied by the very act of bringing the child to Holy Baptism, by itself was available to the child, or whether a living faith was required, involving personal holiness.
The judgment of the ancient Church was very clear, as evinced both by the statements of the Fathers and her actual practice; viz. that it was through the Faith of the Church (as performing that Holy Office whereto God had annexed the blessing), that the child obtained the benefits of Baptism; Christ had received all children brought unto Him; the promise was "to you and to your children;" (Acts ii. 39.) the command to Baptize unlimited: so the Christian Covenant belonged to all, born within the Christian Church, whatever the personal character of their immediate parents might be. As born of one included on God's part within the Covenant (whether he finally lose the benefits of that Covenant or no) the infant is a child of that Covenant, and entitled to its privileges. "Let not that disturb thee," (says St. Augustine to Bishop Boniface[282], in an extreme case) "that some bring their infants to Baptism, not with the belief that they should be regenerated by spiritual grace to life eternal, but because they think that by this remedy they may retain or recover the health of this life. For they are not on that account not regenerated, because they are not brought for that end by those persons. For the necessary offices are celebrated by their agency; and so are the words of the Sacraments, without which the little one cannot be consecrated. But that Holy Spirit, who dwells in the Saints, (out of whom that one dove, covered with silver, is molten together by the flame of charity) worketh what He doth work, even by the ministry of some who are not merely simply ignorant, but even damnably unworthy. For infants are offered to receive spiritual grace not so much by those in whose hands they are borne, (although by them also, if they also be good men and believers) as by the whole society of the saints and believers. For they are rightly understood to be offered by all, who are glad that they should be offered, or by whose holy and united charity they are helped forward to receive the communication of the Holy Spirit. The universal mother, then, the Church, which is of the Saints, doth this; for the whole Church beareth all, and beareth them severally."
"Let no one tell me," says St. Bernard[283] "that an infant has not faith, to whom the Church imparts her's. Great is the faith of the Church." The profession of faith made by the sponsors is the declaration of that faith of the Church, on the ground of which the little ones are admitted into Covenant: and accordingly St. Augustine almost uniformly speaks of this confession[284] of faith, when he alludes to the faith of the sponsors as being available for the child. The sponsors are pledges to the Church: the Church offers her faith to God. And so in our own Church, all the words of comfort and assurance that "God will favourably receive our infants, and embrace them with the arms of His mercy," are addressed on each occasion, not to the sponsors, but to the whole congregation[285]: the sponsors are but subsequently called upon to promise, on the child's part, what is needed, that the benefits of Baptism may be hereafter retained and fully realized. With this view of the relation of the faith of the sponsors and of the Church, agree those cases, in which the children of aliens, whether excommunicate or heathen, were allowed the privileges of Christian Baptism. Of the excommunicate, St. Augustine says, that "no offences of the parent, however heinous, would make him presume to exclude the child from the laver of regeneration in case of danger." With regard to the children of Heathen, it was always reckoned an act of charity to baptize them, "when, through the secret Providence of God, they by any means, (by purchase or captivity, or abandoned by their Heathen parents) came into the hands of pious persons[286]." For, (as has often been alleged), since not only the children born of "faithful Abraham," were admitted into the covenant of circumcision, but they also who were "bought with his money," or the slave, "born in his house," so also, and much more, might all those be admitted into our enlarged covenant in Christ, whom the Church could, with safety to herself, offer unto Him. It was necessary, namely, for the purity of the Church, that some guarantee should be given, that those admitted into her, the body of Christ, should be brought up as her true children; but the Sacrament had its power not of man but of God: the faith of those who brought them was available in that they undertook the condition, which (for the well-being of the Church) was necessary for their reception, and brought them to their Saviour to take them into His arms and bless them: the faith of the Church was available in that she believed the promises of God, and administered the Sacrament committed to her, whereby those promises of God were realized and applied to the individual. "Be it then," says Hooker[287], "that Baptism belongeth to none but such as either believe presently, or else, being infants, are the children of believing parents. In case the Church do bring children to the holy font, whose natural parents are either unknown or known to be such as the Church accurseth, but yet forgetteth not in that severity to take compassion upon their offspring, (for it is the Church which doth offer them to Baptism by the ministry of presenters,) were it not against both equity and duty to refuse the mother of believers herself, and not to take her in this case for a faithful parent? It is not the virtue of our fathers, nor the faith of any other, that can give us the true holiness which we have by virtue of our new-birth. Yet even through the common faith and Spirit of God's Church, (a thing which no quality of parents can prejudice) I say, through the faith of the Church of God, undertaking the motherly care of our souls, so far forth we may be and are in our infancy sanctified, as to be thereby made sufficiently capable of Baptism, and to be interested in the rites of our new-birth for their piety's sake that offer us thereunto." Whence also. Hooker pronounces[288], (and the decision, so grounded, might remove some perplexities which occur now also,) "a wrong conceit, that none may receive the Sacrament of Baptism but they whose parents, at the least one of them, are, by the soundness of their religion and by their virtuous demeanour, known to be men of God, hath caused some to repel children, whosoever bring them, if their parents be mispersuaded in religion, or for other misdeserts excommunicated; some, likewise, for that cause, to withhold Baptism, unless the father (albeit, no such exception can justly be taken against him) do, notwithstanding, make profession of his faith, and avouch the child to be his own. Thus, whereas, God has appointed them ministers of holy things, they make themselves inquisitors of men's persons a great deal farther than need is. They should consider, that God hath ordained Baptism in favour of mankind. To restrain favours is an odious thing; to enlarge them, acceptable both to God and man."
"It is not written," says St. Augustine[289], "Except one be born again of the will of his parents or of the faith of those who offer him, or who minister, but 'except he be born again of water and the Holy Ghost.' The water then exhibiting without, the Sacrament of Grace and the Spirit working within, the benefit of grace, loosing the band of sin, restoring good to nature, do, both together, regenerate in one Christ, man, who was generated of one Adam." And Luther says[290] well, "That Baptism may be assured in us, therefore God doth not found it upon our faith, since that may be uncertain and false, but on His word and institution."
Else, also, if the regeneration of the child depended upon the holiness of the parent, then, since, according to the views in question, those who are regenerated are finally saved, all the children of believing parents, and they only, would be regenerated and so saved: whereas, as one of their own writers says[291] "all children saved are not of believing parents: yea, we may in charitie presume of some, perhaps, without the Church, whom the Lord mercifully saveth out of most wicked progenitors for many generations." Not, manifestly, as if the faith and longing desires, and yearnings, and prayers of the parents for the child were of no benefit to it, or, again, that the prayers of the congregation, which the Church solicits for each infant, availed nothing; but, only, that no faith, or desires, or prayers, or any thing besides, were of such moment as to affect the virtue which Christ has annexed to His Sacrament of Baptism, or, as if the regeneration of our infants were to be ascribed in any way to our prayers instead of Christ's ordinance. Larger measures of grace He, doubtless, may bestow in answer to more fervent prayers; and it would argue a sinful want of sympathy, were the Church not to pray, when God is about, by her means, to engraff a new member into the body of His Son; and, therefore, we pray: but not as if God's mercy was so limited to our prayers, that He would not render Christ's ordinance effectual to one who opposed it not, although we sinned in our mode of administering it.
One way in which the faith of the Church is of avail, is indeed plain and tangible. It is, namely, through the faith of true believers, that Christ perpetuates the use of His Sacraments in the Church. For those who first sought them for themselves or their children, out of habit or custom, or any other motive, not because they knew it to be our Lord's will, would, obviously, never have sought them at all, but for the example originally given by those more faithful few. And thus He bestows the benefits of Baptism even upon the children of those unfaithful parents who have neglected to cherish and cultivate its benefits in themselves, and yet are induced, by the faith of others, to believe that some good will result from the Baptism of their children, and so present them. For who could doubt, that if the faith of those, who in true faith offer their children to be made members of Christ by Baptism, had not in each successive age continued Infant-Baptism as a rite and custom of the Church, those who now bring their children mainly out of custom, would disuse it; and so their children lose it and its fruits? The faith of the faithful is the salt of the earth, preserving it from corruption. God's gracious promise to Abraham has full often, doubtless, been again realized, and the city or the Church preserved for and through the five righteous men who were in it. And so the faith of every missionary from the Apostles' days to our own, or of the Church, which, by fasting and prayer, separated them for the work, (Acts xiii. 2, 3.) or of the founder of each lesser congregation within the bounds already occupied by the Church at large, each, in their several ways, co-operate to the extension and use and perpetuity of Christ's Sacraments; and in the use of these Sacraments their faith receives a blessing. And this is a way, wherein it may be made even tangible to sense, how the faith of the Church becomes available in some measure to those who have but a weak faith, or by reason of their age cannot actively exert it. The principle extends widely; in religious duties, in moral performance, in abstinence from sin, in all the ways in which custom (as it is called) or example induce men to enter upon, or to persevere in, any practice, or to abstain from any evil habit, or even from any deeper sin, it is the faith of the faithful members of the Church which is thus blessed. God employs their faithful exercise of duty, either in retaining or restoring the infirmer or the erring members; the very imitation of their right practice, implies a degree of faith, and though it be but as a smoking flax, God quencheth it not, but brings it to a greater brightness: and any one, who shall have observed how instrumental, what he calls circumstances or custom have been in the formation of his own religious character, or, again, how few they are who rise above and act healthfully upon, the religious character of their age, or, again, how mainly dependent children are upon the faith of others, will see how much we have to thank God for the faith of others, and how mighty an instrument true faith is in a faithless world. And when it pleased Christ, during His actual abode upon earth, to accept the faith of parents, or masters, or friends, for those who needed any "virtue, which should go forth from Him," (where themselves, from circumstances, could not exercise that faith,) and then to put forth the same gracious influences; it was not assuredly for their sake principally, but to attest His acceptance of, and to encourage the Church to offer, a vicarious faith, for those who are not as yet able to manifest it. But in instancing the above more tangible method, in which God renders the faith of the church a benefit to it's weaker members, I would not by any means limit it to this; for we know not how or why, or to what extent, the faith of the Church is acceptable in God's sight; and how it may be a necessary condition for the continuance of the blessings of the Gospel; what mighty ends it may serve in the moral government of the universe; why He has connected such blessings with vicarious faith. All this we see and know in part only; only we know that all Infant-Baptism is a great exercise of faith, (if but on the very ground which carnal men allege, that we receive back the purified infant outwardly nothing changed, and for a time to manifest but little apparent change) and it may be, in part, on that very ground, that Infant-Baptism is acceptable to God, and may serve ends of which we know nothing, just as the commemorative representation of our Lord's sacrifice on the cross (which was to be done in remembrance of Him), may have, and was thought of old to have ends, entirely distinct from the influence which it may have upon our own minds, and independent also of our Sacramental union with Him. Only we should be assured, that this and every other institution of God, has far more and wider ends, than we in the flesh can yet see: nay, probably, what we do see can scarcely be looked upon even as the faintest type of what is behind the veil. And this should make us the more heedful, not to make our own notions, or any uses, which may be apparent to us, any measure of Divine things; but in all things, (whether we seem to know less or more) to confess from the heart, that we "know in part" only.
This title of the children of all who are within the covenant, to the blessings of the covenant, is implied in St. Paul's recommendation, that the converted parent should retain, or remain with, the yet unbelieving consort, for that they were sanctified by them: "otherwise the children had been unclean, but now are they holy:" i.e. since the fruit of the marriage is holy, therefore the marriage itself must be approved by God. (1 Cor. vii. 14.) None, indeed, of the ancients thought that St. Paul hereby affirmed that any, even the children of believers, were holy by their natural birth[292]: for," as St. Augustine argues, "the fault of our carnal nature, though without guilt in the regenerated parent, as having been remitted, still in the offspring it does bring guiltiness, until it be remitted by the same grace;" i.e. as our Blessed Saviour tells us, "that which is born of the flesh is flesh." The child of the regenerated or Christian parent brings into the world with it nothing but the corruption of our fallen nature, and God's promise to restore it by Baptism: and it has been without authority, when persons have so insisted on the inherited holiness of the children of Christian parents, as to represent the Sacrament of regeneration to be but the confirmation or sealing of a gift already bestowed[293]. The ancients understood, under the holiness here spoken of, the holiness conferred by God in Baptism, to which these children were brought by their one Christian parent, and to which they had a title in consequence of that birth. And this use of the word "holy," as signifying a holiness bestowed upon us by God, corresponds best with the title given universally to all Christians, "called, saints[294];" and therewith also agrees St. Paul's other saying, that the Jewish people "the branches, were holy," because "the root (the Patriarchs, for whose sake they were beloved, v. 28.) was holy." (Rom. xi. 16.) Now this holiness belonged not to the children of the Jews, when yet uncircumcised, for the Jewish child who remained uncircumcised on the eighth day, was to be cut off (Gen. 17. 14.), but to such as were admitted into the covenant made with Abraham by circumcision; for then only they became branches of the vine which God had planted: much more then in the case of the child of Christians, by how much they are partakers of better promises, and our federal rite graffs us not merely into the body of a chosen people, but into that of the Son of God, not simply into the vine brought out of Egypt, but into Him who is "the True Vine." For in Christ there is no longer ceremonial holiness, nor covenant-holiness; since He who is the substance being come, the shadows have passed away; but real holiness cannot belong to any by their carnal birth, since thereby we are still "children of wrath:" it remains, then, (as elsewhere in the New Testament,) that it be actual holiness—the holiness actually conferred upon us in Baptism, as members of the Holy Son of God, and clothed with Him. The promise then, implied in this saying of St. Paul, has no limitation: if but one parent were within the covenant, then the children also are comprehended within it, and have, by virtue thereof, a title to all the privileges of it. The rule is given universally; "if any one have an unbelieving husband or wife—else were your children unclean, (ἀκάθαρτα) unpurified[295], out of the covenant, but now are they (all of them) holy." And so our Hooker[296] having said "that we are plainly taught by God, that the seed of faithful parentage is holy from the very birth," (which might seem as if he imagined that we brought with us into the world more than a title to be made holy by God's ordinance;) explains that he so means this, "not as if the children of believing parents were without sin, or grace from baptized parents derived by propagation, or God by covenant and promise tied to save any in mere regard of their parents' belief: yet seeing, that to all professors of the name of Christ, this pre-eminence above Infidels is freely given, that the fruit of their bodies bringeth into the world with it a present interest and right to those means, wherewith the ordinance of Christ is, that His Church shall be sanctified," &c.
It is not, then, on account of any intrinsic holiness of the parents, or any faith inherent in them, but of "God's abundant mercy," that He hath called us; having committed to His Church the power of administering His Sacraments, and annexing to her exercise of faith in so doing, the blessing of His Sacrament, where there is no opposing will, and accordingly to us, whom He called before we had done either good or evil.
But it was said, regeneration, or rather grace, generally, cannot be bestowed through Baptism; because, if a child, for instance, having received Baptism, were stolen, and educated among Turks and Heathens, it would manifestly itself be in no respect different from other Turks or Heathens. And this, Calvin and others employ triumphantly, as an argument ex absurdo, as if no one of ordinary understanding could hold otherwise. It would, indeed, prove nothing, if true; for why should it follow, in the spiritual, any more than in the natural world, that because a gift was rendered useless for want of cultivation, therefore it had never been given? We see daily, that great intellectual powers are gradually destroyed by the abuse, or neglect, or trifling of their possessors; or by being employed on petty or unworthy objects; and, being made subservient to vanity or sense, are at last lost, so that a man could not employ them if he would; and this, doubtless (as is every thing in nature), was meant as an emblem of things unseen—a warning to us, to take heed to our spiritual faculties, "lest the light which is in us become darkness." But who ever gave us ground to say, that any outward circumstances, in which it should please God to place one, whom He had elected to be, by Baptism, incorporated into the body of His Blessed Son, had the power to annihilate that Baptism, and to make it as if it had never been? "Where wast thou, when God laid the foundations of the earth? declare, if thou hast understanding." Job xxxviii. 4. "Add thou not to His words, lest He reprove thee, and thou be found a liar." (Prov. xxx. 6.) Surely, men take too much upon them, in speaking thus positively of the depths of the human heart, and of Divine grace, the workings whereof are as varied as they are unfathomable, unmeasurable, incomprehensible, because it is an effluence from God. Or, because God, ordinarily, to His first gift of regeneration, adds the gift of His word, of the teaching of the Church, of the Communion of the Body and Blood of Christ; shall we dare to pronounce, that, if He please to exclude any one from that Communion, or from that outward teaching, therefore that former gift would have none effect? that they, to whom God had by Baptism given the earnest of the Spirit in their hearts, would have that earnest withdrawn, unless retained by other outward means, or religious instruction? that He could not, or would not, provide for those whom He admitted to be members of His Son? "Is the Lord's arm shortened, that He cannot save?" And shall we say even of those, who through our neglect, are in the great towns of our Christian land educated worse than Turks and Heathens, trained to sin—shall we say, that even these, as many as have been baptized, have no strivings of the Spirit of God within them, to which they are entitled through Baptism; that God admitted them into His Church, only, forthwith, utterly to cast them off; that they have not oftentimes been restrained from sin, by a Power which they scarcely knew, but which still withheld them, with a might stronger than sin and death and Satan—the might of the Spirit of God? Or have we not often seen how God, as if to vindicate His own gift, has to many children of His Church, turned into gain what to our shallow judgments seemed destruction unavoidable; has prospered their faithfulness "in few things, and so made them rulers over many things;" while others, who in outward spiritual advantages were first, by their own negligence became last? Surely, then, it were truer, as well as more humble, to abstain from thus narrowing the operations of God! It were profaneness, indeed, and a wanton contempt of God's mercies, to trust in Baptism alone, when He has vouchsafed us means for cultivating the grace bestowed upon us in Baptism: but it argues no less a narrow-minded unbelief, to deny the power or the will of God to make Baptism alone available, when He, from the time of Baptism, has, not for any want of faithfulness in the child, withdrawn every other means. "And they were sore amazed in themselves beyond measure, and wondered: for they considered not the miracle of the loaves, for their heart was hardened." (Mark vi. 51, 52.)
The further question, "whether God imparts faith presently to the baptized infants," scarcely belongs to the present subject, and is perhaps hardly a profitable inquiry, if it be thereby meant to discriminate between the spiritual gifts imparted to children. Undoubtedly, in the new nature given them by their new birth, there is virtually imparted to them the first principle of every heavenly grace, faith, love, hope: they are united with Christ; are children of God, members of Christ, inheritors of heaven; and if for this, faith be necessary in them, undoubtedly they have this also: only it seems best not to make curious deductions from Holy Scripture, where the Church has been silent, and content that God has graffed our children into His Son, to wait, assured that in due time "all things belonging to the Spirit will live and grow in them," if we cultivate duly these "plants of the Lord," water them, and pray for God's increase.
IV. It is urged, however, on authority of Holy Scripture, that the regenerated are free from sin, and that, therefore, so long as children are such as we see them frequently to grow up, subject to sin, and without any earnestness of mind, we must conclude, that they have not been regenerated[297]. We are reminded, that our Saviour has said, "every tree is known by its fruits;" and that God has also said, "whosoever is born of God doth not commit sin, for His seed remaineth in him; neither can he commit sin, because he is born of God." (1 John iii. 9.) With regard to the first passage, it is obvious that our Saviour is speaking of what the tree is, not what has been done for it; not how it has been digged about, watered, cultivated, but what returns it has made for this care; not whether God has planted us in His vineyard, and given us His grace, but whether we are yielding fruit. It is a test of our holiness, not of God's goodness. The passage of St. John is more difficult; nor do those who quote it seem to be aware of its difficulty. For taken thus loosely, it were in direct contradiction with that other truth, "If we say we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in us[298];" and, therefore, we are of necessity forced to look more closely into it. Since, also, we know by sad experience, that all commit sin, then it would follow, that none were regenerate; and, as an old Predestinarian writer well said[299], "if this objection were of force against infants, it would be much more against persons of yeares actually converted. For it would prove that they have not the Spirit constantly abiding in them, because it doth not in great falls evidently show itself at all." And not in great falls only, but in lesser cases of human infirmity; for St. John saith peremptorily and absolutely, "doth not commit sin;" and to substitute for this, "is not guilty of deliberate and habitual sin," or "gross sin," or any other qualifying expression, is clearly tampering with God's words, and lowering His teaching. Glosses, such as these, in plain statements of Holy Scripture, cannot be too gently guarded against; often have they brought down Divine to mere human truth; the very essence of the truth, that which constitutes it Divine truth, is generally evaporated by these inaccurate substitutions. The true meaning will be cleared by attending as well to the context, as to St. John's method of teaching. St. John, namely, is warning Christians against seducing teachers (c. i. 26.), who separated truth from holiness, who said that they "knew God," and yet "kept not His commandments" (c. ii. 4.); said that they "abode in Him," and yet did not "walk as He walked" (v. 6.); denied that Jesus was the Christ, (v. 22.) Against these he warns his flock, to "abide" in Christ, as they had been taught (vv. 27. 8.); and then proceeds (c. iii.) to set forth the connection between Christian truth and holiness. Our present title, (he tells them,) of Sons of God (v. 1.); our future hopes of seeing Him as He is, and so being made like to Him (v. 2.); the very object of His coming, "to take away sin" (v. 5.);—shew us God's will, that we should "purify ourselves, as He is pure:" all other doctrine is but deceit: "little children, let no man deceive you:" God and the devil, children of God and children of the devil, sin and righteousness, are incompatible, and mutually opposed: there can be no union between Christ and Belial, or the servants and services of either; there is no other way of "being righteous," than by "doing righteousness." (v. 7.) This, then, was St. John's great subject, the necessity of personal holiness and purity; and this he expresses (as is his wont) in abstract, absolute propositions, not looking upon truth, as it is imperfectly realized in us, whether to good or to evil, but as it is in itself, and as it will be, in the final separation of the evil from the good, when each shall, without any remaining obstacle, whether of the hindrances of sin, or of the strivings of God's Spirit, become wholly, what they now are predominantly. "He that committeth sin is of the devil, for the devil sinneth from the beginning." "Whosoever is born of God doth not commit sin." "In this the children of God are manifest, and the children of the devil." And so St. John returns to his first warning: "Whosoever doeth not righteousness, is not of God." It is manifest, then, that we are here to look, not for any abstract doctrinal statement, but for impressive practical truth: namely, whatever be our feelings, persuasions, pretensions, theories or dreams of good, there is but one test, whether we are of God or the devil, with whom we hold, whose we are, and whose to all eternity we shall be, and that is, whose works we do,—sin or righteousness,—whom we serve. If we were entirely God's, then, as our Blessed Saviour did, we should do altogether the works of God: "whosoever is born of God, sinneth not" (as before he said, "whosoever abideth in Him (i.e. wholly, entirely) sinneth not; for His seed remaineth in him; neither can he sin, because he is born of God:" and in whatever degree we have cherished and cultivated that heavenly seed, sown in our hearts by Baptism, we cannot sin: as there is no sin so grievous, into which but for God's grace we should have fallen, so through His grace, we should each feel, that there are sins into which we cannot fall: now, by that grace, we cannot sin, because thus far His seed remaineth in us. The Apostle's words declare to us then the height of the mark of our calling, the greatness of our end, the glory of our aim, that being "partakers of the Divine nature," (2 Pet. i. 4.) we might be without sin: that in purifying ourselves, we should stop short of no other end than this: that we should not stifle the impulses to loftier attainments, which God hath placed within us, nor indulge our natural listlessness, as if there were no hope; but should aim at being, what our Church has taught us twice at the commencement of each day to pray that we may be kept, without sin. But, applied to a particular case, it must manifestly be with the limitation, which our present imperfection requires, "as far," or "inasmuch as," we "are born of God, we cannot commit sin:" in whatever degree we are realizing the life, which was in Baptism conferred upon us, we cannot sin: our sins are a portion of our old man, our corruption, our death; and so far, we are not living. St. John is not then speaking of the life which we have received of God, but of that which we are now living: and is giving us a test whether we be alive or dead, or to which state we are verging, that of complete life, or complete death. We cannot indeed tell who they be in this world who are "twice dead," and, already, wholly the evil one's; but if there be any in whom every spark of baptismal life has been extinguished, God has given us no hope that it shall be renewed. The words of St. John then are a solemn warning to us, to take heed that we cultivate that good thing, which has been planted in us; that "we quench not the Spirit;" that "the light which is in us be not darkness;" but they do not tell us that that good thing has never been implanted; that Spirit never given; that light never kindled: and as in the one case we should without doubt interpret the words, "he who committeth sin is of the Devil," every such person, as far as he committeth sin, is of the Devil; so in the other, "every one as far as he is born, or the child of God, doth not commit sin[300]."
Such are the objections, as far as I know them, urged against Baptismal regeneration: in part, they would be objections against all infant Baptism, and as such would, I doubt not, be instantly dropped by those who now inadvertently use them, whom Burges[301] calls the "unwitting Proctors of the Sacramentarians."
The question is needlessly embarrassed by any reference to adult Baptism, since what we are now concerned with, is, whether our infants, who oppose no obstacle to God's grace, do, by virtue of His institution, receive that grace; not, what would be the case of one who should receive Baptism from any worldly motive, and at the same time place an obstacle to its benefits by receiving it in unbelief. The questions are entirely distinct; nor would any conclusion which we might come to, as to the unbelieving adult, affect the case of our infants, who cannot be unbelievers; and this protest it is necessary to make before we enter upon that case, because a misapplication of the case of unbelieving adults, has furnished most of the arguments whereby men disparage the value of Infant Baptism. The unbelieving adult then could of course derive no present benefit from Baptism; and it is an awful question, whether by receiving the Sacrament of Regeneration in unbelief, there being no other appointed means whereby the new-birth is bestowed, such an one had not precluded himself for ever from being born again? It is a case of such profane contempt of God's institution, it betrays such a servitude to the god of this world, that such a case has not been provided for in Scripture; and one should almost dread to speak where God in His word has been silent. For Simon Magus is no such case; since of him Scripture positively affirms that he believed[302], however soon he fell away; so that St. Peter's exhortation to him, to repent, holds out no encouragement to them who make a mock or a gain of God's institution. Where God gives repentance, we are safe in concluding that He is ready to pardon the offence, however in its own nature it may seem to put a person out of the covenant of Grace and repentance, and at the same time to preclude his entering again into it; and to any person, who, having thus sinned, is concerned about his salvation, that very concern is a proof that God, in his case, has not withdrawn His Spirit. Or again, since those tempted to commit it, are either heathen, or members of a sect, which grievously disparages the Sacrament of Baptism, one may hope that they in some measure have done it "ignorantly, in unbelief," through ignorance not altogether their own sin, but in part the sin of those who have taken upon themselves the care of their souls. Otherwise it seems sinning with so high a hand, and so to cut off the very means of pardon and pledge of grace, that one should be horribly afraid for any one who thought of, or had committed it.
A yet more awful view of the case of adults, who receive Baptism wickedly, from worldly motives, and with contempt of God's ordinance, is opened by the analogy of the other Sacrament. As namely, they "who eat and drink unworthily, eat and drink judgment to themselves, not discerning the Lord's body," there seems much reason to fear that they who receive Baptism unworthily, receive it not merely without benefit, but to their hurt, discerning not the presence of the Holy Trinity, and despising what God hath sanctified. I speak not of particular cases, for God has in a wonderful manner, for His own glory, made Baptism effectual, when administered in mockery[303] by heathens on a heathen stage, to interest the curiosity of a profane audience, and a Pagan Emperor; and God has put forth His power to vindicate His own ordinances, by making the poor buffoon a convert, and enduing the convert of Baptism with strength for instant martyrdom. God can vindicate His ordinances, by making them all-powerful either to save or to destroy. But when there is no such signal end to be attained, one would fear that they would be pernicious to the profane recipient. St. Augustine[304] argues thus: "What! although the Lord himself say of His body and blood, the only sacrifice for our salvation, 'unless a man eat My flesh and drink My blood, he hath no life in him,' doth not the same Apostle teach that this also becomes hurtful to those who abuse it, for he says, 'Whosoever eateth the bread and drinketh the cup of the Lord unworthily, shall be guilty of the body and blood of the Lord.' See then Divine and Holy things are pernicious to those who abuse them; why not then Baptism?" And again[305]: "The Church bore Simon Magus by Baptism, to whom however it was said, that he had no part in the inheritance of Christ. Was Baptism, was the Gospel, were the Sacraments, wanting to him? But since love was wanting, he was born in vain, and perhaps it had been better for him not to have been born:" and[306] "God sanctifies His Sacrament, so that it may avail to a man who should be truly converted to Him whether before Baptism, or while being baptized, or afterwards; as unless he were converted it would avail to his destruction:" and again he appeals to the Donatists[307]: "Ye yourselves have virtually pronounced your judgment that Baptism depends not on their merits, by whom, nor upon theirs, to whom, it is administered, but upon its own holiness and verity, for His sake by whom it was instituted, to the destruction of those who use it amiss, to salvation to those who use it rightly."
One portion, however, of the ancient Church (the African) seems to have held decisively, not only that this sin of receiving Baptism unworthily would be forgiven upon repentance, but that it did not hinder repentance. St. Augustine namely uses this case[308] as an argument against the Donatists, why the Church did not re-baptize those who sought to be restored to her out of a schismatic communion, although she held the Baptism administered by that communion to be useless while men remained in it. "If they say that sins are not forgiven to one who comes hypocritically[309] to Baptism, I ask, if he afterwards confess his hypocrisy with a contrite heart and true grief, is he to be baptized again? If it be most insane to affirm this, let them confess that a man may be baptized with the Baptism of Christ, and yet his heart, persevering in malice and sacrilege, would not allow his sins to be done away: and thus let them understand that in communions separated from the Church men may be baptized, (when the baptism of Christ is given and received, the Sacrament being administered in the same way); which yet is then first of avail to the remission of sins, when the person being reconciled to the unity of the Church, is freed from the sacrilege of dissent, whereby his sins were retained, and not allowed to be forgiven. For as he who had come hypocritically, is not baptized again; but what without baptism could not be cleansed, is cleansed by that pious correction (of life) and true confession, so that what was before given, then begins to avail to salvation, when that hypocrisy is removed by a true confession; so also the enemy of the love and peace of Christ," &c. St. Augustine frequently repeats this illustration, and speaks confidently as if it were a known fact; as does also another writer[310] of the African Church. It is a little remarkable that the Schoolmen and their commentators, although deeply read in the Fathers, or at least with a considerable traditional knowledge of them, when treating expressly on this subject[311] produce only those two authors, and that out of this same Church. St. Cyril of Jerusalem, on the other hand, speaks of the loss as absolutely irreparable. "If thou feignest," he addresses the Catechumen[312], "now do men baptize thee, but the Spirit will not baptize thee. Thou art come to a great examination, and enlisting, in this single hour; which if thou losest, the evil is irreparable, but if thou art thought worthy of the grace, thy soul is enlightened; thou receivest a power which thou hadst not; thou receivest weapons at which the demons tremble; and if thou castest not away thy armour, but keepest the seal upon thy soul, the demon approacheth not; for he is afraid: for by the Spirit of God are devils cast out." It may be that St. Cyril may have meant, as is said also of all impairing of baptismal purity, that it cannot be wholly repaired, since there is no second Baptism, as he says,[313] "The bath cannot be received twice or thrice; else might a man say, 'though I fail once, I shall succeed a second time:' but if thou failest the 'once,' it cannot be repaired. For 'there is one Lord, and one faith, and one Baptism.'" The question is very awful, as, what is not, which concerns our souls? It may suffice to have said thus much upon it, if by any means persons might see that subjects of which they speak lightly, are indeed very fearful.
V. There is however one more general dread, independent of Scripture or Scriptural authority, that already adverted to in the outset[314], lest, namely, the effect of preaching the doctrine of "Baptismal regeneration" should be to produce a carnal security, deaden the souls of men, make them rely upon outward privileges, and lull the unquietness, which is still a sign and a hope of life in the drowsy conscience. Hence some members of our own Church have ventured to term this her doctrine cold and lifeless: and it has been thought by a Dissenter, (otherwise mild and gentle) sufficient to excuse in our eyes the arrogant invasion of God's office in one who, setting himself in Christ's stead, has pronounced on this portion of His Church, that "she destroys more souls than she saves," as the mere exclamation of piety, honesty, and warm heartedness[315]!
This is a faithless fear: our one concern is to know what God has taught: but to dread beforehand to find any thing to be His teaching, is to make ourselves wiser than God: as if, did He teach any thing, He would not also provide that His teaching should be efficacious! Is it not the very objection of the Heathen and Socinian scoffer, that the doctrine of Vicarious Atonement, and free pardon, must be an immoral preaching, and produce laxity of conscience? And were it not the character of Abraham's faith to follow God's guidance, "not knowing whither we go," but assured that His guidance, if followed, would lead us into all truth? But indeed, has the doctrine of late been preached? for to prove, to state, to hold, Baptismal regeneration, is not to preach it! and has not the very dread of the subject as thorny and debateable ground, in great measure produced the very effect, that it has lain uncultivated? Is it not of the very character of Scripture-teaching to set forth to us the greatness of our privileges, the immensity of what God has done for us, the freeness of the pardon with which he has pardoned us, our adoption, our Sonship, our calling, our Redemption, our Sanctification, our promised inheritance, our imparted earnest of the Spirit, and every other mercy with which He has already crowned us, yea and our regeneration also, "not of corruptible seed but of incorruptible" (1 Pet. i. 23.) as so many grounds for sincere and upright walking, and for the desire for future growth? and why then are we to dread, that to tell our flocks, that they were all once placed in Christ's fold, would make them less careful to know whether they have wandered from it? that to tell them that they have been washed, have been cleansed, would make them less careful lest they again "wallow in the mire"? that to warn them of the talent which they have received, would make them less anxious to return it with increase? that to tell them that they have been born again will make them less anxious lest they be again dead? They are not, cannot be, Heathen! They may be worse! Apostate Christians, twice dead, plucked up by the roots"—but that they may not be such, surely it were our wisdom to speak to them not as to those who are without the Covenant, but to remind them of all which God has done for their souls, and to beseech them not to destroy that which God has done so much to save.
Our Church has so thought: for in that she wishes her Baptismal service (in which she declares, in the clearest terms which could be used, that every child baptised receives thereby Spiritual regeneration) to be always publicly celebrated, "for that it declares unto us our profession," she must have thought the setting forth of our privileges, and of the obligations thereby entailed, a powerful motive to increased diligence. Or, let us hear the words of the ancient Church, where Baptism was continually preached, and see whether in their lips its privileges were a cold and lifeless doctrine. Let us hear St. Gregory of Nazianzum commending Infant Baptism. "Hast thou an infant? Let not wickedness gain an opportunity against it? Let it be sanctified from a babe. Let it be hallowed by the Spirit from its tenderest infancy. Fearest thou the seal of faith, on account of the weakness of nature, as a faint-hearted mother and of little faith? But Hannah devoted Samuel to God, yea before he was born, and when he was born, immediately she made him a priest, and brought him up in the priestly attire, not fearing human nature, but trusting in God. Thou hast no need of Amulets—impart to him the Trinity, that great and excellent preservative." The thrill which those impressive words "impart to him the Trinity" (δὸς αὐτῷ τὴν Τριάδα) echoing to us after 1400 years, still awaken in us, may well make us admire the energy of the faith, which infused into words so simple, a force so amazing. The words are nothing: the fact is the ordinary privilege of Christians: but the faith in the power of God, as manifested in the Baptism of every infant brought to Him, the realizing of those privileges, as implied in these words, overwhelms us, because our faith has not been equal to it. Or do we fear that the leaning on the outward ordinance would lead men away from Christ? Yet who bade us look upon it as an outward ordinance, or apply to it, words which St. Paul speaks of circumcision, which was a sign and seal only? Or how should the ordinance of Christ lead men away from Christ? When Baptism was preached faithfully, the memory of it was the memory of Christ and of His passion. "St. Paul showeth," says St. Chrysostom[316], "that the blood and the water are one. For Christ's baptism is His passion also;" or, as he says again[317], "What the cross and grave was to Christ, that has Baptism been made to us." "The sacrifice of our Lord's passion every man then offers for himself, when he is dedicated in the faith of His passion," says St. Augustine[318]: and again, "The sacrifice of the Lord is then in a manner offered for each, when by being baptized he is sealed in His name;" and again[319], "No man may in any wise doubt, that each of the faithful then becomes a partaker of the Body and Blood of the Lord, when in Baptism he is made a member of Christ." "We[320] are washed in the passion of the Lord," says Tertullian." "In Baptism," again says St. Chrysostome[321], "we are incorporate into Christ, and made flesh of His flesh, and bone of His bone." The body of the regenerated (i.e. by Baptism) becomes "the flesh of the crucified," saith St. Leo[322]; and again[323], "Thou art bedewed with the blood of Christ when thou art baptized into His death." "Let us be washed in his blood," saith St. Bernard[324]. "By these few it may appeare," says Bishop Jewel[325], "that Christ is present at the Sacrament of Baptisme, even as He is present at the Holy Supper: unless ye will say, we may bee made flesh of Christ's flesh, and bee washt in His blood, and bee partakers of Him, and have Him 'present,' without His 'presence.' Therefore Chrysostome, when he had spoken vehemently of the Sacrament of the Supper, hee concludeth thus. Even so is it also in Baptisme." And shall we then dread that they who so realized the spiritual presence of Christ, should forget Christ? Or dread we again that the magnifying of the sign should make them forget the thing signified? Yet the sign was to them so glorious, only because it was identified with that inward grace. "Forasmuch," says Bishop Jewel[326] again, "as these two Sacraments being both of force alike, these men (the Romanists) to advance their fantasies in the one, by comparison so much abase the other, I think it good, briefly and by the way, somewhat to touch what the old Catholike Fathers have written of God's invisible workings in the Sacrament of Baptism. The Fathers in the council of Nice say thus: 'Baptisme must be considered, not with our bodily eies, but with the eies of our minde. Thou seest the water: Thinke thou of the power of God, that in the water is hidden. Thinke thou that the water is full of heavenly fire, and of the sanctification of the Holy Ghost.' Chrysostome speaking likewise of Baptisme, saith thus: 'The things that I see, I judge not by sight, but by the eies of my minde. The Heathen, when he heareth the water of Baptisme, taketh it only for plaine water: but I see not simply, or barely, that I see: I see the cleansing of the soule by the Spirit of God.' So likewise saith Nazianzenus: 'The mystery of Baptisme is greater than it appeareth to the eie.' So S. Ambrose: 'In Baptisme there is one thing done visibly to the eie: another thing is wrought invisibly to the minde.' Again he saith: 'Beleeve not onely the bodily eies (in this Sacrament of Baptisme:) the thing that is not seene, is better seene: the thing that thou seest, is corruptible: the thing that thou seest not, is for ever.' To be short, in consideration of these invisible effects, Tertullian saith: 'The Holy Ghost commeth downe and halloweth the water.' S. Basil saith: 'The Kingdome of Heaven is there set open.' Chrysostome saith: 'God Himselfe in Baptisme, by His invisible power holdeth thy head.' S. Ambrose saith: 'The water hath the grace of Christ: in it is the presence of the Trinitie.' S. Bernard saith: 'Let us be washed in His blood.' By the authorities of thus many Ancient Fathers it is plaine, that in the Sacrament of Baptisme, by the sensible signe of water the invisible grace of God is given unto us." And again, in his treatise on the Sacraments[327]: "Wee are not washed from our sinnes by the water, wee are not fed to eternall life by the bread and wine, but by the precious bloud of our Saviour Christ, that lieth hid in these Sacraments. Chrysostome saith: 'Plaine or bare water worketh not in us, but when it hath received the grace of the Holy Ghost, it washeth away all our sinnes.' So saith Ambrose also: 'The Holie Ghost cometh downe, and halloweth the water.' And, 'There is the presence of the Trinity.' So saith Cyril: 'As water thorowly heat with fire, burneth as well as the fire: so the waters which wash the body of him that is baptized, are changed into Divine power, by the working of the Holy Ghost.' So said Leo, sometime a Bishop of Rome: 'Christ hath given like pre-eminence to the water of Baptisme, as Hee gave to his mother. For that power of the Highest, and that overshadowing of the Holy Ghost which brought to passe, that Mary should bring forth the Saviour of the world, hath also brought to passe, that the water should beare anew, or regenerate him that believeth.' Such opinion had the ancient learned Fathers, and such reverend words they used when they intreated of the Sacraments. For, it is not man, but God which worketh by them."
Or, again let us consider the high and glowing titles which they give to this Sacrament, and see whether they furnish inducements to rest therein, or not rather exhortations to hold onward in the strength so imparted. "This illumination (Baptism) then," says St. Gregory of Nazianzum[328], "is the brightness of souls, the transformation of life, the interrogatory of conscience towards God: it is the help of our weakness, putting off of the flesh, following of the Spirit, participation of the Word, restoration of our nature, the flood which drowneth sin, communication of light, dissipation of darkness. The 'illumination' is a chariot up to God, an absence with Christ, a staff of faith, a perfecting of the mind, a key of the kingdom of heaven, the exchange of life, the destruction of bondage, the loosing of chains. This 'illumination',—why need I recount more?—is the best and noblest of the gifts of God; as things are called holy of holies, (and song of songs, as being most eminent and surpassing,) so also this, as being more holy than all others. But as Christ, the Giver thereof, is called by many and different names, so also the gift; whether on account of our exceeding joyousness, (as we are wont to take pleasure in the names of things which we love exceedingly,) or whether because the variety of its benefits has occasioned a diversity of names, we call it gift, grace, baptism, anointing, enlightening, garment of immortality, washing of regeneration, seal, and every other name of honour—gift, as being given to us who had nothing to offer—grace, as being debtors—dipping, in that sin was buried with us in the water—anointing, as being sacred and royal, for such are men wont to anoint—enlightening, as being brightness itself—garment, as a covering of shame—washing, as a cleansing—seal, as keeping us, and an emblem of dominion. In this do the heavens rejoice, this do the angels magnify, for its kindred brightness: this is an image of the blessedness yonder; this we would gladly praise in hymns, but cannot as we would."
These are indeed fervid words and thoughts that burn; yet are they also words of truth and soberness; words, which, because they are glowing, approach the nearer to the truth; and are sober, because expressive of reality. It is not the language of declamation, but of a soul, which having now been "carried to hoar hairs[329]," would fain express the greatness of God's benefits, but "cannot, as it would." In like manner, S. Chrysostome[330], (though indirectly,) "Why, you will ask, did not John Baptist mention the signs and wonders which were to follow upon this 'the Baptising with the Holy Ghost and with fire?" Because this was greater than all, and for this did all those things take place. For having named the sum, he comprehended therein all the rest,—loosing of death, destruction of sins, abolition of the curse, freedom from the old man, entrance into paradise, ascent into heaven, life with the Angels, participation of future blessing, and those good things which eye hath not seen nor ear heard, nor have entered into the heart of man. For all these things were given through that gift, (Baptism)." Or, let any one read S. Cyprian's relation[331] of the greatness of the change, to him incredible beforehand, which Baptism wrought in him. It may suffice, in contrast, to say that moderns have thought it necessary to apologize for, or to defend it. Or, let them look at the manner in which St. Augustine[332] speaks of the workings of Baptism administered to the half senseless friend of his thoughtless and sceptical youth—how he speaks of it, who once mocked at it. Or, let them hear St. Chrysostome's[333] exhortation to those hangers-on of Christianity, who professed to believe, and yet shrunk from becoming Christians, and taking on them Christ's cross by Baptism. "The Apostle saith, 'through you is my name blasphemed among the nations.' Let us cause the contrary to be said, by 'living worthy of Him who calleth us, and drawing near to the Baptism of the adoption of sons. For of a truth great is the power of Baptism: it maketh those who partake of this gift wholly other men: it alloweth not men to be men! Make the Greek (Heathen) believe that great is the power of the Spirit, that He transformeth, that He re-harmonizeth. Why tarriest thou for the last breath like a fugitive, a recreant, as if thou oughtest not to live to God? Think, moreover, how many, after the enlightening, (Baptism,) have become angels instead of men!"
It is not, namely, simply as the turning-point of life, but as a new-birth that they rejoice in it, as the spring of all their subsequent life, the source of all their strength, in that it united them with Christ, and through Him with the Father, and the Father and the Son with them through the Spirit. "Let us be buried," says St. Gregory again, "with Christ by Baptism, that we may rise with Him: let us descend with Him (into the water) that we may be exalted with Him: let us come up with Him, that we may be glorified with Him. If the persecutor of the light and the tempter attack thee after Baptism,—and he will attack thee, (since misled by that which appeared he attacked the hidden Light, the Word and my God,) thou hast whereby to prevail. Fear not the conflict: oppose to him the water, oppose the Spirit, wherein all the fiery darts of the evil one will be quenched. It is Spirit, but one which removeth mountains: it is water, but a quencher of fire. If he place want before thee (for he dared to do so to Him) and thou desirest that the stones should become bread, oppose to him that bread of life which is sent down from heaven giving life to the world. If he assail thee with Scripture words, for it is written, 'He shall give His Angels charge concerning thee,' (Ps. cxi. 12.)—sophist of wickedness, why hast thou paused here? for well I wot, (although thou say it not,) that (v. 13.) I 'shall tread on thee, the asp and the basilisk, and trample on serpents and scorpions,' fenced round by the trinity. If he attack thee with covetousness, 'showing thee all the kingdoms of the world in a moment of time,' as belonging to him, and demand worship of thee, despise him as having nothing: tell him, emboldened by your seal, (of Baptism,) 'I also am the image of God, of the Glory on high; not as yet have I been cast down, like thee, for pride; I am clothed with Christ, I am changed by Baptism into Christ, 'worship thou me.' Well I know, he will depart defeated and ashamed, as from Christ, the First Light, so also from those who have been enlightened by Christ. Let us be baptized then that we may prevail." Again[334], "Whilst thou art a catechumen, thou art in the vestibule of holiness; thou must enter, pass the court, gaze on the Holy things, look into the Holy of Holies, be united with the trinity.—Great are the things by which thou art besieged, great is the defence thou needest: he fears thee fighting armed: therefore he would strip thee of this grace that he may master thee the easier, unarmed, and unguarded."
The above is from a sermon on Baptism, a sermon, indeed, full of practical instruction. It may be yet more striking to observe the manner in which the blessings of Baptism are adverted to, when the writers are upon other subjects. Although such cases cannot furnish the same detail, yet, since "out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh," they testify the more how full the heart was of its Baptismal blessing, I will instance one case only. We are accustomed to refer to the form of baptism appointed by our Lord (Matt, xxviii. 19.), as a proof of the doctrine of the Holy Trinity: so also the ancients; yet not in our dry and abstract way, but as recalling to themselves the benefits thereby conferred on them. "The Lord," says St. Basil[335], arguing against the impugners of the Divinity of the Holy Spirit, "the Lord, when delivering the saving faith to those who were instructed in the word, joins the Holy Spirit with the Father and the Son. The power of the Spirit then having been included with the Father and the Son, in that life-creating power, whereby our nature is removed from mortal life to immortality," &c. And again[336]—"Whence are we Christians? 'through the faith,' will every one say. And how are we saved? By having been regenerated by the grace in Baptism. Shall we then, having known this salvation, assured to us by the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, abandon the form of doctrine which we have received? The loss is equal, to depart without receiving Baptism, or to receive it, omitting any part of that tradition. And he who keepeth not, throughout, that confession which we made when we, being rescued from idols, were first brought in to approach the living God, and holdeth it not through his whole life as a sure preservative, maketh himself an alien to the promises of God, and impugneth his own covenant, which he made at his confession of faith. For since Baptism is to me the beginning of life, and the first of days was that day of regeneration, it is manifest that those words uttered at the grace of adoption are of all the most exalted. Shall I then betray that tradition which brought me to the light,—which gave me the knowledge of God, whereby I, an enemy through sin, was made a child of God? Rather, do I pray for myself, that I may depart for the Lord with this confession; and I exhort them to keep the faith inviolate to the day of Christ; and to hold the Spirit undivided from the Father and the Son, preserving the doctrine of their Baptism in the confession of their faith, and in the fulfilment of glory." This is the language, not of a sermon, but of what would now be called controversial divinity; and such is the way in which the fathers, when speaking of the Ever-blessed Trinity, incorporated the memory of their Baptismal blessings with their warnings not to forsake the Catholic doctrine. In like manner says St. Cyril of Jerusalem[337], "Let no one separate the old Covenant from the new. Let no one say there was one Spirit there, another here; since he would offend against the Holy Spirit Himself, who is honoured with the Father and the Son, and who, at the time of the Holy Baptism, was comprehended with them in the Holy Trinity. For the only-begotten Son of God said clearly to the Apostles, 'Go—baptizing them in the name of,' &c. Our hope then "is in the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit." And again[338]—"Believe also in the Holy Spirit, and think of Him, as thou hast received concerning the Father and the Son. Learn that this Holy Spirit is one, indivisible, with various powers; working manifold gifts, but Himself not divided,—who operated through the law and the prophets,—who now also sealeth thy soul at the time of Baptism,—of whose holiness all reasonable nature hath received." Or, again, St. Athanasius, (although it is almost doing injustice to these Fathers, to give such brief extracts in a foreign tongue; and be it remembered, that they are produced for one object only,—to show that they, when arguing from the baptismal words, did it not in our cold and disputatious way, but as men, who were thereby reminded of the blessings which they had received in holy Baptism), St. Athanasius, then, thus argues[339]:—"The sum of our faith He made to point to this, for He bade that We should be baptized not into the name of One not-made, and one made, of One Uncreate, and of a creature, but into the name of the Father, and Son, and the Holy Ghost. For thus, being perfected, we also are made truly sons; and when we pronounce the name of the Father, we learn also from that name the Word also, who is in the Father." And again[340]—"For God, not as if He wanted any thing, but as the Father, founded the earth by His own Wisdom, and made all things by the Word, who is from Himself, and establisheth the holy washing in the Son. For where the Father is, there is the Son also; as where the light is, there also is the radiance: and as what the Father doeth. He doeth by the Son, as the Lord Himself saith (John v. 19.); so when Baptism is given, whom the Father baptizeth, him the Son baptizeth; and whom the Son baptizeth, he by the Holy Ghost is perfected." And yet again[341]:—"Moreover, holy Baptism, wherein the whole constitution of our faith centres, is not given in the name of the Word, but of the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit."
Or again, let any minister imagine how he should write to a person, recently baptized. The freedom of his pardon, the necessity of perseverance, the greatness of the profession which he had made, the necessity of adhering to the vows which he had made, and many like topics, would doubtless be dwelt upon by many of us: few, I think, would have ventured upon the cheering and simple, but solemn words of St. Basil, who thus writes[342]—"We greatly long to see thee, especially since we heard that thou hast been honoured with that high honour, the robe of immortality, which, enveloping our human nature, hath abolished death in the flesh, and our mortal has been swallowed up in the garment of immortality. Since then the Lord has "made thee His own by that grace, and hath estranged thee from all sin, and opened the kingdom of heaven, and pointed out the paths which lead to its blessedness, we exhort thee, as being one so far excelling in wisdom, to receive that grace with all thoughtfulness, and be a faithful steward of that treasure, keeping watch over that royal deposit with all carefulness, that having preserved the seal uninjured, you may present it to the Lord, yourself shining forth with the brightness of the saints, having cast no spot or blemish on the pure garment of immortality, but carefully preserving holiness in all your members, as having put on Christ.—For 'as many,' He saith, 'as have been baptized into Christ, have put on Christ.' Be then all the members holy, as befitting those which are covered with that pure and shining garment." Or, again, not only when one might calculate upon the first strong feeling produced by the remission of all sin, and the recent incorporation into Christ, but in the subsequent difficulties and trials of Christian warfare, this same topic is still urged. St. Ambrose[343] had to encourage and to cheer some clergy, who had begun to wax weary of their profession, as a toilsome, unprofitable, insulted occupation; and, having put their hand to the plough, to look backward to the world. We, under the like circumstances, should, doubtless, recal to them their ordination vows, that they were no longer free, that they had bound themselves; or we might set forth the high dignity of their profession in the sight of God, to be employed in tending Christ's sheep. This would also be doubtless true: but St. Ambrose goes deeper; he claims these weary soldiers by an earlier, higher, more comprehensive title,—not what they had promised to God, but what God had done for them:—"they had died with Christ in Baptism; now, therefore, we share His life (convivimus); they had received the light of life with Christ, had been warmed by Christ, had received the breath of life, and of the resurrection." And who would not feel, under the like temptation, how poor the reminiscence of any vows would be, compared with the thought, that the life we had was Christ's life, the breath we lived by, Christ's Spirit, the breath of the resurrection. Yet, I would not compare the efficacy of different motives; for this is descending to low ground, as if we were judges of divine truth. I would only instance it, as a specimen how, in other days, and with other notions of Christ's Sacraments, the memory of them, and their benefits, was ever present to the soul. Once more: people still dread, lest, by telling our flocks, that they have all been born again, all once died to sin, and been born again unto righteousness, we should relax their diligence: yet St. Augustine, they will allow, knew well the heart of his fellowmen, and its corruptions and deceit, and was a faithful preacher of the cross of Christ, as well as of "righteousness, temperance, and judgment to come." Let us hear, then, how he addresses even adults recently baptized, and in them, as he says, the rest of his flock[344]—"To-day, let us address those who were baptized and re-born in Christ Jesus, and you (the people generally) in them, and them in you. Behold, ye were made members of Christ. If ye think what ye were made, 'all your bones will say, Lord, who is like unto Thee?' For that great desert of God cannot be thought of as it deserves, and all human speech and understanding fails, that free mercy, without any preceding merits, should have come to you. Therefore is it called grace, because it is given gratis. What grace? to be members of Christ, sons of God, brethren of the Only-Begotten. If He be the only-begotten, whence are you brethren; but, because He was alone by nature, ye made brethren by grace? Because, then, ye have been made members of Christ, I warn you. I fear for you, not so much from Pagans, from Jews, from heretics, as from bad Catholics. Choose you, among the people of God, whom ye will follow. For if ye will follow the multitude, ye will not be among the few, who walk in the narrow way. Abstain from fornication, from rapine, from frauds, from perjuries, from things forbidden, from strifes: be drunkenness far from you; fear adultery as death;—not death which parts soul from body, but wherein the soul will for ever burn with the body." And after having, with all plainness of speech, expostulated with those, who, in those days also, veiled deadly sins under soft names, or avoided public scandal only, "May I not do in my own house what I will? I tell you, No. They who do these things go to hell, and will burn in everlasting fire;" and, having warned "against that raven-like "repetition, Cras! Cras!" procrastination of repentance, "that raven, whose voice thou imitatest, departed out of the ark, and returned not; but thou, my brother, return to the Church which that ark signified," he thus concludes, to the baptized, "But do ye hear me, ye baptized! hear me, ye who have been re-born by the Blood of Christ, I beseech you, by that Name which has been pronounced over you, by that altar to which you approached, by the Sacraments which you have received, by the future judgment of quick and dead;—I beseech you, I bind you by the name of Christ, that ye imitate not those whom you know to be such, but let His Sacraments remain in you, who would not come down from the tree, but who would rise again from the grave."
It may be said, perhaps, that some of these are speaking, in part, from their own experience, and so, in part, of adult Baptism. Some of them are, undoubtedly; and if this objection is meant to imply, that we, who were not so consciously "translated from the power of Satan unto God," cannot be expected to look back to our Baptism with the same vividness, and clearness of perception, as the source of our spiritual existence, this may be, in part, true; for we are, comparatively, in this respect, walking by faith, not by sight. We, as many of us as "are led by the Spirit of God," have the effect of Baptism in ourselves: we know also, from God's word, that this, our "new birth," commenced then; but the connection between the "healing waters" and our "cure" is not so visible; especially has it been obscured in many of us, by our own wilful opening again of the wounds which God then closed; as, on the other hand, the grateful remembrance of their Baptism is most observable in those who have most uniformly profited by it. It is not, however, the feelings of the early times, whose absence I deplore, but their faith; not the vivid terms in which they express themselves, but their strong conviction; not simply the liveliness of their gratitude, but their love for their Saviour's ordinance. And we, too, might have the same faith, and conviction, and love, because it is His ordinance; and, until we have it, I see no hope for the prosperity of the Church, none of a more general early piety, none of the extension of Christ's kingdom by our means, none of its fuller realization among ourselves. For, if the entrance into God's temple be thought of thus lightly, is not this the way to make it "a den of thieves," rather than of "spiritual worshippers?" If the "earnest of the Spirit" is thus disparaged, dare we hope that God will bestow upon us His fulness? Rather, I would hope, that the sayings of these holy men might be witnesses, not against us, but to us. Their witness is obviously the more valid in this respect, because they knew the fruits of Baptism from experience. We dare not speak (as some of old have done,) of hyperboles; for we know it to be language of experience and truth. They testify to us that which they have known, seen, handled, of the Word of Life, in His ordinance; and we dare not set aside their testimony. Observe we, then, 1st, That they confine its benefits to no age; but such of them as had received it themselves as adults, recommend that it should be imparted to infants. 2d, That they speak of it, not only as conveying remission of past sins, but, and that mainly, as a preservative in future temptation. 3dly, That they recommend it for infants, not only as an Apostolic ordinance, but as a known and exceeding safeguard. 4thly, That in proportion to their value for their Lord's ordinance, so much the more jealous were they, lest its force should be subsequently weakened, or the purity conferred by Him be defiled. The more they honoured Baptism, and the more they relied upon it as God's gift, so much the more careful were they of their subsequent walk with God.
These statements of the Fathers will incidentally remove an objection which has been in former times[345] and may be again made, viz. that we thereby bring back the opus operatum of the Schoolmen. For since it is known that the Fathers did not hold this in its objectionable sense, it plainly does not follow from this doctrine. In this, as in many other cases, we must distinguish between the practical corruptions of the Church of Rome and her theoretical errors. For it often happens that she leads her members into error, and countenances corruption in them, where her statements in themselves are not very unsound: teaching us how much evil, what seems a little departure from the truth, may create. The term to confer grace, ex opere operato, as explained by her writers[346] is "to confer grace by the force of the sacramental action itself, being instituted by God to this end, not through the merit of the (human) agent, or of the receiver," for which purpose they quote the words of St. Augustine[347]: "The Sacrament of itself is of much avail." Such appears to have been also the meaning of some, at least, of the Schoolmen: and perhaps all, favourably interpreted, mean this; that however a good disposition, i.e. faith and repentance, is required in the adult candidate for baptism, and in the worthy communicant a thankful remembrance also of Christ's death, and charity towards all, yet neither did faith, any more than repentance, or thankfulness, or charity, constitute the Sacrament, but that it had its efficacy from God only. Without faith the human soul was like a closed vessel, so that the influences to be poured therein through the Sacrament could not enter; but by faith, only the obstacle was removed, the grace came fully and entirely (ex opere operato,) from the work wrought by God, not in any way (ex opere operantis,) from the quality or merit of the receiver. In this sense, which Bellarmine asserts to be the true one, the doctrine of "conferring grace ex opere operato" contains nothing which our Church, as well as the Lutheran[348], does not equally hold, whereas the school of Zuingli and Calvin cannot; and against these and the like sacramentarian errors, (produced by the unbelief generated through the opposite errors of the Church of Rome,) the canons of the Council of Trent were, in this instance, probably directed.
At least we ought never to forget, that in the great commotion of the Reformation, there were brought to the surface not only treasures which had long lain hid, but froth and scum also: would one might say, froth and scum only! Every thing, which before had lain concealed under the thick veil of outward conformity, was laid bare: the Gospel was again eminently a savor of life and a savor of death,—to those who embraced it with an honest and true heart, life; others profited by the security given, only to manifest the unbelief or heresy which lurked within. To others, death and life were mingled in the cup. "Protestantism" then, as now, was often as negative as its very name; Protestant was often another name only for "infidel." The deadly, stupifying heresy (if it may even be called such) of Socinus was, we must recollect, one produce of the Reformation. In justice, then, to ourselves, as well as to the Romanists, we must bear in mind that the unhappy and fatal Canons of the Council of Trent, were directed, in part, against actual error, such as had mixed itself with the then, as well as with former, attempts at reformation. And we should do well to recollect that, though bound to thank God for all those, through whom the light of the Gospel shone more clearly, we always were regarded by them as a distinct and peculiar Church, and are not to identify ourselves with them. The Calvinist writer[349], so often quoted, says, very appositely to these times, (in answer to the charge of Popery, for holding Baptismal regeneration, even of Elect Infants,) "I like not that vain conceit that we should in all points goe as far from Papists and other Heretics as possibly we can. This is that which never did good: ever did and ever will do hurt: when men will take that to be truth only, which standeth in most direct opposition to that which is knowne and confessed to be a grosse error." In the present instance, our Church, which, under the influence of Reformed Divines, in the Articles of Edw. 6., declared[350] against the doctrine of the opus operatum, has omitted this censure of it in our present Articles; and, by thus retracting, has virtually admitted that it may have a good sense. In the case of Infant Baptism, since infants, as such, manifestly have neither faith nor repentance, though the faith of others is so far accepted for them, that they should be admitted to Holy Baptism, its benefits are conveyed to them through the Sacrament, not through their faith. For if, as has been recently argued, on the anti-mystical notion of a Sacrament, "the faith of the receiver is the true consecrating principle—that which really brings down Christ to the heart of each individual," and the doctrine that the faith of others is accepted for the individual is regarded as "scholastic," (i.e. a mere human speculation); Baptism can manifestly to infants be no Sacrament at all, since the "true consecrating principle" is wanting. The Romish Church has led men into practical error by insisting so exclusively on the opus operatum, i.e. the intrinsic efficacy of the Sacraments, and omitting to insist upon (although it holds) the necessity of faith and repentance on the part of the adult receiver, not indeed as constituting the Sacrament, but as necessary conditions of its efficacy to us: but this error must not be met by the doctrinal error of the Zuinglians, that faith is not only the means, whereby we are fitted to receive the grace of the Sacrament, but that faith, in fact, constitutes the Sacrament. The words of St. Augustine, above alleged, "The Sacrament of itself is of much avail," and his frequent maxim, (wherein he is speaking of Infant Baptism,) "Children are faithful because they have the Sacrament of faith," (Baptism) express the efficacy of Baptism upon infants, by virtue of God's ordinance. And this is all which the opus operatum could express with regard to children; since no one would hold that Baptism would be of any ultimate avail, unless its graces were subsequently cherished and cultivated.
I instanced the above-cited fathers, in proof that the views of Baptism, which they derived from the Apostles and from Scripture,—we from Scripture and from them,—so far from being, in themselves, cold or lifeless, or productive of carelessness, were tamest and affectionate, and a source of vigilance: not, of course, as if anything could, in itself, give weight to what we know to be Scripture truth, but because the agreement of the early Church is of important use in ascertaining what is truth. In the fathers, also, persons may see the character of Baptismal regeneration, and its relation to other truths of the Gospel, apart from the difficulties with which they cannot but approach any subject of modern controversy,—apart, namely, from the views, characters, or opinions, with which it may, in some cases, be, or be thought to be, combined.
Scripture truth, thus seen in its Catholic character, as universally held in the antient Church, detaches itself from the modes of thought, inadequate apprehensions, peculiarities, or errors, with which, in individual cases, it may be blended: it retains the character of Divine authority, in that He taught it to His whole Church; while the exercise of our faith is rendered more easy by the vividness with which we see His truth, when thus realized in action. Yet the ultimate authority and source of proof is, of course, Scripture; and, although we might often be at a loss to interpret Scripture, without the aid of the fathers, still this does not diminish our sense of its supremacy.
It is, then, to the Scriptural views of Baptism, that our more earnest attention is mainly called: it is a more thoughtful and teachable pondering of those truths, that I would urge—not endeavouring to square them to our preconceived theories, but obediently following them. Their Author, the place which they hold at the entrance of the Christian life, their greatness, all demand this at our hands. As deduced, then, above from Holy Scripture, they are these. By Baptism, our Blessed Saviour tells us, we are born again: Baptism is, God tells us by His Apostle, the washing of regeneration, and of the renewal by the Holy Ghost: through it, we are incorporated into Christ, made members of His body, engraffed into Him, made partakers of His death, burial, and resurrection: by it, through His merits, the original taint of our nature was forgiven, and our old man crucified. We ourselves have put on Christ, and so become partakers of the Sonship of the Ever-blessed Son of God. "By it we are saved:" i.e., for the time actually saved (as one may know in the case of baptized infants), and, subsequently, in a state of actual salvation (not merely of capacity of salvation), unless we fall from it: through it we are anointed by God's Holy Spirit, sealed by Him, and have the first earnest of our future inheritance given to us. God does not set forth Baptism, merely as the introduction into the Christian covenant, and so entitling the baptized person hereafter to Christian privileges; but as putting him already in possession of them in part, as a pledge of their fuller enjoyment of those which are capable of increase; i.e., those which the recipient afterwards becomes capable of receiving in fuller abundance. It was but to be expected, that these privileges being thus great, the loss of them should be, in proportion, dreadful; and that there being, as St. Chrysostom says, no second, third, or fourth Baptism, the loss should be, as a whole, irreparable. Such is the view which all Christian antiquity took of the warnings of St. Paul; nor does any other meaning appear so probable, as neither have we now such good means of deciding the question, as those who yet spoke St. Paul's language, and lived nearer to his times.
In setting forth this teaching of Holy Scripture, we have, it is well to observe, adhered strictly to the letter of God's word: we have not gone about to set forth any other doctrine than is contained in its plain words: we have only not glossed over, or distorted its language, but have taken God's promises and declarations simply as we found them. And it is useful to contrast with this mode of exposition that adopted by such as fear, unduly to exalt the Sacraments, and do, in fact, abase them to signs only; and then to ask ourselves, which seems the most faithful exposition of God's word? Some of these expositions have been already set side by side with that which seemed the more obvious; and, surely, where God is declaring plain doctrinal truth, this is decisive. For it is not here, as in a prophecy or parable, where God shadows out to us His way in futurity, and His wisdom but half unlifts the veil which it has spread, and docility in accepting doubtful intimations and in pondering them in our hearts, and following them as a light in a dark place, is the temper of mind which He would form in us; yea, where a part of God's object is, that they who acknowledge, that of themselves they see not, should see, and they who think they see should be made blind. As in parts of Scripture, the trial of our faith is, whether we will adhere to the letter and omit what under the letter is conveyed; so, in plain statements, such as these, it is, whether we will accept His truth or His commands to the very letter. There is a letter, we know, which killeth; but there is a neglect of the letter, which also killeth, (as in Socinian exposition, or neglect of duty) for it causes men to exclude themselves from the covenant of God.
When then the plain letter of Scripture says, "we are saved by Baptism," and men say, "we are not saved by Baptism," our Lord says, "a man must be born of water and the Spirit," man, that "he need not, cannot be born of water;" Scripture, that "we are saved by the washing of regeneration," man, "that we are not, but by regeneration which is as a washing:" Scripture, that we are "baptized for the remission of sins," man, that we "are not, but to attest that remission;" Scripture, that "whosoever hath been baptized into Christ, hath put on Christ," man, that he hath not; Scripture, "that they have been buried with Him by Baptism into death," man, that they have not; Scripture, that "Christ cleansed the Church by the washing of water by the word," man, that He did not, for bare elements could have no such virtue; Scripture, that "we were baptized into one body," men that we were not, but that we were in that body before; surely they have entered into a most perilous path, which, unless they are checked in pursuing it, must end in the rejection of all Scripture truth, which does not square with their own previous opinions. It did once so end; and it is a wholesome, but awful, warning, for those who will be warned, that it was out of the school of Calvin, from familiar intercourse with him, and the so-called "Reformed" Church,—that it was out of and through the Reformed Doctrine, that Socinianism took its rise; that "the chief corrupters of the Polish and Transylvanian Churches passed through Calvinism or Zuinglianism to their heresy[351];" that in Hooker's words[352], "the blasphemies of Arians, Samosatenians, Tritheites, Eutychians, and Macedonians, were renewed by them, who, to hatch their heresy, have chosen those churches as fittest nests, where Athanasius' Creed is not heard: by them, I say, renewed, who, following the course of extreme reformation, were wont, in the pride of their own proceedings, to glory, that, whereas Luther did but blow away the roof, and Zuinglius[353] batter but the walls of popish superstition, the last and hardest work of all, remained; which was, to raze up the very ground and foundation of popery, that doctrine concerning the deity of Christ, which Satanasius (for so it pleased those impious forsaken miscreants to speak) hath in this memorable creed explained." This is an awful warning: and any, who has been condemned to examine the original Socinian writers, (the Polish brethren) cannot fail of being struck with the use which they have made of, and the similarity of their language to, the Expositions of the "Reformed" Church. This, at least, struck me very forcibly, before I was made aware of the historical connection of the two schools. It is a warning also, which these times much need; and therefore, and to show the danger of such systems of interpretation, I have instituted a parallel between them[354]; not as if there could be entire agreement in doctrine, between those, who trusted in their Saviour, and those who rejected him, but only that thus far—in the rejection of the plain teaching of Scripture on the doctrine of the Sacraments, and the mode and method and principles of that rejection,—they did even verbally coincide. I do it solely because I am convinced that it is of much moment to the Church of Christ in this land, that we should look more heedfully whither we are going. No comparison is intended between the two schools, beyond the point for which they are compared. In the very context, wherein the passages are found, the writers will frequently part asunder as widely as possible: the Reformed School, speaking warmly of the blessings of the death of Christ, and of our unutterable union with Him; the Socinian,—as their school is wont. Yet on this very account the comparison is the more important; for if the deadly heresy of Socinus had sprung out of a dead and lifeless school, this had been the less to be wondered at, and had had far less solemnity of warning: but now to see it, starting out of the Reformed School, almost at its very birth, and amid its first freshness and life; this is indeed awful, and speaks most truly as to the delicacy, as well as the preciousness, of the treasure committed to our keeping by God; how rigorously he "requires of our hands" any tampering with it; that amazing as this His gift is, yet He is not careful to retain it in our knowledge or our use, when man in any way neglects or abuses it: that He is more jealous of His own honour in vindicating presently all misemployment or defilement of this inestimable gift, than in preventing it from being, as seems to us, altogether lost. Why God has made His revealed truth so frail and so tender, so easy to be lost, so difficult to be regained, we can of course but in a very little measure guess; and if we involuntarily guess, must needs confess that we assuredly guess much amiss; but it is so different from what human speculation would have supposed beforehand, yea, so different from what our own pride and self-importance, would persuade us yet that it is; we again and again so build our hopes on the supposed importance of our Church or nation in God's designs, or the zeal displayed upon certain enterprises to His honour; and this, in despite of the history of His dealings in His whole Church, that it is of the more importance to us to note all such instances of God's rigor. Alexandria, the bulwark of the faith in the Holy Trinity, and North Africa, of the unmeritedness of God's free grace, a desolation! Rome, once characterized for steady practical adherence to sound doctrine, a seat of Anti-Christ! Geneva, once proposed as the model for all reformed Churches, and of influence well-nigh unbounded, and yet immediately the parent of Socinianism, and now a prey to the heresy which came forth, but was for the time ejected, also from its bosom! Let us "not be high-minded, but fear." Especially let us beware of that straining of the letter of Holy Scripture in conformity with preconceived notions, and the requisitions of human reason, wherein the school of Calvin most fatally set the example to that of Socinus.
Neither the above, nor any other views of Christian truth, ought, of course, to be hastily adopted; nor need it be concealed that they would make a great change in much of our more earnest preaching, in the early education of our children, and so of the children of our country, and in our calls to the unconverted, or, (as they were better called,) backsliding or apostate Christians. There will, namely, when we are duly impressed with the value of this Holy Sacrament, be far more earnest care to preserve this seal of faith unbroken: men cannot go on with this apparent recklessness, which is intolerable, when they think that childhood has only been dedicated to God, not hallowed by Him, but which becomes an hundredfold more intolerable, when we look on them as actually "children of God, members of Christ, inheritors of Heaven," and when we acknowledge that if we allow them again to become "children of the devil," we have no covenanted means of restoring the bond broken through our negligence, no mode of wholly renewing them again. How must the Bishop, to whom St. John committed a young man, and who, after Baptism, had neglected him, have shrunk when he understood the words, "Restore the deposit, which I and the Saviour have committed to you, whereof the Church, over which thou presidest, was witness!"—how must he have trembled to say, "He is dead, dead to God!" But now it will not be St. John, but our Judge from whom we must hear the words, "An excellent keeper truly have I left thee of thy brother's soul!" We shall see how precarious a thing it is to look for "conversion" in riper years, (a thing which God has not promised,) if we neglect His appointed means of training up in their youth, "the members of His Son, the heirs of His kingdom." Our ministerial care must be, I will not say exclusively, but still very mainly directed to these "little ones:" and while we neglect not to build up older Christians, and take every opportunity of recalling a wanderer to Christ's fold, "if, peradventure God may yet give him repentance," our chief duty, delegated to us by the Great Shepherd, is His twice-repeated commission to "feed His lambs." Our own Church has very carefully directed our attention to them: our sermons, she supposes,[355] shall be such as shall interest and instruct them, long before their confirmation: their elementary instruction, she supposes[356] will be interesting and edifying to the adult portion of the congregation, when assembled for worship on the Lord's day: for it is out of their mouths, and such as them, that "God hath perfected praise;" and so, assuredly, it would be; and our sermons, if addressed in part to these "babes in Christ," might most healthfully recall us to the memory of our own childhood; the remembrance of childhood's comparative innocence in the recentness of its Baptismal purity, augments, probably, the repentance of most of us, that we have not "led all the rest of our lives according to that beginning;" it is a tie, which God has often still wound round the heart of the apparently obdurate[357], whereby He has drawn him back to Himself, when every other band was burst, and more direct appeals have only hardened. This, however, is not the question: it is, whether from false views of Baptism, and, consequently, a faithless doubt as to the capacities of very little children, and God's power and will to sanctify them, we have not kept them from Christ's "green pastures," and His "waters of comfort:" whether we have not left them to the wilfulness of their old nature, as if it were this which were "natural" to them, and have neglected to cultivate the new man in them, "which, after God, is created in righteousness and true holiness;" whether we have not left them to stray from Christ's fold, as if this were inevitable, and then complained of their unwillingness to be confined within it. The whole education, indeed, of children, is an act of faith and humility: faith, to believe that the seed we see not is already sown by God; that amid all their very childishness, the principle of immortal life is implanted in them; that, before they can express themselves in words, or can understand ours, or we can tell them of God, every little act of submission, and so every little conquest of self, is a fruit of God's Holy Spirit, who sealed them in Baptism; that the seed so sown requires but our diligent watering, and God will even now give the increase and the promise of the future harvest; that they are already, in deed as well as in name, Christians:—it requires humility as well as faith to believe that the doctrines which we receive, but of which we understand so little, can be, and are received as readily, and in its measure as efficaciously, in the heart of a child; that their evil tempers yield as, yea, or more readily, through prayer, and they become as or more easily victorious in their little trials than we; that there is not the wide difference between us, which our pride of intellect would imagine; that we are in different stages only of the same course—that they are already carrying on the same warfare with the same enemies, and (not having been so often foiled, not having as yet slighted the voice of God's Holy Spirit, and their Baptismal grace still fresh,) in their degree, more successfully than we: that they have need of, and can use, all the same means of Grace (save one), and look with a simpler, more vivid faith, to the same hope of Glory. This, and much more, which those who have tried to educate children Christianly, now know by sight, was at first to them an act of faith: it remains after a time, still, in a degree, an act of faith, for our pride would still make unreal distinctions; and when we have in some measure realized it, we then begin to see how much more is true, of God's grace in these little ones, than we had imagined.
"The whole of the bringing up of children," says Bishop Jewel[358], "standeth in the knowledge and in the feare of God: that they may know God, and walke before Him in reverence and in feare, and serve Him in holinesse, all the daies of their life. The Jewes are a miserable people, that live in error; they die in their own blood: yet have they so much understanding, that they bring up their children in the knowledge of God, and that knowledge they teach out of the word of God. They remember what charge God gave them: 'Thou shalt teach them thy 'sons, and thy sons' sons.' Therefore, a father must teach his child what God is. That He is our Father, that He hath made us, and doth feed us, and giveth us all things needfull, both for body and soule. That He is our Lord, and therefore we must serve Him, and obey Him, and do nothing whereby He may be displeased. That He is our Judge, and shall come to judge the quick and the dead; and that all men shall come before Him, to receive according as they have done in the flesh. He must put his child in mind of his Baptisme, and teach him that it is a covenant of God's mercy to us, of our duty to God: that it is a mystery of our salvation, that our soule is so washed with the blood of Christ, as the water of Baptisme washeth our body. Let us looke upon our children as upon the great blessings of God. They are the Lord's vessels, ordained to honour; let us keepe them cleane. They are Christ's lambs, and sheepe of his flock; let us lead them forth into wholesome pasture. They are the seed-plot of heaven; let us water them, that God may give the increase. Their angels behold the face of God; let us not offend them. They are the temples and tabernacles of the Holy Ghost; let us not sufler the foule Spirit to possesse them, and dwell within them. God saith, 'your children are my children.' They are the sons of God. They are borne anew, and are well shapen in beautifull proportion; make them not monsters. He is a monster, whosoever knoweth not God. By you they are borne into the world; bee carefull also that by your meanes they may bee begotten unto God. You are carefull to traine them in nurture, and comely behaviour of the body; seeke also to fashion their mind unto godlinesse. You have brought them to the fountaine of Baptisme, to receive the marke of Christ; bring them up in knowledge, and watch over them, that they be not lost. So shall they be confirmed, and will keepe the promise they have made, and will grow unto perfect age in Christ."
When children shall thus be brought up, not with occasional reference to religion (as it is called), or with occasional religious instruction, but "setting God always before them;" judging of all their actions with reference to God's law; looking at them as little ones, indeed, but still as members of Christ, and so imparting to them the privileges of His members; disciplining their wills in the same way, according to their proportion, as we should discipline our own; placing before them no motives but those upon which, as Christians, we would act ourselves; taking no standard of little or great, right or wrong,—(not custom, nor nature, nor affection, nor ease,)—but only God's law; regarding them, in fact, as miniatures, or rather as the first outline of the full-grown Christian, which, by God's blessing, shall acquire, day by day, fresh depth and breadth and consistency: then may we, indeed, hope that "our sons may be as plants, grown up in their youth; our daughters as corner-stones, polished like a temple:" then may our country be once more "the glory of lands," a chosen instrument of extending our Redeemer's kingdom in others, because it will have come "with power" in our own: then may we take the blessing of the Psalmist, "Happy is that people that is in such a case, yea, blessed is the people that hath the Lord for their God." Such also, we may see, has been the method of God, for the most part, in extending His Church hitherto, since its first planting. He has used, namely, the instrumentality of Christian nations, even more than that of individual Christians, however eminent. It is by nourishing up and multiplying sons and daughters of our common mother, far more than by the adoption of children not her own into the family of Christ, that His kingdom has been enlarged; and secondarily, by the contact of Christian nations, the leaven working in them has spread beyond their bounds. The means are evidently prepared for rendering colonization a far more effective means than ever before of extending in either way Christ's kingdom: but before we think of so extending it, the leaven must have worked thoroughly through our own mass; and for this, and that we may not rather be the source of a moral infection, we must train up our children in their baptismal privileges, in the full confidence that the "promise, which God has made. He for His part will most surely keep and perform." Much of the responsibility rests with us, the clergy. It is ours to press upon the parents in our several congregations to educate their children as Christians. It is ours to tell them what Christian education is; to remind them of the promise of Him who cannot lie, and the might of His arm, which is not shortened. It is ours to tell them, in detail, the errors of prevailing practice, and what on our authority they will believe, the early capacity of every child to understand its faults to be sins, to repent of them, to pray for God's might to conquer them, to conquer them in that might, and to be thankful. It is ours, more especially, to habituate ourselves to look upon every child,—not only as what it may be, weak, ignorant, foolish, but also as what it is in privilege and in anticipation,—a co-heir with Christ, as a member of Him. So will that "great reverence," which even a heathen saw to be due to a child, be, oh! how increased! and by uniformly treating the lambs of our flock as already Christians, bestowing proportionate labour and pains upon them, never treating them but as the temples of the Holy Ghost, we shall inspire into their parents a portion of the awe, which we feel for those whose "angels behold our Father's face." So shall our daily prayer be at the last accomplished—"Thy kingdom come!" The Christian minister would then have less occasion to address apostatizing Christians, and his office might nearly be confined to exhortations to watchfulness and growth. Yet even now, our addresses to these unhappy persons would, I doubt not, be more affectionate, more solemn, and more effective, because more true, if we spoke to them as they are, erring, or, it may be, even deserting Christians, but still with Christ's mark upon them, still as sheep of His fold, not now for the first time to enter in, or to "come to Christ," but to return,—with much sorrow, labour, trouble, and distress of mind,—but still to return to Him into Whose fold they had been brought, Whose sheep they are—to return to Him the Shepherd and Bishop of their souls; to return to Him, before Whom they must come, as their Judge. And if they should most lamentably refuse our warning, still our own increased earnestness in warning them of the difficulty of the way which they have now to tread, may, by God's grace, deter others, and show them the fearfulness as well as the shame of "returning," after they have been washed, "to their wallowing in the mire."
But, as before said, the effect of our preaching, as it does not depend upon ourselves, so neither may it be our test of its soundness; and that, simply, because we can at the best know but a very small portion of its real effects or defects. Our concern is, whether it be according to God's word. And it behoves us much to ascertain, by patient, teachable study of that word with prayer, whether it be right to make the way of repentance so easy to those who, after Baptism, have turned away from God; whether we have any right at once to appropriate to them the gracious words with which our Saviour invited those who had never known Him, and so had never forsaken Him, and with which, through His Church, He still invites His true disciples to the participation of His own most blessed Body and Blood—"Come unto Me, ye that labour and are heavy-laden;" whether, having no fresh "Baptism for the remission of sins" to offer, no means of "renewing them to repentance," we have any right to apply to them the words which the Apostles used in inviting men for the first time into the ark of Christ; whether we are not thereby making broad the narrow way of life, and preaching "Peace, Peace," where, in this way at least, "there is no Peace;" while those of us, who dwell on the necessity of universal conversion, and imply, by their preaching, a disbelief in the doctrine of baptismal regeneration, are many times "making the heart of the righteous sad, whom God hath not made sad."
These and the like questions are the more difficult to answer dispassionately, because they are opposed to much of our modern systems. May God enable us so to see, and preach, and realize the truth, as may save ourselves and those who hear us! I will add but the closing words of Melancthon, who also held the old doctrine of Baptism:—"Let us all consider these statements of Baptism piously and diligently, that we also, who are older, may console ourselves with that covenant, as I have said. But chiefly, let youth beware, lest they squander the gifts of Baptism, and lose that great glory, which Christ sets forth of infants in the Church. 'It is not the will of the Father that one of these little ones should perish.' What greater glory can be thought of, than what he affirms, that these certainly please God, and are cared for by Him. And let parents, in this faith as to Baptism, call upon God for infants, and recommend them to God; and as soon as ever they can be taught, accustom them themselves to call upon God and His Son, and gradually impart to them the sum of the Gospel. Lastly, since children are a great part of the Church, let parents and teachers know that no slight treasure is committed to them. Wherefore, let them use faithfulness and diligence in teaching and guiding youth."
the end.
Oxford
Feast of St. Luke.
(additional notes in the next no.)
These Tracts are published Monthly, and sold at the price of 2d. for each sheet, or 7s. for 50 copies.
LONDON: PRINTED FOR J. G. & F. RIVINGTON,
ST. PAUL'S CHURCH YARD, AND WATERLOO PLACE.
1835.
Gilbert & Rivington, Printers, St. John's Square, London.
Hooker does not, probably, mean to say that the "Baptizing with the Holy Ghost and with fire" was limited to this one act, in which the fire was visibly displayed; but to show that even here, where it would appear that a mere metaphor was intended, there was also a real fact: much more then in the words "born of water and of the Spirit." Add to this, (as Vazquez remarks, in Part III. t. 2. Disp. 131. c. 3.) there is a difference in the very construction of the words, "water and the Spirit," "Holy Ghost and fire;" for it might be said, (as in the application of the words of the Baptist to later times,) that the word "fire" was added to denote the energy of the Spirit in consuming our corruption in Baptism: whereas, in the words "water and the Spirit," their very position shows that the word "water" was not added to explain "the Spirit," the mention whereof follows it. But neither can it be said, that the mention of the "Spirit" so explains what is meant by "water" that it should be altogether superfluous; otherwise there had been no occasion why it should be mentioned at all. Rather it limits it indeed, so as to show that no mere "outward washing" is here intended; that any "washing" without the power of the Spirit was nothing; but does not so supersede it, as to hold out any hope that we should be born again of the Spirit without the water. Add to this, that in the Baptist's words, there is an evident contrast between the material element, the water, wherewith he himself baptized, and the fire, as the more vehement, to describe the more powerful baptism of our Lord; whereas, in our Lord's own words, there is nothing illustrated or explained by the word "water," unless it mean the water of Baptism; so that the very language would imply a certain metaphorical application in the one case, and the absence of it in the other. Again, it cannot be said, that the words "Baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with fire," exclude altogether a water-baptism; for, although baptizing may be used in the sense of consecration only, when there is no reference to any holy rite, (as in the words "are ye able to be baptized with the Baptism with which I am baptized?") it does not hence follow that such a sense is admissible, when (as in these words of St. John the Baptist) such a rite is directly referred to. St. Cyril of Jerusalem, just as Hooker, looks to the visible miracle (Acts ii. 2.) as the first fulfilment of the Baptist's words (Catech. iii. 9. xvii. 8.), but also to the invisible miracle of Baptismal regeneration, (τὸν Βαπτίζοντα, who now also baptizeth with the Holy Ghost.) So also St. Augustine, Serm. 71. De Verbis Evan. Mat. 12. § 19. Add St. Chrysostome, (ad loc. Homil. XI. t. 7. p. 154. ed. Bened.) "When the Baptist sends men to Christ, he speaks not of the wrath to come, but of forgiveness of sins, removal of punishment, and righteousness, and sanctification, and redemption, and adoption, and brotherhood, and participation of the heritage and abundant ministration of the Holy Spirit, for all these things he implied when he said 'He shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost and with fire;' by the very metaphor showing the abundance of the gift, for he does not say 'He shall give you the Holy Ghost,' but 'He shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost'; and by the addition of 'fire' he points out the vehemence and efficacy of the grace."
Note (B), on page 19.
Our version, "by the washing of regeneration and renewing of the Holy Ghost," admits of two constructions, according as one supplies "of the renewing" or "by the renewing;" since, however, the article is omitted before "renewing," it is probable that our translators considered the "renewing" also, as well as the "regeneration," as an effect of Baptism, (as paraphrased in the Tract); and such is the most natural construction of the words διὰ λουτροῦ παλιγγενεσίας καὶ ἀνακαινώσεως Πνεύματος ἁγίον. It is recognized by St. Gregory of Nyssa, who says, de Bapt. Christi init. "Baptism, then, is the purification of sins, remission of offences, the cause of regeneration and renewal;" and by St. Chrysostom, Hom IX. in Hebr. (quoted by Suicer, see above, p. 50, 51.) It is implied also in the use of the words ἀνακαινίζω, ἀνακαίνισις, ἀνακαινισμός, used of Baptism, which are taken from this passage. The union of renovation with regeneration, in Baptism, is implied also in the following passage of St. Basil, de Spiritu S. c. 12, in which the original words are preserved: "The Apostle appears sometimes to make mention of the Spirit alone in Baptism (1 Cor. xii. 13.); yet one would not, therefore, call that a perfect Baptism wherein the name of the Spirit alone were pronounced. For the tradition which was delivered at the time of the life-giving grace, must be constantly preserved unbroken; for He, who redeemed our life from corruption, gave us a power of renewal, whose cause was ineffable and contained in a mystery, but bringing great salvation to the soul." And in St. Ambrose, de Spiritu S. 1. 6. "They do not observe, that we are buried in that element of the water and rise renewed through the Spirit, for in the water is the image of death, in the Spirit is the pledge of life; so that through water the body of sin may die, the water enclosing the body as in a tomb, and by the power of the Spirit we may be renewed from the death of sin, being re-born in God." As also in the following paraphrase of Theodoret, (ad. loc.) "The Lord having used gentleness towards man, freed us from our former evils through the Only-Begotten, having freely given us remission of sins by saving Baptism, and having new-created and new-formed us, and having bestowed upon us the gifts of the Spirit, and shown us the way of righteousness." So also St. Augustine, ad Ps. 139, §. 9, Cyprian de habit, virg. p. 102. Origen in Joann. t. vi. § 17. "the bath of regeneration, which taketh place together with the renewal of the Spirit." And of moderns, J. Gerhard Loc. t. 4. p. 265, and most ap. Poole's Synopsis ad loc, and even the Reformed divines, as Calvin Institt. 4. 15. 5. and 16. 20; P. Martyr, ad Rom. 6; Witsius de Bapt. Infant. §. 19. Of the ancients, Jerome seems to have stood alone in the ordinary interpretation, ap. Waterland's Works, T. 8. p. 343, who prefers the above. Bucer de vi Bapt. Christi. (Opp. Anglic, p. 597.) "He calls it the washing of regeneration and of renewal by the Holy Ghost. Salvation, therefore, which consists in our regeneration and in that renewal, which the Holy Spirit effected in us, and so the Holy Spirit Himself, and our only regeneration and renovation, are bestowed on us by Baptism." Burges' Regeneration of Elect Infants, p. 87. "In which words, it is clear, as the sunne at noone-day, that Baptisme is not the laver of regeneration alone, but of the renewing of the Holy Ghost; so as he that is partaker only of the former, is but halfe baptized, i.e., he is partaker but of the body of the Sacrament, without that which gives life, forme, and being, unto that ordinance. And to make the Baptisme of the elect to be no more ordinarily, than a participation of the carcase of Christ's institution, would, I think, be a harsh doctrine even in their own eares, that deny the Spirit to elect infants."
Note (C), on page 23.
St. Augustine frequently cites this passage (Rom. vi. 3.) against the Pelagians, in proof that "infants are cleansed from original sin by regeneration;" (ab originali peccato parvulos regeneratione mundari,) and that, because St. Paul asserts, that all, without exception, who have been baptized in Christ, have been baptized in His death, i.e. have died an actual death to sin: all infants, therefore, must have died to sin; otherwise Christ had not died for them, which no one would say.—See c. Julian. Pelag. L. vi. § 7. sqq. L. i. § 28. Op. Imp. c. Jul. L. ii. § 135. and § 222. sq. Enchirid. c. 52. Wall (Infant Baptism, art. Augustine) enumerates also the following places wherein that father, from the acknowledged benefits of Baptism to infants, infers the truth of original sin:—"Ad Valerium de nuptiis et concupiscentiâ. Ad Bonifacium contra duas Epistolas Pelagianorum. De Gratiâ et Libero arbitrio. De corruptione et gratià De prædestinatione Sanctorum. De dono Perseverantiæ. De Gestis Palæstinis. De octo Dulcitii quæstionibus. Comment. in Psalm. li. 'I was shapen in iniquity,' &c. Sermo x. xiv. De verbis Apostoli. it. in Sancti Johannis nativitatem. Letters to Paulinus, to Optatus, to Sixtus, to Celestinus, to Vitalis, to Valentinus, and several others." And in the De Peccat. Merit. L. ii. § 23. he energetically says:—"If infants be ill of no sickness of original sin, why are they, by the pious fear of their hasting friends, carried to Christ the physician, i.e. to receive the Sacrament of eternal salvation? and why are they not told in the church, 'Take these innocents hence; they that be whole need not a physician, but they that be sick; Christ came not to call the righteous, but sinners!' Such a fiction never was pronounced, nowhere is pronounced, never anywhere will be pronounced, in the Church of Christ."
Note (D), on page 34.
"Almost all say, that in 2 Cor. i. St. Paul speaks of that spiritual sealing which is received in Baptism, by which we are made the flock of Christ, as Chrys. and Theod. have expressly said."—Saurez in 3 Part. D. Thomæ qu. 63. art. 3. See also Ambrose (Note E. p. 214). In Calvin, and most who have followed him, there seems not to have been even a surmise, that Baptism could have been here intended; nor is this exposition named in the collections of Marloratus or Pole. Bucer, however, says, on Eph. i. "'After ye have believed.' The Apostle is speaking of true faith, not that our salvation is tied to faith; for we shall hereafter be blessed without faith; and infants have it not as yet, and still are saved:" and after a description of true faith: "For they are at Baptism purified, adopted, and sealed by the Spirit, whereby they are daily prepared for faith, and hearing of the word, when they shall grow up." And on Eph. iv. "God has marked His own, whom He has purchased with the blood of His Son, with that seal, which He doubtless will acknowledge in the day of the perfected redemption. That Spirit of adoption, whereby we cry Abba, Father, is the mark of Christ in us, and the day of Baptism is the day of the promised redemption; but the day of our resurrection will be the day of the redemption fully realized." From him, as appears, Hieron. Zanchius says the like, on Eph. i. "I doubt not that the Apostle alludes to Baptism, whereby the Ephesians, after they believed and made the confession of their faith, were sealed for Christ." And on c. iv. "When does God seal us? In our Baptism, when He baptizes us, not so much with water as with the Spirit." And in the Diss, on Baptism, on Eph. v. "This right (to eternal life) is sealed in us by the seal of Baptism, which is the meaning of Eph. i. 'Ye have been sealed,' &c. and John iii. 'Except a man be born of water and the Spirit," &c.
Note (E), on page 38.
Bingham (Christian Antiq. b. xi. c. 1.) quotes several passages, wherein is expressed this doctrine of our being sealed, and so guarded and protected by Baptism; as the Acta Theclæ, "Give me the seal of Baptism, and temptation shall not touch me." Clemens of Alexandria, ap. Euseb. H. E. L. iii. c. 23. of the Presbyter to whom St. John had committed a young man, "The presbyter having taken him home, brought him up, kept him by him, cherished him, at last enlightened (baptized) him. After this he remitted further care and watchfulness over him, as having set upon him that perfect preservative, the seal of the Lord (i.e. Baptism.") See other instances in Suicer, v. σφραγίς.) St. Basil insists on the safety thereby procured to us, in that we are thereby marked as God's (cp. the Rev.) "How shall the Angel rescue thee from the enemies (see Jude 9.) unless he see the mark? How canst thou say 'I am God's,' unless thou bearest his tokens? Knowest thou not that the destroyer passed by the houses which were sealed (marked), and in the unsealed slew the first-born? An unsealed treasure is open to robbers; an unmarked sheep is easily entrapped" (De S. Baptismo, Hom. 13. § 4. p. 117. ed. Bened.) Again, he calls it "a seal, which no force (without us) can injure," ib. § 5. as does St. Cyril of Jerusalem (Procatech. § 16.) St. Gregory of Nazianzum uses in part the same references to Scripture history, and the same images. He especially calls Baptism "a seal to those beginning life, to the more advanced a grace also, and a restoration of the lost image." (De S. Baptismo, § 7. p. 640.) He exhorts the young to receive Baptism: "if thou provide thyself with the seal, and guard the future with the best and firmest of supports, and being marked, soul and body, with the anointing and with the Spirit, as Israel of old with that blood and anointing, which by night guarded the first-born, what shall happen to thee?" § 14. As, on the other hand, he alludes to the danger of those who have not this seal: "Fearest thou lest thou shouldest corrupt this grace, and so delayest thy purification, as having no second to look to? What then? Fearest thou not, lest in a time of persecution thou be in danger of being deprived of thy greatest treasure, Christ?" Ib. § 15. And again, "This purifying must not be glossed over, but must be stamped upon them." § 30. And hence Tertullian frequently calls Baptism the seallng-up of faith, as an impress on the part of God, whereby He secures and maintains it. "That bath is the sealing up (obsignatio) of faith, which faith begins, and is recommended by the faith of repentance." De Pœnitentia, c. 6. Again, de Spectaculis, c. 4. he calls Baptism "our sealing." And against Marcion, who distinguished the God of the New Testament from the God of the Old, and disbelieved the teaching of the Old Scriptures—"He seals, then, man, who in His sight never was unsealed! He washes man, who in His sight never was defiled! And He dips the flesh, which is excluded from salvation, in this whole Sacrament of salvation!" L. i. c. 28. And de Præscript. Hæretic. c. 36, "It unites the law and the prophets with the gospels and the apostolic writings, and thence imbibeth faith. This it sealeth with water, clotheth with the Holy Spirit, feedeth with the Eucharist, by martyrdom persuadeth; and against this institution admitteth no one." Cornelius also, ap. Euseb. Hist. L. vi. c. 33, speaks of "being sealed by the sign of the seal in the Lord." Ambrose de Spiritu S. L. i. c. 6. "Do we live through the water as through the Spirit? Are we sealed through the water as through the Spirit? for in Him we live, and He is the earnest of our inheritance; as the Apostle, writing to the Ephesians, saith, 'in whom believing, ye were sealed with the Holy Spirit of promise,' &c. We were sealed then by the Holy Spirit, not in a natural way, but by God, because it is written, 'God, who anointed us, and sealed us, and gave the Spirit, as an earnest in our hearts.' We were sealed then with the Spirit by God; for as we die in Christ, that we may be born again, so we are sealed also with the Spirit, that we may retain His splendour, and image, and grace; and this then is a spiritual seal; for although we are outwardly sealed in the body, yet in reality we are sealed in the heart, so that the Holy Spirit forms in us the representation of the heavenly image." St. Cyril of Jerusalem, addressing those about to be baptized, says, "receive through faith the pledge of the Holy Spirit, that ye may be able to be received into the eternal habitations. Approach to the mysterious seal, that ye may be recognised by your Master. Where He seeth a good conscience, there He giveth that saving, that wondrous seal, of which the devils stand in awe, and which angels acknowledge." (Catech. 1. c 2.) And again—"Thou descendest into the water, bearing thy sins; but the words of grace pronounced over thee, having sealed thy soul, no longer permit thee to be devoured by the fearful dragon. Having descended dead in sins, thou arisest quickened in righteousness. For if thou wert planted in the likeness of the death of the Saviour, thou shalt also be accounted worthy of the resurrection." Ib. 3. 12. And in like manner, Cyril frequently speaks of "the Holy Spirit, which sealeth the souls in Baptism." Catech. 3, 3. 4, 4, 16. 16, 24. 17, 35. And Epiphanius (which is the more to be noticed) lays down thus the distinction between circumcision and Baptism:—"for there (among the Jews) there was a carnal circumcision, which served for a time, until the great circumcision (i. e. Baptism), which circumciseth us from sins, and sealeth us in the name of God." Hæres. 8. med. (cp. Hæres. 30. fin. quoted by Vazquez, l. c. disp. 134 c. 1.) And Ambrosiaster, on Eph. i. 14. "It is to the praise of the glory of God, when many are gained to the faith. Therefore it belongeth to God's glory that He called the Gentiles, that they might obtain the healing of their salvation, having the seal of redemption and future inheritance, the Holy Spirit given upon Baptism. For the redeemed are marked out as heirs, if they continue in regeneration, so that the first faith obtaineth pardon, but a holy conversation, enduring with faith, a crown." Rufinus inv. in S. Hieron, § 3. "Having been regenerated by the grace of Baptism, I obtained the seal of faith." We are the more directly reminded of the language of the Revelations, by the title "the sealed," which St. Basil gives to the baptized, de Spiritu S. c. 16. p. 34. And again, directly explaining Eph. iv. 30. "They then who have been sealed by the Holy Spirit to the day of redemption, and have kept that first fruit of the Spirit undefiled and undiminished, these are they who shall hear the words 'Well done! good and faithful,' &c.; and likewise they who have grieved the Holy Spirit by the wickedness of their doings, and did not obtain increase for that which was given them, shall be deprived of that which they received, the grace being transferred to others; and the 'cutting in twain,' (Mat. xxiv. 51.) means the entire alienation of the Spirit from the soul. For now, although He be not mingled with the unworthy, yet He seems to be present with those who have been once sealed, awaiting their salvation through their conversion; but then He shall be severed altogether from those who defiled His grace;" (in which words, it may be observed, that St. Basil explains the benefits of Baptism to those who neglect the gift therein bestowed, in the same way as St. Augustine, sup. p. 175; that is, as ready to be of avail to them, if they at length, really from the heart, obey God's call to turn and fear Him; while the final loss of that seal of Baptism is spoken of as equivalent to the utter alienation from God, which is the misery of the damned.) Theodotus, in Epit. Orient. Doctrinæ (ap. Gerhard Loci de S. Bapt. §111.) "He who hath come to God, and hath received power to tread on scorpions and serpents, and all the evil powers, having been sealed through the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, is inaccessible to any power." And in this sense are comprehended all those several modifications which Bellarmine and Vazquez attribute to the use of this metaphor among the fathers, viz. that the Sacraments are marks whereby the faithful are noted; that they contain within themselves, and preserve, a sacred thing, i.e. grace; that Baptism is, in Tertulllan's usage, a public approval and attestation of faith. All these may be reduced into the one head, that the Sacrament of Baptism, where rightly received, impresses upon the soul the image of God; secures and perpetuates all previous good emotions worked in adults by God; and carries on to life eternal those who live "the rest of their lives according to that beginning!" The statement of these writers, as an historical fact, is valuable, that "no one of the fathers calls the Sacraments seals, as being symbols of God's good-will towards us, to excite our faith, whereby we may certainly believe that our sins are forgiven us, according to the notions of Calvin." Vazquez, l.c. disp. 131. c 6. The consent of the early Church, in explaining this text of Baptism, may also be inferred from its being used as a lesson in connection with the baptismal service. "Recall," says St. Ambrose, de iis qui mysteriis initiantur, c 7. "that thou hast received a spiritual seal, the spirit (Is. xi. 2.) of holy fear, and keep what thou hast received. God the Father hath sealed, Christ the Lord hath confirmed thee, and given the earnest of the Spirit in your hearts, as thou hast learnt from the lesson out of the Apostles."
Note (F), on page 40.
The Greek Fathers uniformly explain, "washing of water by the word," (Eph. v. 26.) of our Saviour's word of consecration; so St. Chrysostome ad loc. "By what word? In the name of the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Ghost." The consent, indeed, of the Greek Fathers is admitted. "Chrysostom," says Estius, "and the other Greeks, and the later Latins, refer this to the mystical words of Baptism." St. Cyril of Jerusalem again, having already spoken of the catechetical instruction or teaching of the word before Baptism, as distinct from this, reminds the catechumens how they had been purified from sin by the Lord "by the washing of water by the word." Catech. 18. § 33. and so also Theodoret, Tlieophylact, Œcumenius. The exposition of the Greeks is of the more importance, since the question depends, in part, upon the use of the word ῥῆμα. Ῥῆμα, namely, is used in the New Testament, of the "command" of God. Matt. iv. 4. Heb. i. 3. xi. 3. Rom. x. 8. (from the ὁ) Eph. vi. 17., or of His "promise," Heb. vi. 5. 1 Pet. i. 25., or of a specific revelation, "the word of the Lord came to," &c. iii. 2. but not in the general sense of revelation written or unwritten. For this there is used the plural ῥήματα, Joh. v. 47. vi. 63, C8. viii. 20, 47, &c., or λόγος.
Of the Latin Fathers, St. Augustine, who is alleged by Estius and Calvin for the contrary, explicity interprets the passage of the Sacramental words, (De nuptiis T. x. p. 298. ed. Bened.). "For so says the Apostle, Eph. v. 25., which is so to be understood; that, by the same washing of regeneration and word of sanctification, all the ills of men, who have been regenerated, are cleansed and healed, not only the sins which are all remitted now at baptism, but those also which may be hereafter contracted by human ignorance or infirmity;" as also in the very passage alleged for the contrary, (Tract. 80 in Johan. T. iii. p. 703.) "Why does Christ say, not 'ye are clean on account of the Baptism wherewith ye are washed,' but 'on account of the word which I have spoken unto you,' except that the word cleanseth also in the water? Take away the word, and what is water but water? The word is added to the element, and it becomes a Sacrament; itself, as it were, a visible word." St. Augustine indeed, like the other Fathers, considers the words of Baptism as not confined to that single act, but to be influential through life. "In the word itself," he says, "the passing sound is one thing, the abiding power another:" but he expressly adds, "the cleansing, therefore, would not be ascribed to the unstable and fluid element, unless there were added 'by the word.' This word of faith is of so much avail in the Church of God, that through her, believing, offering, blessing, baptizing, it cleanseth the merest infant, although not as yet able to believe with the heart unto righteousness, and to confess with the mouth unto salvation." The passage of St. Augustine is fully considered by Vazquez in Part. 3. Disp. 129. n. 52–64. Indeed it would have created no difficulty, but for the altered frame of mind, which no longer felt the same reverence for the words, through which water was sanctified to be "the bath of regeneration." (See citations from Basil. &c. p. 185, sqq.) St. Augustine, elsewhere, incidentally defines "the Baptism of Christ" to be "Baptism consecrated with the words of the Gospel;" (de Bapt. c. Donat. L. vi. § 47.) and again ibid. "God is present with His own Gospel words, without which the Baptism of Christ cannot be consecrated, and Himself hallows His own Sacrament." See also c. Crescon. iv. 15.
St. Augustine, then, makes no exception to what is admitted to be the opinion of "all the later Latins," as well as of all the Greek Fathers. St. Ambrose is quoted to the same purpose by Tirinus. In like manner St. Jerome (ad loc. quoted by Estius) is manifestly not explaining the literal meaning, but applying the whole in a secondary sense: wherein the husband represents the soul, the wife the body, which is to be cleansed from sin by the word. Such consent of antiquity one can hardly doubt to have originated in a genuine tradition. Of moderns, Bucer says, "In what way could the Holy Spirit have expressed more plainly, that Baptism administered by the word and at the command of Christ, was an instrument of purifying His elect from sin?" (De vi Bapt. p. 597.) And Zanchius, who is again quoted for the reverse, says, on the passage, that "the three parts of Baptism, the element of water, the word of consecration, and the blood of Christ, are mentioned in this passage," p. 209. col. 2. add p. 222. § 24. Bullinger, "For the element cannot purify by itself, unless the word of God be added, i.e. the sanctifying Divine power and certain promise, which is obtained by faith. Whence Augustine learnedly and piously saith, The word is added to the element and it becomes a Sacrament;" and Ridley, Comm. on the Ephes. (Fathers of the English Church, vol. 2. p. 135.) One regrets that Calvin, taking a superficial view of the passage of St. Augustine, should have represented those who believe in the efficacy of the words of consecration as maintaining that "the word whispered over the element without sense or faith, by a mere noise, had the power of consecrating the element as by a magical incantation." Instit. L. 4. c. 14. § 4. It was a part of Calvin's rationalism to suppose that the word of consecration had its efficacy simply by teaching the people, not through any virtue given by God to the invocation of the Blessed Trinity enjoined by Christ Himself, or to those words which Himself used at the Last Supper. Luther, on the contrary, adhering to the Ancient Church, says, "Baptism is not simply water, but water fenced by the command of God and united with God's word." And again in Art. Schmalc. c. 5. (quoted by Gerhard Loci, de S. Bapt. § 80) "Baptism is nothing else than the word of God with the immersion into water, according to His institution and command, or as St. Paul saith, 'washing of water with the word.'"
Note (G), on page 42.
The Chrism or Anointing is mentioned by Tertullian (de Baptismo c. 7), not only as the universal custom in his day (A.D. 200), but as having been derived from the antient dispensation. It seems, therefore, most probable that it was, from the very first, received into Christianity. "Having come out of the bath," he says, "we are anointed with the blessed unction taken from the antient dispensation, in which they used to be anointed to the priesthood with oil out of the horn. Whence Aaron was anointed by Moses; whence Christ is so called from chrism, i.e. anointing, which, being made spiritual, gave the name to the Lord, because He was anointed with the Spirit of God the Father, as it is in the Acts, 'against thy Holy Son, whom thou anointedst.' Thus in us also the anointing runs corporeally, but profits us spiritually; in like manner as the bodily act of Baptism itself, that we are dipped in the waters, being made spiritual, in that we are delivered from our offences." "The flesh," he says again, (de resurr. carnis. c. 8.) "is anointed, that the soul may be consecrated." Origen again, in a different portion of the Church, speaks of it in terms as universal, (hom. 8. in Lev. v. fin.) "When men are thus turned from sin, they are cleansed by the means above named: but the gift of the grace of the Holy Spirit is marked by the emblem of oil; so that he who is turned from sin, may obtain not cleansing only, but be filled with the Holy Ghost." And so it seems probable that Theophilus, Bishop of Antioch, includes the material ointment, when he says, (Lib. i. ad Autolyc.) "We are called Christians, because we are anointed with the oil of God;" for, that it is a spiritual unction also, an unction of light and of the Spirit of God, is but what is affirmed by all the like writers, and belonged to it, as a part of Baptism. And thus we come so near to the time, when St. John wrote his Epistle, that it seems far the most probable, on this ground alone, that in the words (1 Ep. ii. 20. 27.) he alluded to this rite. St. Cyril of Jerusalem, in discoursing on this portion of Baptism, preaches on this passage of St. John, as being the Lectionary or Lesson appointed by the Church. It were needless to mention later authors, but for the uniformity of the distinction, whereby regeneration is attributed to the washing of the water, the gifts of the Spirit, (as in this passage of St. John,) to the anointing, as a part of Baptism;—an agreement, which, in so many different churches, implies a common source of tradition: although it need not be said that in other places they speak of the Holy Spirit as God's gift in Baptism as a whole. Thus Cyprian, Ep. 70. or rather the thirty-one African Bishops, (on the baptizing of heretics,) "It is necessary that he who is baptized should also be anointed, that having received the chrism, i.e. the anointing, he may be the anointed of God, and have in him the grace of Christ." And Ambrose de Sacram. L. iii. c. 1. "Yesterday we spoke of the fountain, whose form is a sort of sepulchre, into which, believing in the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit, we are received, and buried, and rise, i.e. are raised again. But thou receivest the μύρον, i.e. the ointment upon the head, and why? because the wisdom of the wise is in his head, as Solomon saith; for wisdom without grace is but a lifeless thing; but when it hath received grace, then its work beginneth to be perfected. This is called regeneration." And S. Cyril, in his discourse on the Chrism, (Catech. Mystag. iii. init.) begins thus: "Having been baptized into Christ, and having put on Christ, ye have been conformed to the Son of God; for God, having predestinated us to the adoption of sons, conformed us to the body of the glory of Christ. Having then been partakers of Christ, ye are rightly called Christs (anointed); and of you has God said, 'touch not my Christs.' But ye became Christs, having received the representation of the Holy Spirit, and all things have, as in an image, taken place in you, since ye are images of Christ. For as when He ascended from the water, the essential descent of the Holy Spirit upon Him took place, the Like resting upon the Like, so when ye ascended from the pool of the holy streams, the chrism was given you, the emblem of that wherewith Christ was anointed, and this is the Holy Spirit. He was anointed with the spiritual oil of gladness, (i.e. with the Holy Spirit, so called because He is the author of spiritual gladness,) and ye were anointed with ointment, having become partakers and communicants of Christ. And the body indeed is anointed with visible oil, but the soul sanctified with the Holy and life-giving Spirit. Having had this holy chrism vouchsafed to you, ye are called Christians, verifying the name by your new-birth. For, before this, ye deserved not this title, but were on your way towards becoming Christians." The language of St. Gregory of Nazianzum has been already noticed. Theodoret, in Cant. c. 1., says in like manner, "They who are received into Baptism after the renunciation of Satan and the confession of faith, being anointed with the Chrism of the spiritual ointment, as with a royal mark, under this visible form of ointment receive the invisible grace of the most Holy Spirit." And Johannes Damascenus de fide L iv. c. 10. "Oil is added to Baptism, signifying anointing and making us Christs, and announcing to us the mercy of God through the Holy Spirit." More to this purpose may be seen ap. Bingham Christian Antiq. B. x. c. 9. B. xii. c. 1 and 3. and Bellarmine de controvv. t. ii. p. 411. sqq. (from whom several of the above quotations are taken, but whose quotations, like those of all Romanist writers, require sifting,) and Suicer art. Βάπτισμα, p. 633. Ἕλαιον, p. 1077. and Χρίσμα. I have put these together only to show how universal the practice of anointing, as a part of Baptism, was in the early Church, and consequently how probable it is that St. John alluded to some actual rite of Baptism. Besides the Lectionary prefixed to Cyril's homily, the text is directly applied to Baptism by a Scholiast ap. Matthaei N. T. ad loc. p. 220.
Note (H), on page 44.
This reference to the rite of interrogating candidates for Baptism, as to their faith and their purpose in coming to Holy Baptism, appears to have been recognized by the Fathers generally, as St. Peter's meaning (1 Ep. iii. 21), as also to be the only exposition which gives an adequate sense to ἐπερώτημα; for had St. Peter meant simply to insist on the necessity of having a good conscience, it had seemed sufficient had καλὴ ξυνείδησις alone stood, whereas, the addition of ἐπερώτημα "questioning," appears to imply some more formal interrogatory as to the faith of the individual, such as that implied in Philip's words, "If thou believest with all thy heart, thou mayest." (Acts viii. 37.) The words of Tertullian, de resur. Carnis, c. 48, "The soul is sanctified, not by the washing, but by the answering" (Anima non lavatione sed respoiisione sancitur), are not only a comment on St. Peter's words, (as Beza says, ad loc), but almost an authoritative one. The Syriac Version, "confessing God with a pure conscience," gives us the tradition of the Eastern Church at an early period; at least, it again leads us to think of a public profession of faith, such as that made at Baptism. And so also the Latin Church, in the 2d cent. "Conscientiæ bona interrogatio." Vulg. S. Gregory of Nazianzum, among the titles given to Baptism, mentions it thus, "enlightening, brightness of souls, change of life, interrogation as to the conscience towards God," omitting the word "good," and thereby laying the stress more upon the "interrogatory" (Orat, 40, de Baptismo. init.): so St. Augustine (ap. Jewel's Defence of Apologie, p. 217.) quotes the passage in proof that "Baptism does not consist so much in the washing of the body, as in the faith of the heart;" whence "the enquiry into a good conscience" must be "enquiry into faith:" and, in the passage above cited (note F), Hom. 80, in Joann., St. Augustine quotes it, in proof of the efficacy of the "word of faith"—i.e., the doctrine of the Blessed Trinity, then professed and believed, and to be guarded and kept, by God's help, through life. Again (c. Crescon. Donat. L. 4. § 16.), St. Augustine refers this enquiry expressly to the period of Baptism. "But if there be not the interrogatory of a good conscience in the recipient, and faith itself, either in part or altogether, be tottering, you will not say that the Sacraments are to be annulled." So also c. Don. iv. § 3, 4. So also of moderns: Hooker, (B. v. § 63, end) paraphrases "an interrogative trial of a good conscience towards God:" Jewel's Defence of Apologie, p. 218, "the examining of a good conscience before God:" Bucer de vi et efficacia Baptismi Christi (Scripta Anglic, p. 597), "the Apostle by a figure places the 'interrogation' for the whole Sacrament, wherein the persons to be baptized are interrogated, and answer as to their faith in the death and resurrection of the Lord; which, if they do with a good conscience, they receive salvation through Baptism. For Baptism does not save adults, unless they be believers. Salvation, indeed, is oftered unto all in Baptism; but adults do not receive it, except by faith: infants by the secret operation of the Holy Spirit, whereby they are sanctified to eternal life:" add Cave's Primitive Christianity, L. 1. c. ii. p. 306. Bingham, B. ii. c. 7. § 3. Lyranus, Gagnæus, Joannes a Lovanio (quoted by Bellarmine, de Controv. T. iii. p. 65.), Grotius, Hesselius, Estius, Tirinus, ad loc, Parkhurst Lex. s. v. (ed. Rose), and others quoted by them. Other renderings of ἐπερώτημα, are very unsatisfactory, except as far as they come round to this: thus Œcumenius, interpreting "a pledge and earnest," speaks of persons "who longed for a holy life, enquiring after Baptism, as the means of purification, and so it was a pledge of sincerity." This comes to the same result, that "Baptism received in sincerity (i.e., its holy efficacy not thwarted by our hypocrisy, or unbelief), saves us." J. Gerhard obtains the sense, that Baptism saves us, by assuring us of God's mercy: thus, "Baptism is an interrogatory between God and the sinner who is baptized, which turns upon a good conscience towards God, on account of Christ; i.e., how God is disposed towards the baptized, and what the conscience of the baptized may promise itself, as to the grace of God." (Loci Theol. de Sacram. § 88. cit. D. Chemnitz, c. 17. Harmon, p. 16.) Only one sees not then the force of the addition "a good conscience," which implies something on the part of man, not merely, as in this explanation, a conscience tranquillized by God's mercy towards it." So Bullinger ap. Marlorat. These, however, still regard the interrogatory, stipulation, or however they explain ἐπερώτημα, as contemporary with Baptism. Others, principally of the school of Calvin, explain it of the conscience boldly interrogating God, whether His favour be not obtained to them through the death of Christ. So Piscator. Parens, "most are outwardly washed only; few so, that they can dare to call upon and address God with a good conscience." Calv., "Peter requires a confidence, which may endure the sight of God, and stand at His tribunal." These, also, (as so many other of Calvin's expositions,) do not bear to be brought in contact with the text; for who could endure the paraphrase, "Baptism saves us; not that which is outward in the flesh, but the confident appeal of a tranquillized conscience?" for the confident appeal to God can save no one. Rather, Baptism saves us, as the means appointed by God for remitting sin, and imparting new life; whereof, a "tranquillized conscience" is an effect only. Hemmingius ad loc. thinks, that the Church adopted the interrogatories in Baptism from this passage; which is an incidental admission, how obviously the interpretation above given connects itself with it. The interrogatories at Baptism are alluded to, in Justin Martyr's 2nd Apology, §61; and the remarkable verbal coincidence between the Eastern and Western Church, at an early period, proves a common, and, I doubt not, an Apostolic origin of this rite. (See the extracts, ap. Bingham, B. 11. c. 7, although any extract loses much of the effect which the same passage has, when one lights upon a custom, hallowed to us by the use of our own Church, adduced by an antient Father incidentally, to establish some doctrine, or rebuke some unholy practice.) "Neither do I think it," says Hooker, l.c, "a matter easy for any man to prove, that ever Baptism did use to be administered without interrogatories of these two kinds. Whereunto, St. Peter (as it may be thought), alluding, hath said. That the Baptism which saveth us is not (as legal purifications were) a cleansing of the flesh from outward impurity, but ἐπερώτημα, an interrogative trial of a good conscience towards God."
Note (I), on p. 47. [The references in p. 47 must be transposed.]
In the third place, in which the account of St. Paul's conversion is given in the Acts (c. xxvi. 12. sqq.), it is related more compendiously; and the times at which each portion of our Saviour's teaching was imparted to him, are not distinguished. This is obviously occasioned by its being addressed to king Agrippa. Before him, St. Paul sets forth the broad outlines of his own history, and its more striking facts, passing by the details which would to the king be less interesting, and dwelling the more upon the high spiritual purpose of his mission, "to open men's eyes, to turn them from darkness to light, from the power of Satan unto God." To the Jews (c. 22), before whom he was accused as a transgressor of the law, it was of the more moment to dwell upon the mission of Ananias to him, "a devout man according to the law, having a good report of all the Jews." Yet, because St. Paul, in one place, gives the account thus compendiously, no one should infer, that all which he there declares himself to have heard from Christ, was delivered to him at that first appearance of Christ; for, on the two other occasions, circumstances here omitted are filled up. Yet it seems in some such way, that persons have overlooked one of the great features in God's conversion of St. Paul. I find the view taken above (p. 47), in St. Chrysostom (Hom. i. in Actt. § 6. T. 9. p. 10. ed. Bened.) "We cannot, cannot, obtain grace without vigilance. Not even upon Paul did grace come immediately; but three days intervened, in which he was blind, being purified, and prepared for its reception, by fear. For as the purple-dyers first prepare, by other means, that which is to receive the dye, that its richness may not fade: thus, here also, God first prepares the soul, by filling it with trouble, and then pours forth His grace;" and again (Hom. 19. on Acts ix. 9. p. 157.), "Why did he neither eat nor drink? he was condemning himself for what he had done; he was confessing all; he was praying; he was calling upon God;" and (Hom. 20. init.), "Ananias taught him nothing, but only baptized him. But, as soon as he was baptized, he drew down on himself a great grace from the Spirit, through his zeal and great earnestness."—"And why did not God blind his eyes themselves? this was much more wonderful. They were open, but he saw not: which also had happened unto him, as to the law, until the name of Jesus was put upon him (i.e., until he was baptized.) 'And having taken meat, he was strengthened:' he had been exhausted, then, by the journey, his terror, hunger, and despondency. God then wishing to increase his despondency, allowed him to remain blind till Ananias came."
Note (K), on page 131.
Calvin, when treating expressly of the similarity and dissimilarity between Circumcision and Baptism, affirms that they agreed in every thing except the outward rite. And this he proves thus:—"When God was about to institute circumcision. He promised to Abraham that 'He would be the God of him and his seed:' herein is concluded the promise of eternal life, since 'God is not the God of the dead but of the living:' but the first entrance to eternal life is remission of sins: therefore this promise corresponds to that of Baptism, our being cleansed from sin; 2d, God requires of Abraham to walk before him in sincerity and innocence of heart, which relates to mortification or regeneration. Moses also shows (Deut. xxx. 6.) that the real meaning of circumcision is that of the heart, and that this is God's doing. We have then the spiritual promise given to the Fathers in circumcision, such as is given to us in Baptism, since it figured to them remission of sins and mortification of the flesh. Besides, as we showed Christ to be the foundation of Baptism, so was He of circumcision. For He is promised to Abraham, and in Him all nations shall be blessed. To seal which mercy the seal of circumcision is added. Now then it is plain, what is alike in these two seals, and what different. The promise (and in this I explained that the validity of the signs consisted) is the same in both: it is, namely, of God's fatherly goodness, of the remission of sins, of life eternal. Moreover the thing figured is one and the same in both, viz. regeneration. The foundation, on which the fulfilment of those things rests, is the same in both. Wherefore there is no difference in the inward mystery, from which the whole power and property of the Sacraments is to be estimated. The difference which remains, lies in the outward ceremony, which is the least portion, the greater part depending upon the promise and the thing sealed. Whence it may be inferred that whatever belongs to circumcision, belongs also to Baptism, except the difference of the visible ceremony. And indeed the truth herein is palpable. For as circumcision, because it was a sort of badge to the Jews, whereby they were assured of their being adopted into the people and family of God, was their first entrance into the Church, now also we are dedicated by Baptism to God, being enrolled among His people, and vowing, in our turn, obedience to His name." Institt. 4, 16, 3. 4. To this place Calvin elsewhere refers (4, 14, 21.) for a full explanation of the comparative value of circumcision and Baptism; it presents then his deliberate views: and yet in reality it leaves not a vestige of the character of a Sacrament: "Circumcision," Calvin says, "is the same as Baptism," because it was the seal of the covenant, wherein God promised to be Abraham's God, because it figured mortification which God would afterwards effect, and because in that same covenant Christ was promised. It could hardly be said more plainly that neither Baptism nor circumcision conferred any grace, but that they sealed the covenant, wherein God promised to confer grace. And with this agrees Calvin's view of regeneration, which is, according to him, not a new birth, but a new state of being,—not an act, like our natural birth, single in itself, though followed by a life corresponding to it, if the individual does not again die through sin,— but a habit, continually receiving accessions of growth throughout life. (Institt. 3, 3, 9. 4, 16, 31.) So other writers of his school consider actual (as opposed to initial) regeneration to extend over the whole of life. (See above, p. 151). Regeneration is thus confounded with sanctification, nor can any peculiar property be pointed out, which is in this system left to regeneration as distinct from sanctification. And so Calvin's theory, that under both dispensations regeneration was imparted, (and that by means of the covenant, which was sealed by Baptism, or circumcision,) becomes correct, since sanctification was so imparted: but thereby also all the mysterious character of Baptism is effaced, and its working brought down to a matter of experiment and human reasoning.
Calvin, as was said, repeats elsewhere this equality of Circumcision and Baptism, and that in the strongest terms. "We may not ascribe to our Baptism more than the Apostle ascribes to circumcision, when he calls it 'the seal of the righteousness of faith.' Whatever then is set forth to us now in the Sacraments, that the Jews also received in theirs,—Christ, namely, with His spiritual riches. Whatever power ours have, that they felt in theirs, namely, that they were seals of the Divine good-will towards them, to the hope of eternal salvation." (Institt. 4. 14. 23) He admits ('concedimus') indeed, that they so far differ, that "whereas both attest that the Fatherly good-will of God in Christ, and the grace of the Holy Spirit are offered to us, ours do so more plainly and fully. In both Christ is set forth; but in these more largely and fully, according to the general difference of the Old and New Testament." (Ib. § ult.) What language this for a Christian, to concede that his Saviour's Sacraments set Him forth more clearly than the rites of the Old Testament!
Note (L), page 132.
The several indications of the Reformed theory of the Sacraments are, 1st. The comparison of them, and assertion of their equality, with the signs of the Old Testament. 2d.—with the written word, as being a means of grace of the like kind. 3d. The mention of contemplation, our faith being kindled by the sight of them, and the like. 4th. Their being memorials, whereby God retains and renews the memory of His benefits shown to man. 5th. Their being the means of consecrating, setting apart, a peculiar people, and showing what He required of them. 6th. That God operates in, not by, or through His ordinance. 7th. The mention of the elect, as alone partaking of them. 8th. Denial of the value of the words of consecration. 9th. Rejection of the idea of the Sacraments being bound, enclosed, &c. in the signs. 10th. Participation of Christ in and out of the Sacraments altogether the same. 11th. Ground of Baptism of Infants, that they are in the covenant, not because Christ commanded it. 12th. Sacraments not "efficacious" signs. 13th. The Body of Christ not said to be given in the Lord's Supper. 14th. Sacraments signify; or, 15th. attest grace only.
These are so many indications of the theory of Zuingli, or portions of the statements wherewith he opposed the doctrine of the Church. It is not to be supposed that they would all occur in each confession of faith, since some of the Reformed Confessions touch very briefly upon the subject; whereas some of this language belongs to the controversial, not to the positive statements of this school. In some confessions also expressions are purposely generalized.
1. They occur most fully in what is called the first Helvetic Confession, A.D. 1566, published in the name of all the Helvetic Churches, except Basle and Neufchatel (Augusti Diss. Hist, de lib. Eccl. Reform. Symbol, p. 622.) The whole language of this is Zuinglian; and in it all the above "Notes of a Reformed Confession" occur, except the 12th; and yet, remarkably enough, in employing the word "efficacia" of the Sacraments, it stands alone of all the Confessions of this school; a singular instance of, what any one who carefully examines the language of the "Reformed" writers must observe, that they will use the words of the Church's theory, although not in the meaning of the Church. In this instance, it sounds well that they "do not approve of the doctrine of those, who speak of Sacraments as common, and not hallowed or efficacious signs." But "hallowed" (sanctificata), with which "efficacious" is joined as equivalent, and as opposed to common signs, is explained in the same chapter (c. xix.) to mean only "separated from common, and set apart to sacred uses." And it is well known, that none of the authors of this Confession believed the Sacraments to be, in the Church's sense, "efficacious signs," i.e. instruments of imparting the grace which they signified (see above, p. 117). So again, a little above, it is said, "water, bread, and wine, are not common (vulgaria), but sacred signs;" thereby showing, that all which they meant to assert, by denying that they were common, was, that they were consecrated signs or symbols.
2. In the 2d Helvetic Confession (1536), which was compiled for the express purpose of conciliating the Lutherans, and afterwards withdrawn, as ineffectual for this end (Augusti. l.c. pp. 622. 626.), it is said well, in general terms, that "the Sacraments, or symbols of hidden things, do not consist of bare signs, but of the signs and things together. For in Baptism, water is the sign, but the thing, regeneration and adoption into the people of God. In the Eucharist, the bread and wine are the signs; but the thing is the communication of the body of Christ, salvation, which had been obtained, and remission of sins; which are received by faith, as the signs are by the body." "And the whole fruit of the Sacrament," it is added, "is in the thing." This last expression already prepares us to find an unwarranted separation of the sign from the thing signified; and so when we come to the explanation of the connexion between them, which is the point wherein the doctrines of the "Reformed" and the Church part, we find only (§ 21.) that "the washing of regeneration is exhibited or set forth by God to His elect, by the visible sign, through the ministry of the Church;" and the participation of the Body and Blood of Christ is placed entirely in the contemplation of Him through faith. "For this cause," they say, (§ 22,) "we often use this sacred food, because, through its suggestion (monitu) gazing on the death and blood of the Crucified by the eyes of faith, and meditating on our salvation, not without a taste of heavenly life, and a true sense of life eternal, we are refreshed by this spiritual, life-giving, and most inward (intimo) food, with ineffable sweetness; and we exult with unutterable joy for having found life, and we are poured out altogether, and with our whole strength, in giving thanks for this so wonderful benefit of Christ towards us." "Wherefore," they subjoin, "it is very contrary to our deserts that some think that we ascribe too little to the sacred symbols. For they are holy and venerable things, as being instituted by Christ, the great High Priest; and, received in their proper way, as we have said, they set forth the things signified, give testimony of what has been done, represent things so lofty, and by a certain wonderful analogy of the things signified, throw a most clear light upon those mysteries. Moreover they give hold and aid to faith itself, and like an oath bind the person initiated. So holily do we esteem the sacred symbols! But the power and virtue of the Vivifier and Sanctifier we ascribe continually to Him who is the Life, to whom be praise for ever and ever. Amen." In which words, if they had referred to our union with Christ, out of the Sacraments, they had indeed been so far insufficient, in that they omit the original source, through which that union is bestowed, but the union itself they describe most fervently (perhaps too exclusively dwelling upon feeling); but as describing the value of the Sacrament of Christ's Body and Blood, they are utterly inadequate, since they express nothing but the emotions of the human soul, as acted upon by the external sight and suggestion of the sacred elements. Here also much of the language is Zuinglian (see above, p. 101), as indeed the authors were friends or disciples of Zuingli. One can then but look upon it as an attempt, by high and glowing terms, to conceal from themselves, or from others, the loss of the Catholic doctrine.
3. The same must be said of the Scotch Confession; for although it speaks in the strongest terms of our "eating the body and drinking the blood of Jesus Christ, in the right use of the Lord's Supper;" yet it also declares, of "all the benefits of that Supper, that they are not given to us then only;" so that not only do we, by virtue of the Sacraments, remain united with Christ (which is of course true), but also have the same gifts, and in the same degree, imparted to us, out of the use of the Sacraments as in them. And this agrees with the way wherein the union with Christ in the Sacraments is explained in this Confession (see above, p. 113, note), viz. through contemplation of Christ in heaven by faith. To the same result tends what they say (Art. xxii.) of the right administration of the Sacraments; for they affirm, not only that the Papists have mingled much that is corrupt with the Sacraments (which is miserably true), but they deny that the Sacraments themselves in that church are the "right Sacraments of Jesus Christ;" and assert, that "on that account they avoid fellowship with it in the participation of their Sacraments." And that, not only on account of the human additions, (which in Baptism relate to things altogether indifferent, as the use of salt, or oil, or the like,) but also because the ends of the Sacraments are not rightly set forth. Whence also they require, in order to constitute a legitimate minister (and this they regard as essential to the Sacraments), that they should be such as "are lawfully elected in any church, and appointed to the preaching of the word, and in whose mouth God hath put some word of exhortation." Which is conformable indeed to the doctrine of Beza, that "the explanation of the Sacraments is the main part of them," (see Note M,) but not with that of the Ancient Church. Of Baptism again, the Scotch Confession says, that "thereby we are engraffed into Christ Jesus, and are made partakers of His righteousness, whereby all our sins are covered and remitted;" and such an expression, "thereby," occurs only in the Gallican Confession besides, of all the Reformed Churches. Yet the natural force of this expression is neutralized by the definition of a Sacrament, to which this statement is appended viz. "that the Sacraments both of the Old and New Testaments were not only to distinguish His people from those without the covenant, but also to exercise the faith of His sons; and that the participation of the same Sacraments sealed in their hearts the certainty of His promise, and of that most blessed conjunction, union, and society, which the elect have with their head, Jesus Christ." Wherein the "sealing" must, in accordance with the known theory of this school, and with the mention of the elect, (see above, p. 111, sqq.) refer to the outward attestation of God's promises, as opposed to the conveying (as instruments) inward grace.
And so again, when they say that "Christ alone renders the Sacraments efficacious to us;" this is opposed to their being "efficacious signs of grace;" i.e. they mean that the Sacraments do not, as Christ's institution, convey grace to us, but that Christ employs them as outward means to kindle our faith, whereby we become united with Him.
4. The third Helvetic Confession, written at Basle, and promulgated A.D. 1532, at Mulhaiisen, the first place in the Helvetic confederacy which embraced the Reformation (Augusti. l.c. p. 627), was originally composed by Oswald Myconius. He, although living in the midst of the reformed school, and for 20 years chief pastor at Basle, is said to have adhered to the ancient doctrine of the Sacraments, and on account of these tenets to have received no degree from the university of Basle, and at last to have resigned his office (Melchior Adamus, p. 220). His Confession however, does not express the ancient view clearly or unambiguously. He says, indeed, that "in the Lord's Supper, together with the bread and wine of the Lord, the true body and true blood of Christ, are set forth (præfiguratur), and exhibited[359] to us through the minister of the Church;" yet he speculates needlessly in denying that "the natural, true, and substantial (substantiale) body of Christ, born of the Virgin Mary, which suffered for us, and ascended into heaven, is inclosed in the bread and cup of the Lord." In setting forth also our participation of Christ, he leaves it undecided whether this be bestowed through the Sacraments. "We firmly believe that Christ Himself is the food of believing souls to eternal life, and that our souls, through true faith in Christ crucified, receive, as meat and drink, (cibari et potari) the flesh and blood of Christ, so that we, as the members of His body, as our only Head, live in Him, and He in us:" wherein the language, compared with that of the reformed school, would rather lead one to think, that the instrumentality of the Sacraments, as effectual signs, is excluded; at least there is no one word in the whole Confession which implies it; and the turn of expression seems rather contrived to set forth the benefits of true faith in Christ, tacitly dropping the agency of the Sacraments. Further, the language of his friends Œcolampadius and Zuingli appears in his first description of the Sacraments. "In this same Church are employed Sacraments, namely, Baptism in the entrance into the Church; and the Lord's Supper, at its due time in afterlife, to testify faith and brotherly love, as was promised in Baptism." And afterwards—"We confess that the Lord Jesus instituted His Holy Supper to commemorate His Holy Passion with thanksgiving, to show the Lord's death, and to testify Christian charity and unity with true faith." Yet his confession was still thought too little "reformed;" and in the glosses added (A.D. 1581, after the death of Myconius), it is asserted, that "Christ is indeed present in His holy supper to all true believers, but sacramentally, and by the commemoration of faith, which lifts up the mind of man to the heavens, and does not draw down Christ, according to His human nature, from the right hand of God." By this addition a Zuinglian sense is given to all the ambiguous language of the Confession, and the presence of Christ is confined to the mere operation of the human mind. It is also very illustrative of the meaning of the term "sacramentally" in the "reformed" writers, and throws light upon the Scotch Confession. With regard to Myconius himself (as far as one may judge from his single work,) he appears to have suffered from his intercourse with Zuingli and Œcolampadius; and while he contended for a more literal acceptation of the words "This is my Body," still to have had no, or scarcely any, higher notions of the benefits of the Sacraments, than the rest of the reformed school:—a warning, first, against familiar intercourse with those who hold low notions on any point of Christian truth, as hkely imperceptibly to influence us, even while we think ourselves opposed to them; and, secondly, to take heed, not only that we hold the truth, but how we hold it, lest we deceive ourselves, and some subtle theory rob us of all but the name.
5, 6. The Gallic and Belgic confessions again state, "that through these outward signs God operates by the virtue of His Holy Spirit," and the Gallic says that "that bread and that wine, which is given to us in the supper, really becomes our spiritual food," (than which nothing could seem a plainer declaration; but this is done away with, immediately, by the addition) "inasmuch, namely, as they set, as it were before our eyes, that the flesh of Christ is our food and His blood our drink." In like manner, although we are said "to be engraffed in the body of Christ by Baptism," yet Baptism is said to be "given us to attest our adoption," (i.e. not to effect or convey it,) as is the Lord's Supper to "attest our union with Christ." The Belgic, similarly, declares that the Sacraments were added to the word of the Gospel, in order the more efficaciously to exhibit to our outward senses, as well what He declares to us outwardly in His word, as what He operates inwardly in our hearts, and thus renders so much the more assured the salvation which He communicates to us." Whereby the Sacraments become a mere picture.
7. Even the Hungarian confession, (which is altogether pure Zuinglianism, and in the highest degree offensive for its rationalist tone and the coarse language in which it inveighs against the Lutheran doctrine,) even this "rejects their phrensy, who teach that the Lord's Supper is an empty sign, or that the memory only of absent Christ is cherished by these signs. For as Christ is 'Amen, faithful witness, true, truth and life,' so the Lord's supper is the memory (memoria) of the present and infinite and eternal Son of God, the Only Begotten of the Father, who offers and exhibits to the elect, who apprehend the Gospel of Christ with true faith, Himself and His good things, His flesh and His blood, i.e. living bread and heavenly food, through (ope) the Holy Spirit, by the word of the promise of grace." Yet of the elements it says, that the "bread and wine are, in regard to their object, the memory of the death [..] Christ, i.e. signs admonishing of the death of Christ:" and the "presence of Christ in His sacramental institution, or in the pouring out of the Holy Spirit upon the elect," is paralleled as a presence of the like kind, with that "by the union with the λόγος, or, in His promise by the word and faith, or in His dispensatorial office or intercession for the elect." Through this whole confession there runs a strange, uncouth, barbarous strain of theology, a compound of Sabellianism, Mysticism, Rationalism, such as no where else perhaps occurs in any other document, of any body of men, professing Christianity. Yet they too keep the received protest, that "the Sacraments are not empty signs," &c. (Of it Augusti says, l.c. p. 635, "the Czingerians [whose confession it is] are among all Calvinists the most vehement, and in the article of the Lord's Supper they utter so many harsh and odious things, that they can be approved of by neither party, Zuinglians or Lutherans," which is a mild sentence).
8. The Genevan Catechism expresses so precisely the doctrine and language of Calvin, that to dwell upon its statements would only be to repeat what has been already said (p. 108 sqq.): the Catechumen is told, not only that he "must not cling to the visible signs, to obtain health from them, nor imagine any power of conferring grace attached or inclosed in them, but that the sign is to be accounted as a sort of prop, whereby we may be directed straight to Christ, to seek health and solid happiness from Him." He is told that "infants have the efficacy and substance of Baptism (so to speak) (before they are baptized), so that a manifest injustice would be done them, if the sign (Baptism), which is inferior to the reality, were denied them." It is remarkable again that in this catechism, the Sacraments are incidentally called "secondary instruments," which is a sort of approach to the ancient language of the Church, although Calvin strongly denied their being "instruments" or "channels" in the Church's sense.
9. In the confessions of the German "reformed" Church, or rather Churches, there is a great difference. The Heidelberg Catechism (as would be certain from its chief author, Z. Ursinus, with whom was united Caspar Olivianus, Augusti p. 649.) expresses (as far as it goes,) the Calvinist or Zuinglian doctrine: the use of the Sacraments is confined to teaching. "Whereby," it is asked with respect to each, "art thou admonished and confirmed in Baptism [or the Lord's Supper] that thou art a partaker of that one only sacrifice of Christ?" The answer, in each case, amounts to this, that they are "pledges to assure us of those benefits;" but, that "they are means whereby we receive the same," there is no indication, but the contrary.
10. In the Confessio Tetrapolitana (that presented to Charles V. at the Diet of Augsburgh, 1530, by the cities of Strasburgh, Constance, Memmingen, Linden, and composed by Bucer), there is, on the contrary, scarcely a trace of the "reformed" language. It is said that "by Baptism we are buried into the death of Christ, put on Christ; that it is the washing of regeneration; washes away sins, saves us;" and of the Lord's Supper, that "as often as this supper is renewed, as He instituted it. He vouchsafes to give through the Sacraments His true body and true blood, truly to be eaten and drunk, for the meat and drink of our souls, whereby they may be nourished to eternal life, so that henceforth He may live and remain in them, and they in Him, to be raised up at the last day by Him to a new and eternal life, according to those His words of eternal truth; 'Take and eat, this my body,' &c." This positive statement is qualified by no subsequent explanation: it is essentially opposed to the "reformed" theory, in that it states that Christ gives His true body to be eaten and drunk through His Sacraments," a statement which recurs in our own articles and catechism, but in no part of the Zuinglian or Calvinistic school. They may hold that the Holy Spirit by kindling our faith makes us to partake of that Body and Blood; but no where, that Christ gives it to us. The participation is, according to them, through our faith, not by Christ's direct gift. It is added indeed in the confession, "that the Clergy with all diligence recalled the minds of their people from all contention and curious disquisition, to that which alone profits, and was alone regarded by Christ our Saviour, viz. that being fed by Him, we may live in Him and by Him, a life well-pleasing unto God, holy, and therefore everlasting also and blessed; and be all among ourselves one bread, one body, "who partake of that one bread in the Holy Supper;" and again that "they teach and exhort, that laying aside all comments and false glosses of men, each should with simple faith embrace these words of the Lord; and casting away all doubt and vacillation should give up his mind to this meaning, and lastly receive the Sacraments themselves, to the life-giving nourishment of their souls, and the thankful commemoration of so great a benefit." This seems piously and wisely said; for this "embracing with simple faith the words of the Lord, and rejecting the false comments of men," is not here intended (as is so often meant by language not dissimilar) to veil real and essential difterence of opinion; but rather, having fully embraced the doctrine of the Church Catholic, the author would dissuade from unprofitable speculations, as to the mode in which that doctrine was to be reconciled to human intellect. This reconcilement was the original object of Transubstantiation, which, to those who could once accept it, left no further difficulty as to the manner in which we partake of Christ's Body and Blood; this has been, in their opposite way, the error of the Lutherans and of the Zuinglians or Calvinists: the old Church, on the contrary, and with her, our own, and Bucer, in this place, assert simply the fact, that "Christ doth really and indeed give His true Body to the faithful in His Supper," and therewith closes up the question, without asking "How can these things be?"
11. The Bohemian Confession remarkably coincides with Bucer's, both in its firm adherence to Scriptural truth, and in the absence of speculation: "They believe," it is said, "that the Sacrament of the Eucharist, is an administration instituted by Christ, and set forth first to the Apostles, and through them, by His grace and goodness, to the whole Church, for the common use and health of all. Also, that it is to be believed with the heart and confessed with the mouth, that the Bread of the Lord's Supper is the true Body of Christ, which was given for us, and the cup His true Blood, which was shed for us for the remission of sins, as Christ the Lord plainly saith, this is my body, this is my blood: also, that these words of Christ, whereby Himself pronounces the bread to be His Body, and the wine, specifically to be His Blood, no one should add, mingle, or take away from them; but believe in simplicity these words of Christ, neither declining to the right hand nor to the left." Accordingly the Bohemians receive the words of Christ with a simple faith, which none of the Zuinglians or Calvinists do; as, indeed, this, their language, would not be adopted by those schools. In consequence, we find, that, besides the attacks of the Papists, they had, as they state in their confession, to endure those of others, who "entitled this confession of faith on the Lord's Supper the dregs of popery, and themselves marked with the character of the beast, idolaters, Anti-Christs, or that whore of which John prophesies in the Apocalypse,"—language, which, obviously, never would have been applied to any Zuinglian or Calvinistic school. Accordingly, it is also said, that at the time of the Communion, "the ministers repeating the words of the Lord's Supper, exhort the people itself to this faith, to believe, namely, the presence of the Body of Christ." Of the Sacraments generally, also, they state, (Art. 11.) that "they are (generally) necessary to salvation, and that, by them the faithful are made partakers of the merits of Christ." Baptism, again, (Art, 12.) is said to be a "salutary ministration, instituted by Christ, and added to the Gospel, whereby (i.e., by Baptism), He purifies, cleanses, and sanctifies His Church, in His own death and blood, as Paul says," Eph. v. 27. Here, again, the declarations of Scripture are simply received, without any of the glosses of the school of Zuingli; as, also, the Baptism of infants is founded upon Matt, xxviii. 19, whereas, all the "reformed" school found it on a deduction from Gen. xvii. 10. Again, the Bohemians take literally the Apostle's saying, that "whoever were baptized, had been buried thereby with Christ into His death, that he may walk henceforth in newness of life." "But if," (they add) "from the preaching of the Gospel, they neither obtain a full confidence in God, nor love towards all those, who, by the washing of regeneration, are engraffed into Christ, nor walk worthy of their calling, watching diligently to please God, nor place their hope of eternal life in Him only; they show that they have received in vain, the grace of Baptism, and the name of the Holy Trinity, which was invoked over them. Which Scripture threatens that God will one day terribly avenge." In place of this salutary terror, the Reformed school would have denied that such an one had ever received that grace.
The Three Confessions of the Reformed Church in Brandenburg and Prussia, the Confessio Marchica, Colloquium Lipsiacum, and the Declaratio Thoruniensis, speak less explicitly and simply, and they all labour under the disadvantage of having been written to express, not merely the views of their authors, but—the first, to justify them out of the writings of Luther; the second, to approximate, as much as may be, to Luther's views; and the third is yet further embarrassed by an attempt to conciliate the Roman Catholics, which necessarily gives them a constrained and artificial appearance. They seem, however, to express a belief in an actual communication of the Body and Blood of Christ in the Lord's Supper, and so also of regeneration in Baptism, and thus to be opposed to the Zuingli-Calvinist doctrines of mere attestation or sealing.
12. The Confessio Marchica interprets Tit. iii. 5, and Joh. iii. 5, in their plain and obvious sense; and of the Lord's Supper it is said, that "therein, the outward signs, bread and wine, and the true Body of Christ, which was given to death for us, and His Holy Blood, which was shed for us at the foot of the Holy Cross, are both present together, on account of the Sacramental union, in this holy action, and are together given (ausgespendet) and taken;" "as (they add, however,) the spiritual manna or heavenly food of the word is spiritually received, and in Christ's kingdom (which is not of this world) all is spiritual. Thus, also, we believe, that the Holy Supper is also a spiritual food of souls, whereby they are refreshed, strengthened, and, (together with the body, whereunto they are joined,) are fed and preserved to immortality. We abide, therefore, (without adding aught,) by the holy words of consecration, that the bread is the true Body of Christ, and the wine His Holy Blood, sacramentally, in the way wherein God has consecrated and ordained the Holy Sacraments of the Old and New Testaments, to be visible and true signs of invisible grace; and the Lord Christ Himself shows, that the Holy Supper is a sign [?] of the new covenant, ["My blood of the New Covenant," so the Evangelists] yet not an empty and void sign, instituted for the remembrance of Christ, or, as the Apostle Paul explains," (1 Cor. xi. 26) "for a constant remembrance and announcement of His death, that it may be a memorial, uniting consolation, thanks, and love."
13. In the Leipzig Colloquy, both Lutherans and Reformed agreed on "the necessity of Baptism, as a means ordained for our salvation; and though the grace of God work not salvation through Baptism, ex opere operato, nor yet merely through the outward washing or sprinkling, yet, that it takes place by virtue of the word of consecration and promise, by the medium of Baptism." With regard to the Lord's Supper, they agreed also, that, "besides the outward elements of bread and wine, there was present not only the virtue and the efficacy or the bare signs of the Body and Blood, but that the true essential Body which was given for us, and the true essential Blood of Jesus Christ Himself, which was shed for us, are truly and presentially given distributed and received, by virtue of the sacramental union, which consists not in the bare signifying, nor yet in the bare sealing, but in the entire, unseparated distribution of the earthly element, and the true Body and Blood of Jesus Christ: yet, that this Sacramental union does not take place distinct from the action commanded by Christ, [the actual reception] but only in the same. Further, that, also, in the spiritual feeding, not only the virtue, benefit, and efficacy, but the essence and substance of the Body and Blood of Jesus Christ Himself, in the use of the Holy Supper, which takes place here upon earth, is fed upon, that is, is spiritually through true faith eaten and drunk, and that this spiritual feeding is in the highest degree necessary for the blessed use of the venerable supper. Further, that in the Sacramental partaking, the earthly elements and the Body and Blood of Christ, are partaken of at the same time, together and unitedly (mit-einander)." The Reformed confessed also, "that, through the medium of the consecrated bread and wine, the true Body and Blood of Christ, was presentially received, yet not with the mouth, but only through faith, whereby the Body and Blood of the Lord is spiritually united with those who worthily receive the Lord's Supper; but to the unworthy, the Body and the Blood is only offered, but on account of their unbelief, not partaken or received by them, but rejected and repelled by them."
14. In the Declaration of Thorun, the Zuingli-Calvinist view so far appears, that Baptism is confined to "infants born within the Church," or adults, who made profession of their "faith," as, also, that it is said to be administered in order to signify and attest internal absolution from or remission of sin by the blood of Christ: but it is opposed to that view, in that it is added, "and at the same time to commence renovation or regeneration through the Spirit." On the Lord's Supper, it states, that "both the earthly and heavenly parts are in a different way, but each most truly, really and presentially exhibited to us, viz., the earthly, in a natural, corporeal, earthly manner; the heavenly, in a spiritual, mystical, and heavenly, which, being inscrutable to sense and reason, we hold by faith only, whereby we apprehend the words of promise and the thing itself promised, viz. Christ crucified, with all His benefits" So much a Zuinglian, perhaps, might admit, affixing his own meaning to the words; but then they proceed to state, (as in the Leipzig Colloquy) that the "Sacramental union, consisted, not in the bare signifying, nor only in the sealing, but also in that united and simultaneous exhibition and communicating of the earthly and heavenly part of the Sacrament, although of diverse manners." Again, in half Zuinglian language, they add, "we by no means maintain that they are bare, empty, void signs, but rather exhibiting that, which they signify and seal;" but then they subjoin instantly, "as most certain means and efficacious instruments, whereby the Body and Blood of Christ, and even Christ Himself, with all His benefits, is exhibited or offered to all who partake of the element, but is conferred, given, to believers, and received by them as a salutary and life-giving food of the soul." They say again, that "not only the virtue, efficacy, operation, or benefits of Christ, are presented and communicated to us, but especially, the very substance of the Body and Blood of Christ, or that very Victim, who was given for the life of the world, and slain upon the Cross, so that by a faithful communion of this Victim, and by the union with Christ Himself, we are, consequently, partakers of the merits and benefits obtained by His sacrifice, and as He in us, so we remain in Him;" which, again, is opposed to the Zuingli-Calvinist view.
This use of the Reformed language, though not in the sense of the Reformed, may help to explain a remarkable phenomenon in our own Articles. Whereas, namely, the language of our Baptismal service, is entirely formed upon the model of the ancient Church, and altogether pure from modern theories (see Note M); and again, our Catechism says, that by the "inward and Spiritual grace of Baptism," "we being by nature born in sin, and the children of wrath, are made children of grace;" both which statements the Zuingli Calvinist denied; much of the language of our Article on Baptism resembles that of the Calvinist school, although none of the peculiar marks of that school, above-enumerated, (p. 225,) occur in it. It is clear, that our Articles also, do not express that view, inasmuch as they assert, (Art. 25,) "that the Sacraments of Christ are effectual signs of grace, by the which He doth work invisibly in us, and doth not only quicken, but also strengthen and confirm our faith in Him;" and, again, (Art. 26.) that "they be effectual because of Christ's institution and promise;" and, again, in the Article on Baptism itself, they do not say only, that it "is a sign of regeneration or the New Birth," but "an instrument whereby they that receive Baptism rightly are grafted into the Church:" this being precisely the point to which the Zuingli-Calvinist school objects: (for, of course, no mere outward engraffing into a visible church, is spoken of, and an engraffing into the Church or Body of Christ, is an engraffing into Christ; for the Scripture speaks of engraffing into Him, not into His Body only, and we know of no engraffing into His Body, distinct from an engraffing into Himself;)—and, again, our Church grounds the Baptism of infants on "the institution of Christ," (as does the Bohemian and the ancient church) not (with the Zuinglians) on the promise to Abraham and circumcision. Again, of the Lord's Supper, it is said, that "the Body of Christ is given, taken, and eaten," which (as has indeed been lately pointed out with much clearness, Knox's Remains, t. ii. p. 170 sqq.) could not be consistently, and, as we have just seen, never is used in the Calvinist school. What similarity, then, does exist, is to be accounted for, in part, from the familiar intercourse of Edward the VIth.'s Reformers with foreign divines, whence they adopted, in part, their language, avoiding, however, such as expressed their characteristic views. There were also (as has been pointed out to me) at that time, hopes that the reformed Churches might be saved from abandoning Episcopacy, and meet the English view of the doctrine of the Sacraments. Thus far the use of their language must be looked upon as a concession; to which (though fruitless as all the like attempts have ever been) there was, in the then absence of this experience, much temptation. And the Reformers, under Elizabeth (while in framing our Thirty-Nine Articles, they altered some things,) retained the old Article on Baptism, as being sufficiently guarded from Zuinglianism, although not so much after the form of the Ancient Church as our Baptismal service.
Another point to be observed is, that our Reformers view the Christian dispensation, as it is a system brought into the world, and as it stands in relation to the creatures to whom it is proposed, to their previous state, moral condition, capacities, &c. in the abstract, rather than as it applies to us individually, who have been educated in it. For, thus, the character of the dispensation in itself, as a whole, could best be exhibited. Thus the article on "Works before Justification," (Art. 13.) is of much importance in clearing the system, by setting forth the relation of the Christian system to man's natural state and his unassisted powers: but to us, individually, who have been born within it, and who never were left to our mere natural powers, (having had original sin remitted to us through Baptism in our infancy, and having then been justified and cleansed from all sin, and had the grace of Christ given, and fresh supplies pledged to us,) the statement of the character of "works done before justification and the grace of Christ," does not, of course, directly apply. It describes to us the state from which we were delivered by being brought into Christ's fold; and so ministers one cause of abundant gratitude, but does not speak of a state in which we ever actually were. In like manner, our Article on Baptism describes (in parts) the relation of that gift to one, upon whom it should be conferred as a fully intelligent recipient, (not to us as infants) for in such recipients only could "faith be confirmed and grace increased:" and this is done, because the character and power of Baptism in itself, is most conspicuously and plainly seen, when brought in contact with man's full-grown powers, and capacities, and sins. But it would be a manifest perversion of the language of the Article, to apply it, in a Zuinglian sense, to infants, as if sin had already been remitted, "faith" already given, and "grace" already bestowed.
The relative prominency of the Zuinglian views, in the several confessions, may be, to a degree, seen, in the following table, referring to the several marks of that theory mentioned at the beginning of this note (p. 225).
1. Comparison with the signs of the Old Test. | 2. With the written word. | 3. Efficacy explained by reference to sight, &c. | 4. As Memorials. | 5. Means of consecrating a people |
---|---|---|---|---|
Helv. 1566.… | …… | ……… | …… | …… |
Helv. 1536 | ……… | |||
Helv. 1532 | ……marg. | …… | ||
Gall. | …… | ……… | ||
Scot.…… | …… | …… | ||
Belg.…… | …… | ……… | …… | |
Hungar.… | …… | |||
Heidelb.… | …… | ……… | …… | |
Genev.… | …… | ……… | ||
Bohem.… |
6. Grace given in, not in fact by or through; see above, p. 97, &c. | 7. To the elect only. | 8. Denial of efficacy of words of consecration. | 9. Grace not inclosed in the Sacraments. | 10. Participation in and out of the Sacraments the same. |
---|---|---|---|---|
Helv. 1566…… | … | ……… | ……… | ……… |
Helv. 1536 | … | |||
Helv. 1532…… | ||||
Gall.……… | ||||
Scot.……… | … | ……… | ||
Genev.(see above p.230) | … | ……… | ||
Hungar……… | … | ……… | ……… | |
Heidelb.……… | ……… | |||
Belg. (see above p.230) | ……… | ……… |
11. Children to be baptized, because, in the covenant, not by virtue of Christ's commands. | 12. Sacraments not said to be efficacia. | 13. Body of Christ not said to be given in the Supper. | 14. Effect of Sacraments to signify grace. | 15. Sacrament attestation. |
---|---|---|---|---|
Helv. 1566 …… | in a different sense | ……… | ……… | ……… |
Helv. 1536 …… | …………… | ……… | ……… | |
Helv. 1532 | ………… | ……… | ||
Gall.……… | …………… | doubtful. | ……… | |
Scot.……… | …………… | ……… | ||
Belg.……… | …………… | ……… | ||
Hungar.…… | …………… | ……… | ||
Heidelb.…… | …………… | ……… | ……… | |
Genev.……… | …………… | ……… |
Note (M), on page 133.
The following synopsis of Baptismal Liturgies will probably impress upon the reader (at least they did upon myself) several distinct feelings.—First, a feeling of Catholicity and of oneness in the Ancient Church, (in that, amid verbal variations, it all spoke so much the same language,) and the conviction of the Apostolicity of traditions, which (without such absolute uniformity, as would imply subsequent imitation), are still alike in all but words. It is very affecting to find, in an old formulary of a far distant Church, the very same form of words with which our Church has guided our own devotions; to light, for instance, upon the incidental notices of the same renunciation of the "devil, and his works, and his pomps," as preceding Baptism, in the ancient Churches of Africa Proper, Jerusalem, Asia Minor, Egypt, Italy, and the East and West; and to hear this renunciation, as we now make it, urged by Tertullian, but two centuries after Christ, as an incitement to Christian holiness.—Secondly, The conviction of the greater warmth and cheeringness of the formularies of the ancient Church, and so of our own, in comparison with the timid, didactic forms of the Reformed Church.—Thirdly, Increased conviction of the deep piety of those who, without precisely copying, so transfused the spirit of the ancient liturgies into our own.—Fourthly, Thankfulness to God for having guided our Reformers to these more ancient sources.
With regard to the different liturgies quoted—for the more ancient, I thought it quite sufficient to avail myself of the valuable researches of Palmer's Origines Liturgicæ, vol. ii. p. 166, sqq.; from which accordingly I have taken the prayers quoted, only translating them, that the comparison might be the easier. The originals may be seen in his important and interesting work. In one or two places only I have added an original authority.
The first prayer, however, in the Baptismal Service had hitherto been traced up only to the Baptismal Service of Hermann, Archbishop of Cologne, (see Archbishop Lawrence's Bampton Lectures, pp. 443, sqq.) It was then a source of great interest to discover that this also was derived from the Ancient Church. It stands, namely, as the third prayer in the Baptismal Service which Luther translated from the old Latin, A.D. 1523. In this service, also, Luther[360] professedly "made scarcely any alterations, for fear of alarming tender consciences, as if he were introducing a new Baptism, or thought that those before baptized had not been baptized rightly." The alterations, which he then wished to make, he introduced in the next year, 1524, in the "Baptismal Book, revised by D. Martin Luther," which has been incorporated into the lesser Catechism, in some editions. The changes consist, for the most part, in the omission of certain ceremonies, as the anointing the child with the holy oil, the forming the cross a second time upon him, placing in his hand the light, as an emblem of that which he was to keep burning till the Bridegroom come, and some others. The prayer accompanying the very ancient rite of Exorcism is also shortened, and two other prayers omitted. The prayer in question remains unaltered. In the Baptismal Liturgy drawn up in Latin under the name of Hermann, Archbishop of Cologne (A.D. 1535), it again appears, yet not borrowed from this of Luther, but from one previously in use at Nürnberg ("forma Norimbergensis, exemplum Nor." Melancthon, Ep. p. 546, quoted by Abp Laurence l.c.); so that we have a second instance of its use previous to the Reformation, and it probably was employed by the whole German portion of the Church Catholic. Hermann's Baptismal Service is part only of a larger work, bearing the title, "Nostra Hermanni, D. g. Archiep. Coloniensis et Princ. Electoris, &c., simplex et pia deliberatio qua ratione Christiana et in verbo Dei fundata Reformatio Doctrinse, administrationis divinorum Sacramentorum, ceremoniarum, totiusque curæ animarum, et aliorum Ministeriorum Ecclesiasticorum, apud eos qui nostræ pastorali curæ commendati sint, &c." And it was (as in its title it professes) a reformation of existing Services, (until a General Council should make some regulations for the whole Church,) not a new Service. The basis (as before said) was the form of Nürnberg. On this, however, Bucer, who was mainly engaged in revising the Baptismal Service, had engrafted long exhortations and expositions of Baptism, herein falling in too much with the modern "reformed" notion of making the service a method of instruction, and (as the case might be) a corrective either of supposed superstitions, or of undervaluing of the Sacraments, or (in some "reformed" services) of inculcating their view of the whole scheme of Christian doctrine. He had also brought in some of the modern theology, as, the parallel of the rite of Circumcision with the sacrament of Baptism; the resting the right of our children to Baptism, in part, upon the promise to Abraham, and the like; into which persons had been betrayed by looking out for arguments and analogies against the Anabaptists, instead of adhering simply to the practice of the early Church. Bucer's prolixity herein is incidentally noticed by Melancthon, his fellow-worker in the task of revising the Cologne Service. (See Melancthon's Ep. quoted by Abp. Laurence, l.c.)
The comparison of our own Baptismal Service with Archbishop Hermann's is the more interesting, as illustrating the proceedings and principles of the reformers of our Services. It seems certain that they had this work before them. It had been translated into English the year (1547) before the reformation of our Prayer book, and most probably with the very view of preparing men's minds for that reformation. It had been received with great interest, an amended edition being published in the next year (1548), in which the reformation of our Services was completed. The order also of Edward VI.'s First Book agrees in some respects with Hermann's only; as, in that the Lord's Prayer and the Belief occur after the exhortation upon the Gospel. One prayer, however, only, (the thanksgiving after the Gospel, "Almighty and Everlasting God, our Heavenly Father," &c.) was admitted from Hermann's Service, which has not been traced up to the Ancient Church; and this prayer is primitive in its character, whether it be actually so or no. The excrescences, on the other hand, abovementioned, which Bucer had introduced, are lopped off unsparingly. Nothing is admitted in the way of argument, or proof, or teaching, as it is more or less in Hermann's or Bucer's Service. When any thing has been adopted from it, it has been in the way of hint, not by directly incorporating it. With the exception of the above prayer, nothing can be directly identified with the Service of Hermann. The few and earnest opening words in our Service are substituted for a long exposition occupying several pages; the exhortation following upon the Gospel is enlarged, perhaps, from one in the corresponding place in Hermann; and the address to the god-parents before the Interrogatories, condensed perhaps from a more diffuse one, which followed upon them in Hermann. This is the whole which is not derived from the early Church; and here also it is remarkable, how all exhortation is in our Service made subservient to prayer, and to the direct object of the Sacrament, instead of being, as in the reformed Services, something for its own sake. It is observable also, that parts of our Service were derived directly from the old Church, without the intervention of the German form; as the whole between the Interrogatories and the Act of Baptism.
The influence of Bucer upon our Service was negative rather than positive. When the First Book of Edward VI. was framed, he had not yet arrived in England; and in the revision which took place in Edward's reign, his objections were listened to, but the alterations were introduced without his knowledge, and independently of him. In the Baptismal Service the alterations were few, but they were all unhappily of the same character. It was the omission of certain significant rites, whereby either man's natural condition before Baptism, or the pridleges bestowed through Baptism, and the duties consequent thereon, were set before men's eyes. These were, that the first part of the Service was performed at the church-door, and the child then taken by the priest's hand, and brought towards the font, a blessing being pronounced over it, in token that, being naturally aliens, they were now "received into the holy household" of God. Again, they were anointed, in token that they needed not regeneration only, but the continual supply of "that blessed unction from above," which "is comfort, life, and fire of love." Again, the "white vestment" was given them, in token of the "innocence then given them by God," and as an admonition to keep their baptismal purity unstained. Lastly, there was the rite of exorcism, wherein, before Baptism, Satan was commanded, in the name of the blessed Trinity, to depart from the child, and "not to presume hereafter to exercise any tyranny over it." We have lost by all these omissions. Men are impressed, by these visible actions, far more than they are aware, or wish to acknowledge. Two points especially were thereby vividly inculcated, which men seem now almost wholly to have lost sight of—the power of our enemy, Satan, and the might of our Blessed Redeemer. Men now believe His power and willingness to receive again His lost sheep, who have strayed; but those who would claim to themselves the privilege of most extolling His readiness to save, seem practically to disbelieve, that after He has by Baptism brought His lambs into His fold. He ever saves any of them from falling again altogether into the power of the lion; and so they are left unguarded, as if to endeavour to rescue them were a hopeless effort. This had probably been much mitigated, or perhaps prevented, had the rites of the Ancient Church been retained.
The reviewers of our Service could not foresee the evils of their omission, and were to blame only in this, that they forsook the practice of the primitive Church, in compliance with the objections of a modern reformer. Much, doubtless, might be speciously said beforehand against the rite of exorcism previous to Baptism; that it was unnecessary, since Baptism, translating us into the kingdom of God's dear Son, did in itself remove us from the power of the prince of darkness. Nor did the primitive Church doubt this; still she retained the practice, and thereby attested her conviction that it did serve some further ends. Although not a sacrament, and therefore no direct means of grace, the exorcism was a vivid practical recognition of the state of bondage to Satan, out of which we were delivered. It impressed upon men's minds, far more powerfully than any words can do, the fearful penalty of their natural corruption, the power of the "prince of this world," his unceasing enmity against his delivered captives and slaves, and the great peril of again falling under his dominion. As often as a new member was brought over into Christ's fold, it set before men's eyes the greatness of our deliverance, the might and yet powerlessness of our enemy, the danger of being again led captive by him. It could not have been foreseen that men's sense of all these would be weakened by our omission of this rite; and yet this has unquestionably contributed much to the present unbelief in the Scripture statements of a personal unseen enemy of men's souls, and the indifference with which they view, or hear of, his visible agents and servants, and the fearlessness with which they allow themselves to sink gradually into his grasp, as if they could again free themselves from it when they would. It has also fortified the present self-deification of man, whereby, as he virtually makes himself his own god, so he would make himself his own only enemy. And so the very recognition of man's natural corruption or infirmity becomes a source of pride, in that he thereby escapes from recognizing what he would yet more abhor—the humiliation of acknowledging that he is not his own master, but that if not engaged in the free active service of God, he is in a state of bondage—not to his own passions simply, but to a master more powerful, and as yet more wicked, than himself, whom, unless God frees him, he must obey, here and for ever. Against this scriptural statement man's pride revolts. It would have been impugned doubtless by unbelief, even had the rite of exorcism been retained (as it has in Germany and Denmark); and so will every doctrine: but it would not so easily have been forgotten, which is the far greater evil. It has doubtless been a device of Satan, to persuade men that this expulsion of himself was unnecessary; he has thereby secured a more undisputed possession. Whether the rite can again be restored in our Church, without greater evil, God only knoweth; or whether it be not irrevocably forfeited; but this is certain, that, until it be restored, we shall have much more occasion to warn our flocks of the devices and power of him against whom they have to contend.
The rite is retained in the several branches of the Eastern Church, as in the Lutheran portion of the Western, Denmark and Norway, as well as Germany; so that herein we have needlessly forsaken the practice of the larger portion of the present as well as of the primitive Church.
It stands happily as an insulated case.
Some other few sentences were also omitted, at the revision of our Service in Edward's time; but the earnest prayer that sin, extinct by Baptism, may not again reign, and for the final perseverance of the baptized, is so in accordance with the other parts of the Service, that their omission cannot have proceeded from any change in doctrine. We have then great reason to bless God, that while those, to whom our Church was then committed, were in some things inclined to yield, almost all our Baptismal Service was retained, and that, unadulterated by modern notions. Some things were omitted, which, if retained, had been a blessing to us; but all our Service which remained came from the pure sources of Christian antiquity.
Of other modern Liturgies, to which I have at the moment access, those of the Lutheran Church appear to be formed on the same model as Luther's; that of Denmark and Norway, which was reformed by Bugenhagius in 1537, and submitted to Luther, adheres very closely to the old form. It was translated into Latin in 1706, by Pet. Terpager, whose preface contains notices of many modern Liturgies. That of Mechlenburg (revidirte Kirchen-Ordnung), revised under John Albert, and Ulrich Dukes of Mechlenburg, is also formed upon the old basis, with the addition only of some addresses, which are more didactic and longer than our own. The Lutheran Church, as well as ourselves, diminished the number of ceremonies, although they retained that of giving the "white vestment" to the new-baptized, with prayer, as well as exorcism: they also, as well as ourselves, engraffed short addresses, (of which, however, there were some models in the ancient Church,) but the substance of the Service in both was essentially primitive and Cathollc.
In the "reformed school," on the contrary, almost all is new; the account which Beza gives of the Genevan[361], in answer to a Popish antagonist, sufficiently represents them all. "According to the formula of our Churches, a sponsor of unblamed life and doctrine is always employed. The minister of the word asks of him before the congregation of the Church, whether he wish to offer for baptism the child whom he holds in his arms. He answers distinctly such is his mind. A short and clear explanation of the institution and use of Baptism out of the word of God, is subjoined, which is recited from writing in the vulgar tongue, so that all may hear and understand. Prayers are added that God would, by His Holy Spirit, seal in the child the adoption and ablution, which by outward Baptism is, as it were submitted to our eyes. Afterward the same minister demands of the sponsor whether he will undertake that the child, when of a fit age, shall be instructed in the Christian doctrine and the Apostles' creed, which he recites distinctly. He assents to this doctrine, and undertakes to do so. The requisition is repeated, and he is again required to undertake that the child shall be instructed in the whole doctrine of both Testaments and the law of God, whereof an epitome is then recited out of Matthew's Gospel, according to the precepts of which he may so form his life, as to dedicate himself entirely to the glory of God in Jesus Christ, and the edification of his neighbours. He undertakes this, and then at last the child is baptized with pure water in the name of the Father, the Son, and Holy Ghost."
"Now then, Baldwin," asks Beza, "what blamest thou here? We, you see, have restored the principal part of Baptism, i.e. the explanation of the doctrine of it, which was taken away by your Catholics." The Reformed Baptismal Liturgies are strikingly characterized, and as strikingly condemned, by this triumphant appeal of Beza to his antagonist, "we have restored the principal part of Baptism, viz. the explanation of the doctrine of it!" Not then our blessed Saviour's institution, not His words of blessing, not even the prayers of the congregation, are the "principal part of Baptism," "but the explanation of the doctrine of it." And, indeed, how should it be otherwise, when Baptism was considered no longer an instrument of grace, but a mere outward seal of mercies already bestowed?
With this statement of Beza, the very outward form of the "reformed" Liturgies remarkably coincides: in the French, the "explanation" is three times as long as the rest of the service: in the old Scotch (borrowed from the English at Geneva), the "exposition" occupies seven pages; an explanation of the Creed (which is alone added to the Genevan form, and is the only variation from it) fifteen and a half, the Baptismal prayers one only! in the Belgic the exposition equals the length of all the rest of the Service; in the Scotch directory (1645) it is longer; and so in the rest.
On the other hand the meagreness as well as coldness of the actual Baptismal Service will probably strike every one accustomed, through the use of our own, to the fulness, and depth, and warmth of the Services of the Ancient Church.
Prayer, as Beza implies, was become, in the Reformed Churches, a secondary part of the office; and so again, in most of their offices, there is but one short prayer previous to the act of Baptism, and a thanksgiving subsequently. The Lord's prayer is omitted in the Liturgies of Zurich, Belgium, Alasco's, and the Scotch Directory, 1645. In the Zurich and Polanus' form there is no thanksgiving, and but a brief wish added; in the Belgian a thanksgiving was but occasionally offered; in that of the French Protestants and Geneva, there was neither. From an account given of the Scotch Service in 1644, as an ensample to their brethren in England, the mere skeleton of the old form appears to have been retained.
In other respects, it is remarkable to observe the gradual dereliction of the ancient forms; thus, Zuingli retained from the old Church the introductory portion of the prayer, although he changed its doctrinal portion, as no longer believing it; and so also (from him) the Belgic Service; the latter Services dropped even this portion of the ancient form, and so became entirely new. They were consistent in so doing; for this portion of the prayer referred to the Scriptural types of Baptism, when God had delivered His chosen by water; and these naturally had no place in their system. Again, Zuingli (with the old Church) retained the Gospel; Alasco and Polanus incorporated it into their introductory exhortation as a sort of proof of Infant Baptism; the Belgian, Genevese, French, the old Scotch, and the modern Directory altogether omitted it; and again consistently, on their system, since Baptism in their sight occupied the place of circumcision only. A corresponding variation is observable even in the ceremonies of Baptism, in that Zuingli's parting benediction implies that the rite of investing the new-baptized person with a white garment was yet retained by him; by the rest it is abandoned: so that in three several instances Zuingli appears to have been the least innovator in the Reformed Churches.
Another slight but remarkable peculiarity in the outward arrangements of the Reformed Churches, is the place which Baptism occupies, as an appendage to the preaching of the word, in that it is placed after the sermon, whereas our Church, by prescribing that it should take place after the second lesson, connects it with the promises of God in the Gospel itself. This regulation is also mentioned by Beza[362]:
"This is the custom of our Churches, that always after the sermon (and there is a sermon every day, and on Lord's days it is four times repeated in the city in the several Churches) infants to be baptized are brought to the pulpits, and are baptized in the congregation of the whole Church." Baptism occupies the same position in the Scotch Liturgy.
In the following Tables, the ancient Liturgies, and those upon the ancient model, are arranged according to their age: that of Edward the Sixth's reign is inserted, as in some places adhering, in words also, more closely to the ancient model: those of Denmark, Norway, and Mecklenburg, in order to show the general agreement of this portion of the Church, amidst occasional variation.
The Services, on the "reformed" scheme, are arranged according to the several modifications of that scheme; they, as well as the more ancient, are framed upon one and the same model, and agree together, for the most part, almost in words, only that (as was before observed, pp.96, 110. sqq. 132), since the writers wished to persuade themselves that their views did not derogate from Baptism, they sometimes speak of its benefits, although whenever they explain what they thereby mean, it is the sealing only of benefits before received.
The Liturgy (if one may so call it) of Zuingli was adopted almost verbally in Belgium; the Service framed by Calvin was introduced by Beza into France, and was adopted, with scarcely verbal alterations, by Polanus among the German refugees settled at Glastonbury in Edward Sixth's time, and afterwards at Frankfort and Strasburg: the form of the English at Geneva, afterwards adopted in Scotland, is longer in its exposition, and briefer in its prayer, than that of Calvin; but in substance is borrowed from it. The Scotch Directory (1645) contains no form at all, but only a sketch of the topics to be used in exposition, prayer, or thanksgiving, expressing throughout the theory invented by Zuingli and transmitted through Calvin. The Service which Alasco drew up for the German Protestants settled under Edward VI. in London is more peculiar in character, and appears to be independent: he seems to have acted, more than the rest, upon the view of rendering Baptism beneficial to the by-standers, since on this theory it had ceased to be so to the child. Hence, instead of the ordinary "reformed" expression that "Baptism belonged not only to us but to our seed," it sets forth that it "belongs not only to their children, but to the whole Church;" the prayer, accordingly, previous to the Baptism of the child, is mainly for "those who look on the ministry of Baptism," and hardly and but incidentally for the child.
As in the Confessions then, so also in the Services, there are two forms of language, Calvin speaking out much less openly than Zuingli. Hence the French Liturgy was even claimed by some who held that "regeneration was ordinarily conferred on Elect Infants at Baptism," as expressing their views (ap. Witsius de efficacia Baptismi § 42.) One would hardly argue against this with Witsius (l.c. § 49.) that "those accounted as the most consummate Theologians in France understood it otherwise, and held that elect infants were only visibly initiated by Baptism, and had previously received saving grace:" for it is well known how readily such a document is bent to persons' previous views, as even our own Service has been held not to contain the doctrine of Baptismal regeneration. But, in truth, enough of the language of Beza's service is sufficiently clear, although he speaks ambiguously of the "fruit and efficacy of Baptism." For one who prays God to confirm the grace given to the child about to be baptized, "and to declare that He is His God and Saviour," evidently must hold that this grace was given before the use of the Sacrament, which is the "reformed" theory, as opposed to the doctrine of the old Church, that grace was given through it. Thus in our own Baptismal service, we pray God to "increase in us the knowledge of His grace, and to confirm evemore our faith in Him," but for our Infants, we pray not for "confirmation of grace," but that "they may be born again, and made heirs of everlasting "salvation."
The "reformed" Liturgies have been taken from the following sources,—that of Zurich from Zuingli's works, t. ii. f. 98, where he quotes it to show "how dexterously they had omitted every thing which could not be proved by Scripture." A translation was published in English from the Helvetian, A. D. 1693, "Liturgia Tigurina." Compared with the Latin of Zuingli, it is wordy but not unfaithful; but it contains an exhortation, which, as being omitted by Zuingli, must have been introduced after Zuingli's times, though quite in his spirit. The Zurich Service was also published in Latin in the "Ritus Ecclesiæ Tigurinæ," by Lavater, 1702. The Liturgy of Belgium, (which in verbal differences agrees most with the Ritus Eccl. Tigur.) is taken from the "Enchiridion for Young Preachers," published by authority, 1645. For the French Reformed Liturgy two editions have been consulted—"La forme des prières Ecclésiastiques," 1552, and that appended to the version of the Psalms by Beza and Marot (Pseaumes de David, &c.) It is also found in Calvin's works, t. viii. p. 32, sqq. with such variations only, as would be occasioned by a free translation into Latin. These have been marked underneath by the letter C. That of Polanus is entitled "Liturgia Sacra, seu Ritus Ministerii et Ecclesiæ Peregrinorum profugorum propter Evangelium Christi Argentinæ, 1551;" and the 2d edition, "Liturgia, &c. peregrinorum Francofordiæ ad Mænum Ed. 2, Francof. 1558." There is no variation between them. There is much mention of this Liturgy in Strype Eccl. Mem. vol. ii. B. 1, c. 29; and life of Cranmer, B. 2, c. 23. For the Scotch there have been used, an old edition, entitled "the CL Psalms of David in English metre, with the form of Prayers, and ministration of the Sacraments, &c. used in the Church of Scotland: Edinburgh, 1575:" also, "The New Booke of Common Prayer, according to the forme of the Kirk of Scotland, our brethren in faith and covenant, (London) 1644;" and the modern "Directory." Alasco published his under the title "Forma ac ratio tota Ecclesiastici ministerii, potissimum pro Germanorum ecclesia, instituta Londini in Anglia per pientissimum Principem Angliæ, &c. Regem Edvardum VI &c." Francofurti, 1535.
In the following Tables I have placed, 1st, A, our present Baptismal Service, as compared with the Ancient Church, and contrasted with the "Reformed" School. 2dly, B, Such prayers and rites as formed part of our primitive Service, but were omitted at the instigation of Bucer, and corresponding, or the same prayers, in the ancient Liturgies. 3dly, C. A prayer in Hermann's Liturgy, as a specimen of the way in which the restorers of our Liturgy avoided the modern theology.
(A.)
ENGLISH BAPTISMAL LITURGY,
COMPARED WITH THOSE OF THE
ANCIENT CHURCH, AND LITURGIES ON THE ANCIENT MODEL;
AND CONTRASTED WITH
THOSE DERIVED FROM ZUINGLI AND CALVIN.
ANCIENT CHURCH | CHURCHES GENERALLY UPON THE ANCIENT MODEL. | REFORMED CHURCHES Topics enlarged and their Prefaces (see p. 245) abridged. | ||||||||
Ancient Gallic. | Hermann, Abp. of Cologne—Exhortation to God-parents. | Edward VI. First Book. 1649. | Mecklenburg, (abridged). | Zurich, (entire.) | Belgium. | Geneva—French Protestant. Polanus. | English at Geneva, and old Scotch. | Scotch—1644. | Scotch Directory. | Alsace. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. a. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. | No. 7.–9. | No. 10. | No. 11. | No. 12. | No. 13. |
Very dear Brethren, let us, in the venerable office of the present mystery, humbly pray our Almighty Creator and Restorer, who deigned to repair, through grace, the glories of our nature, lost through sin, that He will transfuse efficacy into these waters, and by the presence of the Majesty of the Trinity, give power to effect the most holy regeneration; that he will break in pieces the head of the dragon upon these waters; and that the debtors being buried with Christ by Baptism, the likeness of death may so take place here, that the perishing may be saved, and death may only be felt in the destruction here on earth (i.e. the death of the body through Jesus Christ. | Beloved in Christ Jesus, we hear daily out of the word of God, and learn by our own experience, that all we from the fall of Adam are conceived and born in sins; that we are guilty of the wrath of God, and damned through the sin of Adam, except we be delivered by the death and merits of the Son of God, Christ Jesu our only Saviour. Seeing then that these present infants be born in the same estate and condition that we are, it is plain that they also be spotted with original sin and disease, and that they be subject to eternal death and damnation. But God the Father, according to His unspeakable gentleness and mercy towards mankind, sent His Son to save the world. Wherefore He will also, that these infants be saved. He bare the sins of all the world, and delivered and saved, as well the infants, as us which be of greater age, from sins, death, the devil, and everlasting damnation, who would have the infants to be offered unto Him, that He might give them His blessing (Matt. xix.) Wherefore, according to your Christian godliness, take this child, bring him unto Christ, and offer him with your godly prayers, that he may obtain of Him remission of his sins, and be removed into the kingdom of grace, being delivered from the tyranny of Satan; and that he may be made heir of eternal salvation. |
Dear beloved—Forasmuch as all men be conceived and born in sin, and that* no man born in sin can enter into the kingdom of God, except he be regenerate, and born anew of water and of the Holy Ghost; I beseech you to call upon God the Father,through our Lord Jesus Christ, that of His bounteous mercy He will grant to this child that thing which by nature he cannot have, that is to say, that he may be baptized with water and the Holy Ghost, and received into Christ's holy church, and be made a lively member of the same.
Present English. *Our Saviour Christ saith, None, &c.
No. 3. b. |
Born in Adam's sin, and under God's wrath, unless we had been helped by the only-begotten Son of God, our Lord Jesus Christ. This present child polluted with the same sin; but God the Father promised mercy and pity to the whole world, and so to the child as well as the old, through His Son Christ (Hermann). Who also bore sins of the whole world, and redeemed the poor children no less, yea, just as much as the elder, from sin, death, and damnation, and hath made them blessed, and commanded that they should be brought to Him, that they may be blessed; whom also He most graciously receives, and promises them the kingdom of heaven. Wherefore do ye, out of Christian love, take compassion on this present poor infant; present it to the Lord Christ, and for forgiveness of sins, and help to pray that it may be received into the kingdom of grace and bliss; in undoubting confidence that our dear Lord Jesus Christ will of His great mercy accept of you this your work of love towards the poor infant, and will also assuredly hear your prayer, since he himself commanded them to bring the young children unto Him, and has promised to receive them into His kingdom. |
Think that our Lord and Saviour wishes all men to come to the knowledge of the truth, through the only Mediator Jesus Christ, who gave Himself for many, for their redemption. He wills also that our prayers for each other may be united, that we may come to the unity of the faith and knowledge of the Son of God our Redeemer. Let us pray then the Lord, that He would impart faith to this infant, and that outward Baptism may become inwardly, by the Holy Spirit, a healthful water. Pray then thus. | Doctrine of Baptism: 1. our natural impurity, taught us the dipping.—2. Washing away our sins by Jesus Christ.—3. Duty of our obedience. And although our infants do not receive these things, yet they are not to be repressed from Baptism since they are being unconsciously partakers of damnation in Adam, and on that cause are received in Christ into favour; as God Himself testifieth of Abraham, the father of all that believe and therefore also of us and of our children, Gen. xvii., and Peter, Acts ii. 39. For this cause God commanded the Jews to be circumcised which was the sign of the covenant and of the righteousness of faith; as Christ also embraced them and laid His hand on them, and blessed them, Mark x. Since, therefore Baptism has succeeded to circumcision, infants, as heirs of the kingdom of God and of His covenant, are to be initiated in Baptism and parents are bound to inform their children more fully of these things when they be grown up. Therefore, that we may celebrate this divine ordinance of His glory, our consolation, and the edification of the Church, let us call upon His holy in these words. |
1. Doctrine. 2. Benefits of Baptism. 3. How imparted. 4. To whom. |
Begins with topics No. 7–9. § 4. then "Baptism not absolutely necessary;" appointed for the instruction of our dull senses. Not that we think any such virtue or power to be included in the visible water or outward action, (for many have been baptized, and yet never inwardly purged); but that our Saviour Christ will effectually work in the hearts of his elect, in time convenient, all that is meant by the same. And this Scripture calleth our regeneration, stands chiefly in two points. Then topics, §§ 1 and 2,—comfort to parents (as Calvin above, p. 126), in bringing them up holily, provide instruction, &c. | The minister, declaring and setting forth God's love, desires them to take notice and consider the great charge that is laid upon them; telling them thus; Dearly beloved. It is your duty that the children be instructed in all doctrine necessary; but chiefly to rest upon the justice of Christ alone, and to abhor and flee all superstition, papistry, and idolatry. And to the intent that we may be assured that you, the father and the surety, consent to the performance thereof, declare here before God and the face of the congregation, the sum of that faith wherein ye believe, and will instruct this child. I believe in God, &c. |
Baptism instituted by Christ, a seal of the covenant. The water representeth Christ's blood; baptizing signifieth the cleansing thereby. Promise made to believers and their seed; children have a right to the seal, not less under Gospel than law, the covenant being the same, the grace more abundant. Christ admitted children into His presence. Children, by Baptism, received into the visible Church; distinguished from the world; united with believers. The baptized renounce the devil, the world, and flesh,and pledged to fight against it. Infants are Christians, federally holy before Baptism, and therefore baptized. Inward grace not tied to the very moment of administration; fruit and power of it through the whole course of life. Outward Baptism not absolutely necessary to salvation, if not despised. Admonitions to those present, and to parents, &c. |
Baptism to be observed, according to Christ's institution, and not profaned. Two things ordained by Christ: water, and that in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, i.e. that we should testify and declare that the whole Church of Christ, with all its members, belongs, without doubt, to God the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, being wholly cleansed by the blood of Christ the Lord; so that in it, with all its members, no spot or wrinkle can be seen before God's sight. To show, then, that we do baptize all members of our Church by this our ministry, in the name of Christ, we attest this before you, as to Baptism: 1. That Baptism belongs not only to these children, but to the whole Catholic Church (1 Cor. Eph.); so that it attests that the whole of it, with all its members every where, is accounted, by God the Father, altogether clean for Christ's sake; whence it belongs to us, as much as to the infants; and we ought to think of the greatness of God's mercy therein (Rom., Eph. ii., 1 Cor. xv.), and show it forth by true repentance—not to be idle spectators of Baptism; for such profane it, and despise Christ. 2. This cleansing, which Baptism designates, not our own (Tit. iii.), we are impure (Eph. ii. Ps. li.) 3. This cleansing, the free gift of Christ (Tit. iii.), by the communion of righteousness, merits and glory gained by Him in our flesh: this, the highest mystery of Baptism, designated by that outward washing of water; hence Baptism called washing of regeneration and of remission of sins. The baptized are attested to have put on Christ, and are baptized into the death of Christ (Tit. iii., Acts ix., Gal. iii., Rom. vi.) 4. Corresponding gratitude required from us; and if we fall, not to despond, but to look at our cleansing through Christ's blood, which Baptism attests. Then the topics 7–9. § 4. Gen. xvii. children not to be excluded from Baptism on account of the infirmity born with them; for if they were to be excluded, because they cannot believe, and repent of this infirmity, much more adults, since it is not every one of these who can really and truly believe and repent. The rest as in § 4. |
BAPTISMAL PRAYER BEFORE THE GOSPEL
ANCIENT CHURCH. | CHURCHES UPON THE ANCIENT MODEL. | REFORMED CHURCHES | ||||||||||
Ancient Gothic. | Ancient Latin form translated by Luther 1523, unaltered in his revision, 1524. | Hermann, Archbishop of Cologne. | Danish, Norwegian. | Edward VI. May, 1549. | English present [..] | Zurich. | Belgium. | Protestants of France and Geneva. | Polanus. | English at Geneva and Scotch. | Scotch, 1644. | Alasco. |
1. | 2. | 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. | No. 7. | No. 8. | No 9. | No. 10. | No. 11. | No. 12. | No. 14. |
O God, who didst sanctify the fount of Jordan for the salvation of souls, let the Angel of Thy blessing descend upon these waters, that Thy servants being bedewed therewith, may receive remission of sins; and being born again of water and the Holy Spirit may serve Thee devotedly forever, thro' Jesus Christ. | Almighty everlasting God, who†, according to Thy strict1 judgment didst2 condemn the unbelieving world through the flood, and didst preserve3 faithful Noah, the 8th person, of Thy4 great mercy, and didst drown in the red sea5 obstinate Pharaoh† with all his† and leddest6 Thy people Israel dry through7, that this laver of Thy Holy Baptism hereafter might be signified8, and didst hallow and consecrate with the Baptism of9 Thy beloved child our Lord Jesu Christ, Jordan and10 all waters to a11 blessed flood and abundant washing away of sins: We pray Thee through the same Thy exceeding mercy look favourably upon this12 N, and endue him with a right faith in the Spirit, that13 all which was born in Him of Adam, and which he has added thereto, may be drowned and14 destroyed by this15 wholesome flood, and he, being separated from the number of the16 unbelieving, may be kept dry and safe in the holy ark of17 Christendom, may serve Thy name always fervent in Spirit, joyful in hope, that he may be worthy to attain18 Thy promise of everlasting life with all19 believers through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. | — everlasting † in old time 1 terrible 2 destroy the wicked 3 only the family of godly Noah, 8 souls 4 unspeakable 5 hardened † the king of the Egyptians † army and warlike power 6 causedst to pass over with dry feet 7 and wouldst shadow in them Holy Baptism the laver of regeneration 8 furthermore who didst consecrate 9 Thy son Christ Jesu 10 other waters 11 holy dipping =abundant=away =the same 12 infant and give him true faith, and Thy Holy 13 whatsoever filth he has taken of Adam, it 14 put away in him 15 holy 16 ungodly = dry and 17 the Church, and may confess and sanctify Thy name with a lusty and fervent spirit, and serve Thy kingdom = be worthy 18 the promises 19 the ungodly |
1 most strict 2 destroy by the avenging water of the 3 Thy faithful servant, with seven others 4 immense 6 as Hermann 7 whereby thou shadowest 9 Thy beloved Son 10 a bath which should most abundantly wash away 11 infinite 17 =be worthy |
Almighty and everlasting God, which of Thy justice didst destroy by floods of water the whole world for sin, except eight persons, whom of Thy mercy (the same time) thou didst save in the ark: and when thou didst drown in the Red Sea wicked King Pharaoh with all his army, yet (at the same time) thou didst1 lead Thy people the children of Israel safely through the midst thereof, whereby thou didst figure the washing of Thy Holy Baptism, and by the Baptism of Thy well-beloved Son Jesus Christ† Thou didst sanctify the flood Jordan and all other waters to2 this mystical washing away of sin. We beseech Thee (for Thine infinite mercies) that Thou wilt mercifully look upon these children† and sanctify them with3 thy Holy Ghost, that4 by this wholesome laver of regeneration whatsoever sin is in them maybe washed clean away, that they being delivered from Thy wrath may be received into the ark of Christ's Church, and so saved from perishing: and being fervent in spirit, stedfast in faith, joyful through hope, rooted in charity, may5 ever serve Thee and finally attain to everlasting life, with all Thy holy and chosen people. This grant us, we beseech Thee, for Jesus Christ's sake our Lord. | =which eight persons 1who of Thy great mercy didst save Noah and his family in the ark from perishing in water, also did safely lead the children of Israel, Thy people, through the Red Sea figuring thereby Thy holy †in the river Jordan =the flood Jordan and all other 2the †wash him 3the 4=by [..] away =so saved from perishing =fervent in spirit 5so pass [..] waves of this troublesome world, that finally we may come to the land of everlasting life, there to reign with Thee, world without end |
Almighty everlasting God, who by [..]st and worthy [..]nent didst des[..] the whole un[..] ving2 and un[..] world by the [..]s of the flood, and didst meanwhile in thine3 unspeakably great mercy and kindness4 deliver Noah a preacher of righteousness, with [..] souls; who [..] pleased to [..] the ungodly [..] hardened Pharoah with all his [..] in the depths of the Red Sea, but [..]ake Israel Thy [..]n, to go over dry-shod, representing to us by these [..]s, as by a type, [..]ver of Baptism, [..] us supplicants, [..]ring Thy mer[..] and graciously and mildly look upon this Thy servant at the light of [..] into his mind6, [..] being incorporated into Thy Son, and buried with Him [..] death, he may [..] together with [..] to a new life, [..]ein bearing [..]ully the cross [..] upon him, he [..] continue to [..] in His steps, [..] cleave to Him [..] with true faith, [..] hope, and ar[..] fire of charity, [..] that for Thy name's sake, he may [..]ar to lose, with [..]aken mind, this [..] which is more [..] to be called [..] and at the [..] judgment of [..] Son, may ap[..] without dread [..]gh the same [..] Lord Jesus Christ, Thine only begotten Son, who liveth and reigneth Thee, with the [..] of the Holy Ghost, one God. Amen. | 1 severe 2 impenitent 3 great 4 preserve faithful Noah the 8th person; who didst swallow up the blinded 5whereby Baptism denoted. 6 and by Thy Holy Spirit engraff Him, into Thy Son that he may be buried, &c. as in Zuingli. |
[Old Preface omitted.] 1 holy, Calv. 2 showing, C. 3 by, C. 4 bears the guilt, C. 5 besides, C. 6 capable of judging and understanding, C. 7 acknowledge 8 a Saviour, giving that praise and glory, so that he may. |
* that thou wilt vouchsafe to him Thy goodwill and favour, and wilt confirm with him Thy covenant, who is born, &c. † to be his God. ‡ and as often as he shall ask Thee, obtain free remission of his sins. Let him then be engraffed in our Lord Jesus Christ. § that as, according to Thy command, he is washed by us, with this symbol of baptism, and adopted, so Thy Holy Spirit working in him, he may receive the fruit of all those good things which we have learnt from the Gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ, are sealed in us in this sacrament. |
Almighty and everlasting God, who, of Thine infinite mercy, hast promised unto us that Thou wilt be not only our God, but also the God and Father of our children—we beseech Thee, that, as Thou hast vouchsafed to call us to be partakers of this Thy great mercy in the fellowship of faith, so it may please Thee to sanctify with Thy Spirit, and to receive unto the number of Thy children this infant, whom we shall baptize this day, according to Thy word, to the end that he, coming to perfect age, may confess Thee, the only true God, and whom Thou has sent, Jesus Christ, and so serve Him, and be profitable to His Church in the whole course of his life, that, after this life ended, he may be brought as a lively member of His body, unto the full fruition of Thy joys in heaven. | After reciting the Creed, the minister explaineth these Articles,—going through each particular branch thereof,—which, being ended, the minister, kneeling down, prays for the child, concluding,—Our Father, &c.
Scotch Directory. The minister is to pray to this, or the like effect:No. 13. That the Lord, who hath not left us as strangers without the covenant of promise, but called us to the privileges of His ordinances—would graciously vouchsafe to sanctify and bless His own ordinance of baptism at this time. That he would join the inward baptism of His Spirit with the outward baptism of water:-make this baptism to the infant a seal of adoption, remission of sin, regeneration, and eternal life, and all other promises of the covenant of grace. That the child may be planted into the likeness of the death and resurrection of Christ; and that, the body of sin being destroyed in him, he may serve God in newness of life all his days. |
Almighty eternal God, merciful Father, who hast taught us, through Thy only begotten Son our Lord Jesus Christ to call upon Thee in all our actions, and hast promised that Thou wilt always hear us when we call upon Thee in His name; regard, we beseech Thee, this congregation of Thy family, which looketh on the ministry of this Baptism instituted by Thy Son, and upon this our seed which is offered to Thee in the midsth of the assembly of our Church: whose God Thou hast moreover attested Thyself to be, and whom Thou vouchsafest to embrace and to bless; and so govern us and our seed by Thy Holy Spirit, that we may daily advance in true and salutary knowledge of Thee and ourselves, that all may know that Thou art the God of us and of our seed, and that we with our seed are Thy people in Christ Jesus Thy beloved Son, with Whom and with Thy Holy Spirit, Thou livest and reignest, deus triunus, blessed for ever. |
SECOND COLLECT.
ANCIENT CHURCH. | CHURCHES UPON THE ANCIENT MODEL. | ||||
Sarisb. Eborac. (in two MSS. above 900 years old.) | Old German ap. Luther. 1523. | Revised, 1524. Danish, Mecklenburgh. | Hermann, Abp. of Cologne. | Edward VI. First Book. | Reformed Churches |
No. l. | No. 2. | No. 3—5. | No. 6. | No. 7. | No. 8. |
O God, the everliving1 protection of all who ask, the2 deliverance of those who pray, the3 peace of tnose who ask, the life of them that believe, the resurrection of the dead; I pray Thee in behalf of this Thy servant, N, who4, seeking the gift of Thy Baptism, longs to attain eternal5 mercy by spiritual regeneration: Accept him. Lord; and, since6 Thou hast deigned to say, Ask, and ye shall receive, seek, and ye shall find, knock, and it shall be opened7; so give now* the reward to him that asketh, and open the door to him that knocketh, that8 by the eternal benediction of the9 heavenly washing, he may receive the promised10 kingdoms of Thy gift11; who livest and reignest with God the Father, in the unity of the Holy Spirit, God throughout all ages. Amen. | 1consolation 2deliverer 3and peace 4seeks 5Thy eternal 6as thou hast said 7unto you 8he may obtain 9this heavenly 10kingdom 11through Christ our Lord. |
O Almighty Everlasting God, Father of our Lord Jesus Christ ["the deliverance—the dead" omitted.] No. 4—Danish. * that good thing thy gifts. he may obtain an eternal benediction in this heavenly washing, and that Thy kingdom, which Thou hast solemnly promised to us all, for our Lord Jesus Christ's sake. No. 5. |
As Luther, 1524. I call Thee upon this (N) for whom the Church requireth the Sacrament of Baptism, and therein Thy grace and spiritual regeneration; and as Thou saidst, The same. |
Almighty and Immortal God, the aid of all that need, the helper of all that flee to Thee for succour, &c. (as in Ancient.) We call upon Thee for this infant, that he, coming to Thy Holy Baptism, may receive remission of his sins by spiritual regeneration. Receive him, O Lord, as Thou hast promised by Thy well-beloved Son, saying, &c. so give now unto us, that ask, &c. open* thy gate, &c. that this infant may enjoy, &c. of thy and may come to the eternal kingdom, which Thou hast promised by Christ our Lord. * "the"—present form. |
No further prayer before Baptism. |
Gospel St. Matthew. |
St. Mark. | St. Mark. | |||
No. 9. Zurich. St. Mark. |
No. 10. Gospel incorporated into preface, as proof of Infant Baptism. |
No. 11. Belg. Geneva, French, Scotch. Gospel dropped. |
EXHORTATION TO CONGREGATION UPON THE WORDS OF THE GOSPEL AND PRAYER.
CHURCHES UPON THE ANCIENT MODEL. | REFORMED CHURCH. | ||||
Danish. | Hermann. | English. | Mecklenburg. | Zurich. | The rest. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. |
Which one blessing we do wish to pray for | Believe these words & this deed of our Lord Jesu Christ, upon them, and doubt not but that He will receive your children so, [in holy baptism,] and embrace them with the arms of His mercy, and give them the blessing of eternal life, and the everlasting communion of the kingdom of God. The same Lord and our Saviour Jesus Christ, confirm and increase in us your faith. Amen. And be ye most certain, that our Lord Jesus Christ will mercifully regard this work of your charity graciously towards this infant, and that He will hear your prayers, as He Himself thus commanded with His word, "Suffer the little ones," &c. Introd. exhort. |
Doubt ye not, therefore, but earnestly believe that He will likewise favourably receive this present infant &c. and make him partaker of His everlasting kingdom. Wherefore, we, being thus persuaded of the goodwill of our heavenly Father towards this infant, declared by His Son Jesus Christ, and, nothing doubting, but that He favourably alloweth this charitable work of ours in bringing this infant to holy baptism, let us faithfully and devoutly give thanks unto Him, and say Edward VI., First Book, adds, "the prayer which the Lord Himself taught, and in declaration of our faith, let us also recite the articles contained in our creed." |
If there is time and the child not washed. 2. We hear of the greatest comfort for us and our children, that Christ, the Son of God, our Lord, was so very ready and willing, graciously to help the children which were brought to Him, and all of us, who come to Him, so that He is even displeased, when they would have hindered, and not faithfully brought them to Him. 3. He cares most mercifully for them, and takes their part most lovingly, as if He were, (as indeed He is,) their natural Father, takes them in His arms, embraces them, saves and redeems them from the kingdom of sin, the devil, death, and hell, and lays His Almighty, Divine and Gracious hand upon them, takes them into protection and defence against all ill, and blesses them, so that they now with Him, shall be children and heirs of His heavenly Father, and His co-heirs of bliss and life eternal. And He warns us, the elders, to see to it, that we also abide in simple faith, and walk as childern before Him in the kingdom of heaven, (i.e. of grace and life,) and begin and continue ever to live in innocence and purity, that we may not be cast out of it for ever. Since, however, all this (Christ's saving from sin and the kingdom of the devil through the laying on of His hands, &c.) besides this His word, is given, imparted, and thereby assured to this child, as to us all, also in an outward sign, in Baptism, namely, and the word of God, "In the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, we will now baptize it in the name of the Lord, having first prayed. Our Father," &c. |
(Addition in English Translation A.D. 1693, Liturgia Figurina) not in Zuingli nor in the Ritus Eccl. Figurina 1702. [Forasmuch as you have heard here, that it is the Lord's pleasure that little children be brought unto Him, because He is their Saviour also: therefore we will bring unto Him this child as far as it lieth in our power, i.e., through baptism we will receive him into His Church, and give him the earnest of the covenant and of the people of God. God give us His grace thereto.] |
None. |
THANKSGIVING AFTER THE GOSPEL. | |||
Hermann. | Edward VI.'s First Book. | Present Form. | Reformed Churches. |
Almighty and everlasting God* we give thee† eternal thanks, that thou hast vouchsafed to call us‡ to this1 knowledge of Thy grace and faith in Thee. Increase2 and confirm this faith in us evermore. Give Thy Holy Spirit to this infant, whereby§ he may be born again, and be made an heir of salvation everlasting, which Thou hast promised to Thy holy Church, to the children and old men together for the sake of Christ, of Thy grace and mercy through our Lord Jesus Christ, who liveth and reigneth with Thee and the holy Spirit, now and for ever. Amen. | * heavenly Father. † humble ‡ this § that =which Thou hast promised—mercy. |
1 the 2 this knowledge. |
None. |
EXHORTATION TO GOD-PARENTS.
CHURCHES ON ANCIENT MODEL. | REFORMED CHURCHES. | ||||
Hermann (after the Renunciation, &c.) | Edward VI. First Book, (before the Renunciation). | Zurich. | Belgium. | Alasco. | French Geneva Polanus. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. |
Beloved in Christ, yesterday, by the grace of God, we heard how exceeding and unspeakable mercy is exhibited in Baptism. Ye have renounced Satan and the world; ye have confessed the faith of Christ, and ye have promised obedience to Christ and the Congregation: and ye have required of God the Father, that for His Son's sake, our Lord Jesus Christ, He will deliver these infants from the kingdom of darkness, and settle them in the kingdom of His beloved Son. You must remember these things and doubt nothing, but that we shall receive all these things that we require, if we believe. Therefore, lifting up your minds unto the Lord, appear ye here with all religion, as in the sight of Almighty God, the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and receive ye, with sure faith and thanksgiving, the benefit of regeneration and adoption into everlasting life, of the one God, Himself the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost. And because the Lord Himself commanded us to baptize in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, undoubtedly God Himself baptizeth our infants, cleanseth them from sins, delivereth them from everlasting death, putteth upon them His own righteousness, and giveth them life eternal. We must acknowledge, with true faith, and ever magnify these exceeding benefits of God, &c. | Well beloved friends, ye have brought these children here to be baptized, ye have prayed that our Lord Jesus Christ would vouchsafe to receive them*, to lay His hands upon them, to bless them, to release them of their sins, to give them the kingdom of heaven, and everlasting life. Ye have heard, also, that our Lord Jesus Christ hath promised, in His Gospel, to grant all these things that ye have prayed for; which promise, He, for His part, will, most surely, keep and perform. Wherefore, after this promise made by Christ, these Infants must also faithfully, for their part, promise by you, that are their
sureties†, that they will‡ forsake the Devil and all his works, & constantly believe God's Holy Word, and obediently keep His commandments. Present Form. * = To lay His—bless them. † Until he come of age to take it upon himself. ‡ Renounce. |
At the request of the parents ye offer this child for Baptism, as being willing to exhort him to a holy life, in the stead of parents. Wherefore I exhort you to consider that our God is a true God, who wills that we worship Him in truth. As then ye bring this child to baptism, and undertake the care of it, so hereafter, as need requires, perform the same as much as ye can; and give heed, that this child be brought up to the glory of God, to whom we now offer him. | To Parents, and those present, (omitted in those Churches where the custom of Parents, or Godparents offering the Children, is not as yet introduced). Beloved in the Lord Christ, ye have heard that Baptism is a Divine Institution, to seal His Covenant to us and to our seed, wherefore it must be used to this end, not of custom, nor of any superstition. That it may appear that this is your meaning, ye shall answer these things without hypocrisy. |
Ye have heard, Brethren, (see in the preface,) that the washing of Baptism was instituted by Christ the Lord, in His Church, as a sealing of the Divine Covenant with us, from which our children neither ought, nor can be withheld; since it is known that they are comprehended in it, unless the whole Church be wiling to undergo the charge of neglecting the Lord's Institution, and its Ministers of not faithfully fulfilling their Ministry. Since then ye, in the name of this whole Church, bring these Children to Baptism, I, as bound by my ministry, require of you to attest, before the whole Church, as public witnesses thereof, &c. | Inasmuch as this child is to be admitted to the Society of the [..] Church ye shall prommise, in the name of the whole Church that [..] the age [..] require [..] will take care, &c. (See next head.) |
DECLARATIONS OF [..] R THE BAPTISED.
ANCIENT CHURCH. | CHURCHES ON THE ANCIENT MODEL. | REFORMED CHURCHES. | ||||||||
Various Ancient Churches. | Old Latin Form translated by Luther. | Hermann. | Edward VI. First Book. | Present English. | Zurich. | Belgium. | French Protestants—Geneva—Polanus. | Alasco. | Old Scotch. | Scotch Directory. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. | No. 7. | No. 8. | No. 9. | No. 10. | No. 11. |
1. Renunciation. Dost thou renounce Satan? and all his works? and all his pomps?—(Roman.)—and the pomps of the world and its pleasures?—(Gallic.) I renounce Satan, and all his works, and all his service, and all his angels, and his pomps, &c. (Constantinop. and, with verbal differences, Jerus. Antioch, Alexand.) see also Tertullian, St. Cyprian, St. Ambrose, St. Basil, St. Jerome, St. Cyril of Jerusalem, ap. Palmer p. 177. 2. Belief. "In the Western churches the immemorial custom has been for the priests to interrogate the candidate for baptism or his sponsor, on the principal articles of the Christian faith. The profession was made in this manner in Gaul, as we find by the ancient Gallican missal, which was used before the introduction of the Roman Liturgy and offices into France. We also find that it was customary in Africa, by the testimony of Cyprian; and the ancient offices of the Roman Church exhibit the same. In the last, the sponsor or person to be baptized repeated the creed after the priest."—Palmer, p. 180. 3. Wish to be baptized. Willest thou to be baptized? (Sarum). 4. Holy Life. I confess Thee, Christ, our God, and all Thy salutary laws, and all Thy life, giving religion, and all Thy works, which give life.—Alex. I give up myself to the government of Christ.—(Others ap. Bingham, B. ii. c. 7, § 6.) |
Renouncest thou the devil and all his works? and all his ways? 2. Believest thou in God the Father Almighty, Maker of heaven and earth? Believest thou in Jesus Christ, His only Son, our Lord, born and suffered? Believest thou in the Holy Ghost, one Holy Catholic Church, the Communion of Saints, &c. The same. |
Questions to Sponsors and Parents of Infants. Do ye believe that those things be true which I showed you out of the word of God, concerning the corruption of nature through original sin, and concerning regeneration in Christ our Lord, everlasting communion with God, which is exhibited through holy baptism?—A. We believe. Do you require then, with all your hearts, and with true faith, that this, your infant, whom you have brought and offered to Christ, be delivered from this corruption of nature, through the merit and virtue of Cnrist in baptism, and be reconciled unto God, and born again, into a new and perpetual life?—A. We require it. Do ye then renounce, in your own name, and in the name of the child, the devil and all his works?—A. We renounce. And the world also, and all its concupiscence?—A. We renounce. Do ye believe in God, the Father Almighty, Maker of heaven and earth?—A. We believe. And do ye believe that God will be a Father to you and to this infant when it is baptized, and that He will keep you from all evil through His Almighty power, wisdom, and mercy, and heap benefits upon you, and that you ought to fear Him, and love Him, above all things?—A. We believe. Do ye believe in our Lord Jesus Christ, His only Son, who, to redeem us, became man, suffered, and died, and was raised again from death, ascended into heaven, and sitteth on the right hand of the Father, and from thence governeth His Church, through His Almighty power, and shall come in the end of the world, and appear to all men, a judge of the dead and the quick?—A. We believe. Do ye confess out of this faith, that our Lord Jesus Christ is also your Saviour and Saviour of this child, who by His death hath also purged your sins, and hath reconciled you to God, and justified you through His resurrection, and will, at length, fully finish up the image and life of God in you, being cleansed from all sin?—A. We confess. And do ye believe, also, in the Holy Ghost, &c.—A. We believe. Out of this confession do ye believe that the Holy Ghost will be your teacher and comforter, and the teacher and comforter of this child; and that you be tlie true members of the body of Christ our Lord, and of His Church; and that this child, by baptism, shall be a member of Christ, and His Church, wherein he shall have remission of sins, a sure hope of resurrection, and of life everlasting?—A. We believe. Will ye, then, be Godfathers to this infant, and count him for a very son of God, a brother and member of Christ, and as soon as he cometh to the use of reason, if, peradventure, he shall lose his parents, or if they shall be negligent in this behalf, will ye take the charge of him, that he may learn the Ten Commandments, the articles of our faith, the Lord's Prayer and the Sacraments, both at home and in the congregation, that from his childhood he may begin to understand the mystery of Baptism, and the benefits of Christ, given to him therein; and, afterward, when he is well instructed in the religion of Christ, that he, in the congregation, with his own mouth, confess his faith, that he, through the participation of Christ, give himself to obedience towards God and the Church?—A. We will. |
Then shall the priest demand* of the child, &c. 1. Dost thou forsake the devil and all his works?—A. I forsake them. Dost thou forsake the vain pomp and glory of the world, with all the covetous desires of the same?—A. I forsake them. Dost thou forsake the carnal desires of the flesh, so that thou wilt not follow or be led by them?—A. I forsake them. 2. Belief, divided into 3 parts, as in the ancient church, the assent expressed after each. 3. What does thou desire?—A. Baptism. Wilt thou be baptized?—A. I will. |
*of the God-fathers & Godmothers. 1. In question. 2. The division retained but the assent express at the end only. 3. Wilt thou be batpized in this faith? |
Nothing. In the English translation, not in Zuingli, nor in the [..] Eccl. Tigur the creed is recidted with this [..]. "These are the articles of the holy Christian [..], whereupon this child is to be baptized, and wherefore ought also to be instructed," and [..]wards the [..] are exhorted "to pray with devotion unto [..] that we may [..] of the Lord [..] faith for this [..]" Our Father &c. Will ye that this child be baptized with the baptism of our Lord Jesus Christ? |
1. Although our children are conceived and born in sins, and so exposed to all sorts of miseries and damnation itself, do ye not confess that they are sanctified in Christ, and so are to be baptized as members of His church? 2. Do ye not acknowledge, that the doctrines comprised in the Old and New Test. and the articles of the Christian faith, which is delivered to this Church of Christ, is the true and entire doctrine of salvation? 3. Do ye not promise and determine that ye will educate this child, or take care that it be educated in this very doctrine when it grows up? 4. Nothing. |
Parents promise to instruct the child, at years of discretion, 3. according to the admonitions of the Prophets and the Apostles, to renounce himself and his desires, to dedicate and consecrate himself, to glorify the name of God and of Jesus Christ, and to edify his neighbour. 2. in the doctrine, as it is received and approved by the people of God, and summed up in the confession of faith, which we all receive. (Apostles' Creed.) Upon this promise the child is baptized. 3. to instruct the child to live according to the rule left us by our Lord in His law, to love God with all our heart, and our neighbour as ourselves. |
Do ye offer these children as the seed of this our Church, to be baptized lawfully here by our ministry? Do you acknowledge our doctrine, which ye have heard of Baptism and its mysteries, to be true, and that our infants (and indeed all of us) were by nature children of wrath and death, but are now, for Christ's sake, included in the divine covenant made with us by Christ, and ought to be sealed with the seal of His acceptance and righteousness, viz. Baptism? 3. Lastly, do ye acknowledge that it is the duty of you and of the whole Church, especially of you, fathers, (if the fathers are present) together with your wives, the mothers of these children, that those infants offered, when they shall grow up, be instructed in the true knowledge of God, and religion? |
Finally, to intent that we may be assured that you, the father and the surety, consent to performance, declare here the summe of that faith wherein you believe, and will instruct this child. | The Minister is to exhort the parents To consider the great mercy of God to him and his child; to bring up the child in the knowledge of the grounds of the Christian religion, and in the nurture and admonition of the Lord; and to let him know the danger of God's wrath to himself and child, if he be negligent; requiring his solemn promise for the performance of his duty. |
PRAYERS FOR THE CHILD AFTER THE PROFESSION OF FAITH, &c. AND BENEDICTION OF WATER.
Old Gallican. | Edward VI.—First Book. | Present English. | Reformed. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. |
1. O Lord, Eternal God—may this place be made worthy to receive the influxes of Thy Holy Spirit: let that old Adam be buried here, the new rise again. 2. Let all which is of the flesh die—all which is of the Spirit rise again. 3. Whosoever shall here renounce the devil, grant him to triumph over the world. 4. Whosoever shall call upon Thee in this place, do Thou acknowledge him in the kingdom. 5. Let sins be so extinguished in this fountain, that they may not rise again. 6. Whosoever shall here hegin to be Thine, may he never cease to be Thine. 7. Whosoever shall here deny himself, let him gain Thee. 8. May the people set apart to Thee by our ministry, and Thy mystery, be set apart by Thee (ad, &c. Assem. Cod. Lit. t. ii. p. 39. leg. a te) to eternal rewards, through our Lord Jesus Christ. Benediction. I bless thee (the water) also, through Jesus Christ His only Son our Lord, Who brought thee, together with blood, out of His own side, and commanded His disciples that they who believe should be baptized in thee, saying, Go teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Ghost. Be present, Almighty God, of Thy mercy with us, who keep these commandments; regard of Thy mercy, do Thou bless these mere waters, that beside their natural power of cleansing, which they can use for the washing of the body, they may be efficacious also for the purifying of the mind. (Sarum. Greg. Gelas.) Fill it (the child) with the grace of Thy Holy Spirit, that it may not be a child of the flesh, but a son of Thy bridal-chamber, and an heir of Thy everlasting and never-failing kingdom.—(Copt. Alex.) |
[The water being to be changed once every month at least, these prayers were to be said before any child was baptized therein. Another prayer was also said, derived from a different source, and now altogether omitted.] 1. O merciful God, grant that the old Adam in them* that shall be baptized in this fountain may be so buried, that the new man may be raised up in him. Amen. 2. Grant that all carnal affections may die in him, and that all things belonging to the Spirit may live and grow in him. Amen. 3. Grant to all them=, which at this fountain forsake the devil and all his works, that they may have power and strength to have victory, and to triumph against him, the world, and the flesh. Amen. 4. Whosoever shall confess thee, O Lord, recognize him also in Thy kingdom. Amen. 5. Grant that all sin and vice here may be so extinct, that they may never more have power to reign in Thy servants. Amen. 6. Grant that whosoever here shall begin to be of Thy flock may evermore continue in the same. Amen. 7. Grant that all they, which for Thy sake in this life do deny and forsake themselves, may win and purchase Thee, O Lord, which art everlasting treasure. Amen. 8. Grant that whosoever is here dedicated to Thee by our office and ministry may also be endued with heavenly virtues, and everlastingly rewarded, through Thy mercy, O blessed Lord God, who dost live and govern all things, world without end. Amen. Almighty Everlasting God, Whose most dearly beloved Son Jesus Christ, for the forgiveness of our sins, did shed out of His most precious side both water and blood; and gave commandment to His disciples that they should go and teach all nations, and baptize them in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost; regard, we beseech Thee, the supplications of Thy congregation‡; and grant that all Thy servants which shall be baptized in this water, prepared for the ministration to Thy Holy Sacrament, may receive the fulness of Thy grace, and ever remain in the number of Thy faithful and elect children, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen. |
* this child. = to all them—works. Nos. 4–7 omitted. ‡ For "and grant—Sacrament," "sanctify this water to the mystical washing away of sin, and grant that this child now to be baptized therein." |
Nothing. |
SIGNING WITH THE CROSS.
Ancient Church. | Hermann. (After the Exorcism.) | Old Latin ap. Luther and Danish. | Edward VI. First Book (before Exorcism). | Reformed. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. |
Miss. Bobio, 1100 years old.—Receive the sign of the Cross on the forehead and the heart. Be ever faithful. Enter the Temple of God. Worship God the Father Almighty, and Jesus Christ His Son, (who shall come to judge the quick and dead, and the world by fire,) with the Holy Spirit, for ever and ever, Amen. Constantinop. Let the Cross of Thy only-Begotten Son be stamped upon his heart and his thoughts, that he may flee the vanity of the world, and all the evil attacks of the enemy, and follow Thy commandments. Sarum. I give thee the seal of our Lord Jesus Christ, that thou mayest remain in the Catholic Faith, and live for ever and ever. Amen. St. Cyprian Ep. [..] ad Thibaritan. "Let the forehead be guarded, that the 'Sign of God' be kept safe." De lap[..] c. 2. "The forehead pure, through 'the Sign of God,' could not endure the crown of the devil, but reserved itself for the crown of the Lord." |
Take the figure of the Holy Cross on thy forehead, that thou never be ashamed of God and Christ thy Saviour, or of His Gospel: take it also on thy breast, that the power of Christ crucified may be ever thy succour and sure protection in all things. The Lord be with you and with thy Spirit. |
Receive the Sign of the Holy Cross both on the* forehead and the breast. * Thy Dan. |
* Receive the Sign of the Holy Cross, both in thy forehead and in thy breast, in token that hereafter †thou shalt not be ashamed to confess ‡thy faith in Christ crucified, and manfully to fight under His banner against sin, the world, and the devil, and to
continue § His faithful soldier and servant unto his life's end. Amen. Present English (after Baptism). * We receive this child into the congregation of Christ's flock, and do sign him with the sign of the Cross, in token, &c. † he shall. ‡ The faith of. § Christ's. Hooker, B. v. "The Cross is for us an admonition no less necessary than for them to glory in the service of Jesus Christ, & not to hang down our heads as men ashamed thereof, although it procure us reproach and obloquy at the hands of this wretched world." |
Nothing. T. Cartwright ap. Hooker, B. v. c. 65 § 6. ed. Keble. "This use of crossing, as it was brought in upon no good ground, so the Lord left a mark of His curse of it, whereby it might be perceived to come out of the forge of man's brain, in that it began forthwith, while it was yet in the swaddling clouts, to be superstitiously abused." |
EXHORTATION TO THANKSGIVING AFTER BAPTISM.—AND THANKSGIVING.
ANCIENT CHURCH | CHURCHES ON THE ANCIENT MODEL. | REFORMED CHURCHES. | |||||||||
Old Gallican. | Luther's Revision. | Hermann. | Edward VI. Second Book. | Present English. | Zurich. | Belgium. | French Protestant, and Geneva. | Polanus. | Alasco. | English at Geneva, and Scotch. | Scotch Directory. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. | No. 7. | No. 8. | No. 9. | No. 10. | No. 11. | No. 12. | No. 13. |
Let us give thanks and praise to the Lord, most dearly beloved brethren, that He has deigned to increase the congregation of our Church by our beloved, who have just been baptized. Let us ask then of the mercy of the Lord, that they may bear the Holy Baptism which they have received, unstained, inviolate, and undefiled, before the tribunal of Christ. Prayer. Old Latin form, ap. Luther, see p. 268 |
The Godparents shall then hold the child in the font, and the priest say, while putting on the white garments: Almighty God and Father of our Lord JesusChrist, who has* regenerated Thee, through water and the Holy Ghost, and has forgiven thee all thy sins, strengthen thee with His mercy to everlasting life. Amen. Danish. No. 3. |
(End of long exhortation before the Interrogatories:) We must therefore render bounden thanks to God for His so unspeakable mercy, and pray moreover that He will vouchsafe ever to carry on and finally to perfect in us His work which He hath begun in us, and in all whom He hath called unto Baptism. Concluding Prayer. Min.—The peace of the Lord be with you always. Ans.—Amen. Then shall be sung in German, by the whole Church, Grates nunc omnes, &c. or the Psalm Deus misereatur nostri. Afterwards shall the Minister proceed in the office of the Lord's Supper. |
Seeing now, dearly beloved brethren, that these children be regenerate, and grafted into the body of Christ's congregation* let us give thanks unto God for these benefits, and with one accord make our prayers unto Almighty God that they may lead the rest of their life according to this beginning. We yield Thee hearty thanks, most merciful Father, that it hath pleased Thee to regenerate this infant with Thy Holy Spirit, to receive him for Thine own child by adoption, and to incorporate him into Thy holy* congregation. And humbly we beseech Thee to grant, that he, being dead unto sin, and living unto righteousness, and being buried with Christ in His death, may crucify the old man, and utterly abolish the whole body of sin: that as he is made partaker of the death of Thy Son, so he may be partaker of His resurrection; so that finally, with the residue of thy holy* congregation, he may be inheritor of thy everlasting kingdom, through Christ our Lord. Amen. |
*Church | None |
[The following is omitted in some places, as well as the preceding admonition to the parents.] Almighty, most merciful God and Father, we give Thee thanks, for that Thou hast forgiven all our sins to us and to our children, for the blood of Thy beloved Son Jesus Christ, and hast adopted us by Thy Holy Spirit, for members of Thy Only Begotten Son, and so also for sons, and that Thou sealest this to us by Thy Holy Baptism. We pray Thee by the same. Thy well-beloved Son, that Thou wouldest continually govern these infants by the grace of Thy Holy Spirit, that they may be piously and Christianly brought up, and daily increase and grow in Jesus Christ, that they may confess Thy fatherly goodess and mercy, which Thou hast shown to them and to us all, and may pass their life in all righteousness, under our only Prophet, King, and High Priest, and fight manfully against sin, Satan, and his whole kingdom, to praise and glorify Thee, with Thy Son Jesus Christ, and the Holy Spirit, the Only and True God, for ever. |
None. | The Lord our God grant to this child, whom He has created and made in His image, that he may be a true member of Christ, and yield fruit worthy of the adoption of sons of God. Depart in peace. |
We give Thee thanks, Almighty Father, through Jesus Christ Thy Son, that having freed us, with our seed, from eternal death, thou hast brought us back to eternal life, by the testimony of Baptism, through the free expiation of us all, by the blood of Thy Only-begotten Son. And we humbly pray Thee; through the same, Thy Son, for these our infants, who doubtless are Thine by the testimony of this Baptism, that Thou wilt vouchsafe also to govern them hereafter by Thy Holy Spirit, and (when they shall have grown up) so to adorn them with His healthful gifts, that they may hereafter acknowledge this Thy eternal kindness and goodness towards them and us all, and that they may live in all holiness and righteousness, under Christ Jesus, the King and Priest of us all, who with Thee and Thy Holy Spirit, is the True, One, and Eternal God, to be praised for all ages. Amen. | Which hast not only numbered us among Thy saints, but also of Thy free mercy dost call our children, marking them with this Sacrament, as a singular token and badge of Thy love. We beseech Thee to confirm this Thy favour more and more towards us, and take this infant into Thy tuition and defence, whom we offer and present unto Thee with common supplication, and never suffer him to fall into such unkindness, whereby He shall lose the force of Baptism; but that he may perceive Thee continually to be His merciful Father, through Thine Holy Spirit, by whose divine power he may so prevail over Satan, &c. |
He is to give thanks, and pray to this or the like purpose. Thanks. |
FINAL EXHORTATION TO GOD-PARENTS.
Ancient Church. | Mecklenburg. | Danish and Norwegian. | Edward VI. First Book. | Present English. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. |
"After this, the presbyter enjoineth the godfathers and godmothers to tell the parents, that for seven years the boy should be kept from all dangers, and that they should teach it as soon as possible the Lord's Prayer, the Ave Maria, and the Belief" (Ancient Ritual of Limoges, ap. Martene, t. i. p. 208, referred to by Palmer, l.c.) The like direction is given in the Manuale Ebor. and Sarum; only that they mention the duty of the god-parents to guard the child against temporal danger, if the parents fail to do so: as also the duty of instructing it as above, and bringing it to confirmation, is directly enjoined to the godparents. In the Ambrosian Ritual also (Assem. Cod. Liturg. ii. 48, 49), the priest is directed, in conclusion, to "hold a discourse according to the number and circumstances of the persons present, wherein, besides other things, he shall set forth a Christian consideration, as to the solemn vow which every believer makes in Baptism, that such believers as are present, being roused by the recollection of so sacred a promise, may see and fulfil what they have solemnly vowed." "He shall also admonish the god-parents, and teach them the several parts of their duty, which they ought to perform on account of their office, viz. as St. Augustine admonishes, that they should ever show to the infant the anxiety of a true love, and take heed that he be instructed in the rudiments of Christian doctrine, and warn him to keep himself pure, refrain his tongue from cursing and swearing, be not lifted up with pride, envy not, keep not anger or hatred in his heart, and other things of the like sort." "Lastly, he shall admonish them that this day of Baptism be noted by the parents; that the child may yearly keep the day on which it was baptized, after the ordinance of our forefathers, with more fervent prayer, with alms-giving, (if it have the ability), and by every work and duty of charity, and by the celebration of spiritual joy; recollecting that the hand-writing of condemnation having been effaced, it was made partaker of a spiritual inheritance in Christ the Lord. "Reconsider," says our most holy father Ambrose, "what was demanded of thee, what thou answeredst: thou renouncedst the devil and his works, the world, and its luxury and pleasures; take heed to these thy words, and may the pledge thou gavest never depart from thy mind." Similar admonitions to god-parents are directed in the Roman Ritual, collected from many ancient MSS. by Cardinal Sanctorius S. Severino, (ap. Assem. l.c. pp. 97. 116); and if at Easter there should not be time, notice was to be given of a sermon on this subject, on some day in the week following (ib. p. 107). |
Optional. Rubric—not to delay Baptism beyond the 2d or 3d day, that soon after their birth of the flesh they may come to the spiritual new-birth, and to the communion of the Lord Christ and His Church and of the kingdom of heaven. |
Beloved in Christ, who have now, stood as witnesses and sponsors unto Baptism, be ye witnesses, in the name of the holy Trinity, that he is baptized. Moreover, know also what ye owe to this infant, if it chance that his parents die, before he be come to ripe age, that if he be present here ye then instruct him in the doctrine of the catechism, in order, that when he is grown up, he may remain in Christ, as he is now planted in Him by Baptism. Peace be with you. Amen. |
Forasmuch as these children have promised by you † to * forsake the devil and all his works, to believe in God, and to serve Him; you must remember that it is your parts and duties to see that these infants be taught, so soon as they shall be able to learn, what a solemn vow, promise, and profession they have made by you. And that they may know these things the better, ye shall call upon them to hear sermons. And chiefly ye shall provide that they may learn the Creed, the Lord's Prayer, and the Ten Commandments in the ‡ English tongue, and all other things which a Christian man ought to know and believe to his soul's health; and that these children may be virtuously brought up to lead a godly and a Christian life, remembering always that Baptism doth represent unto us our profession, which is, to follow the example of our Saviour Christ, and to be made like unto Him. That as He died for and rose again for us, so should we which are baptized die from sin, and rise again unto righteousness, continually mortifying all our evil and corrupt affections, and daily proceeding in all virtue and godliness of living. | † suretie * renounce ‡ vulgar = man |
(B.)
ANCIENT BAPTISMAL RITES,
RETAINED AT FIRST IN THE REFORMED ENGLISH LITURGY,
BUT EXCLUDED AT THE ADVICE OP BUCER.
EXORCISM BEFORE BAPTISM IN THE ANCIENT AND OLD ENGLISH CHURCH.
Ancient Church. Sacramentary of Gelasius, from a MS. of the 7th or 8th century. | Old Latin form of the German Church ap. Luther. | Exorcism of Infants from Sacramentary of Gelasius. | Gothic and old Gallican Liturgy from a MS. more than 900 years old. | Greek Liturgy, from the 1st exorcism. | Jacobite Syrians. | Liturgy of James Bishop of Sarug. | Hermann. The exorcism of adjuration. |
No. 1. | No. 2. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. | No. 7. | No. 8. |
"I pray Thee, O Lord, to free also these Thy servants, and to vouchsafe to bring them to the grace of Thy baptism: wherefore,thou accursed devil, acknowledge thy sentence, and give the honour to the true and living God; give it to His Son Jesus Christ; and to the Holy Ghost, and depart from this1 His servant; for our God Lord Jesus Christ hath called him to His holy grace and benediction, and to the laver of baptism through2 His gift; and never venture3 to destroy this sign of the holy cross, that we make on his forehead," (Ap. Assem. Cod. Liturg. p. 6, 7.) "have nothing to do with these servants of God, who now think of heavenly things, and are about to renounce thee and thy world, and to live to a blessed immortality||, through Jesus Christ our Lord, who is about to come to judge the quick and dead, and the world by fire." Also from two MSS. of the Church of Turin, above 900 years old. (Assem. p. 44. See also pp. 46. 47. 48. 50. 52.) 1"from this servant of God."—Sarum. Ritual Ebor. 2"by the gift of the Holy Spirit."—Sarum. 3"thou accursed devil."—Sar. |
Beginning of service. After the third prayer. = "have," "immortality." || through Him, who is hereafter to judge, &c.I adjure thee, thou unclean spirit, in the name of the Father †, and the Son †, and the Holy Ghost †, that thou come out, and depart from this servant of Jesus Christ. |
Forget not, O Satan, that punishment awaits thee, that torments await thee, that the day of judgment awaits thee, a day of misery*, a day which shall come as a burning furnace, and in which everlasting destruction shall come to thee and all thy angels. Wherefore, thou damned one† give the honour, &c. (as before to "Holy Ghost"),‡ in whose name and power I bid thee come out and depart from this servant of God, whom our Lord God Jesus Christ hath vouchsafed this day to call, &c. that he may become His temple by the water of regeneration for the remission of all sins, ¶ in the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, who is about to come, &c.—(Ap. Assem. p. 17.) also in Gregory's Sacramentary, published from a Venice MS. above 900 years old. * "Endless misery."—Sarum Ebor. † "Damnate et damnande, pro tua nequitia."—Sarum Ebor. ‡ "he gives the honour to the Holy Ghost the Comforter."—Sarum. § "Whoever thou art, thou unclean spirit."—Sarum Ebor. ¶ "his sins."—Sarum. = "Through His gift."—Sarum. |
I address thee, most unclean damned spirit—origin of sin, who delightest in malice, sacrilege, adulteries, murders, We adjure thee, calling upon the name of our Lord Jesus Christ, by His Majesty and Power, His Passion and Resurrection, His Coming and Judgment, that driven forth [..] spiritual scourges and invisible torments, thou flee from this vessel which thou thoughtest to have dwelt in for thine own, and leave it for the Lord, being purified after thy indwelling. Suffice it, that in past ages thou hast ruled in the hearts of men, almost over the whole world. Now daily shall thy kingdom be destroyed; and day by day to the end shall thy weapons fail. Of old were those things which thou sufferest prefigured. Thou wast spoiled in the plagues of the Egyptians, &c. Thou art put to flight, art tortured, art destroyed by all saints, being assigned to the eternal fire and infernal darkness. Whence our Lord Jesus Christ, in the second Adam withdraws man from thee, while He triumpheth over thee. Depart, depart, wherever thou art, and seek not again the bodies dedicated to God. Be they interdicted to thee for ever. In the name of the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Spirit, and in the glory of the Passion of the Lord, by whose blood they were saved, whose coming they wait for, whose judgment they confess, for the sake of Jesus Christ our Lord.—(Assem. p. 50.) | The Lord rebuketh thee, O Satan, He who came into the world, and taberacled among men, that he might destroy thy tyranny, and free mankind, [..] on the cross triumphed over the powers of the enemy, &c. He now also commandeth thee by us; fear, go out, and retire from this creature, and return not, nor hide thyself in him, nor meet him, nor work on him—but depart to thy own hell, until the great day of judgment ordained. Go forth, and depart from this new elected and sealed soldier of Christ our God. Depart, and retire from this creature, with all thy power and thy angels. For the name of the Father, and the Son, and the Holy Ghost is glorified, now and ever, and for all ages. Amen. Assem. T. i. p. 131–133. From the 2d exorcism. The 3rd exorcism. |
We call upon Thee, O Lord our God, maker of all things, visible and invisible, laying hands on this Thy creature, and we sign him † in Thy name—Father, Son, and Holy Ghost—and in Thy most Holy Name, rebuke all devils, and unclean and evil spirits, that they depart far away from Thy creature and image, and the work of Thy holy hands †. Hear us, O Lord, and rebuke them, and cleanse Thy servants from the working of the adversary †. Hear also, thou perverse and rebellious, who injurest this creature of God †. I adjure thee, thou enemy of righteousness, and transgressor of the divine and holy laws, by the glory of the Great King, depart with terror, and be subject to the terrible Lord, and by Him who has all power in heaven and in earth; by Him, by whom all things are created and preserved; by Him, by whom things in heaven exist, and things on earth are strengthened, &c. †. I adjure thee by Him, who, with divine power, said to the deaf and dumb spirit, "Go out of him, and enter no more into him," &c. † Fear the future judgment;—tremble;—approach not to the creature of God,—for he is not the dwelling-place of devils, but the temple of God: for He hath said, "I will dwell in them, and walk in them, and I will be their God, and they shall be my people," &c. Be thou rooted out, and scattered abroad, and depart, accursed, from the creature of God; thou unclean spirit, and spirit of error, fuel for fire,—hasten, and resist not. For God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit shall utterly root thee out, casting thee forth from every creature of His, and out into fire unquenchable,—delivering this work of His hands until the day of redemption; for His is the power, and dominion, and might, and to Him we now ascribe the praise. (Assem.
T. i. p. 234–237; also in a Jerusalem Liturgy, derived from the Apostles, ibid. p. 250. as in that of Severus, Patriarch of Antioch, ibid. p. 278. and p. 45 sqq. ed. Fabricius.) |
† I adjure you and bind you, unclean and evil spirits, and all the power of the enemy, in the Name of God, mighty and powerful, who created all things, (and after other adjurations from the manifestations of God's power in the Old Testament). † I adjure you through Him, Whom His own will brought to the wood of the Cross, and to death, that He might redeem Adam & his sons from the slavery of death and sin. † I adjure you by the might of the mighty God, that ye depart from this creature which is wedded to the living God, and remove from him, and return no more to dwell in this child, who comes to be an habitation for the Holy Spirit, that He may dwell in it. But do ye, evil spirits, flee from Him, and as the evil spirit departed from king Saul, when David played on the harp, so † may Satan and his power fly, O Lord, from this thy servant, when Thy Majesty descending in a cloud, abideth on the waters of Baptism, so, O Lord, let not the evil spirit remain in any part of the soul, body, or spirit of this Thy servant, who is called to this mystery of Baptism. † I tell you, demons and evil spirits, the bridegroom rejoices, the bride is made ready, and the guests wait, and the streams burst forth, and the heavens are opened, and the angels stand in awe, and the Seraphim cry "Holy," and the powers sing, and the hosts of angels shout—the Father rejoiceth, the Son is glad, the Holy Spirit broodeth; and Baptism is kindled with fire and the Spirit, and the mysteries are sealed, and the flock standeth by, the Church trembleth. Beware thou evil one, and presume not, lest thou perish in that hour, when the King sitteth on the throne, to execute judgment on your presumption and rebellion. Approach not to this servant, who is called to the feast of the only Son of God, and injure him not whien thou departest from him. But if thou presumest, and departest not from the Holy Church, the Holy of Holies, wherein the Lord dwelleth, I bind † thee, and anathematize thee in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit. † Be thou bound and anathematized by the Holy Trinity, if thou approach with him to this Holy Baptism, which burneth with fire and the Spirit; but depart to the infernal pit, where thy punishment is prepared for ever. † I bind thee and anathematize thee, Satan, by that hour, wherein our Lord hung upon the Cross, and stretched out His hands and feet to the nails, and His side to the lance, and His mouth to the vinegar and gall, for Adam and his sons. † I adjure thee, and bind thee, evil Satan, by that hour, wherein we priests stand, who are put in trust with the treasures of the Father, from the mouth of the Father, who baptizeth, and the Son, who receiveth, and of the Holy Spirit, who broodeth. But now I seal † him, and protect him from all the power of demons, in the name of the Father, the Son. and Holy Snirit. now and for ever.—[..] |
I commande all evil spirits, in the Name of our Lord Jesus Christ, to depart from this infant, and to do him no hurt in any manner of ways. Edward VI. in the book after the 2d prayer. And presume not, hereafter, to exercise any tyranny towards these infants, whom Christ hath bought with His most precious blood, and by this His holy Baptism, calleth to be of His flock. |
In Baptismal formularies also, when there is no direct exorcism or adjuration, there is far more mention of Satan and his might, and the power which he had, and would, but for Christ, yet have over us, than in our own, which through the interference of Bucer, has unhappily been maimed, the direct exorcism having been omitted, and nothing substituted for it.
Thus in the Coptic (Assem. i. 153). "We beseech Thy goodness, Thou lover of men, that by the mystery of Thy Holy name, thou wilt repel and restrain all the adverse and wicked spirits and powers, for Thou hast called Thy servants, who come from darkness to light, from death to life, from error to acknowledgment of truth, and from worship of idols to the knowledge of Thee, O God of truth. Search the secret corners of their hearts. Thou who searched Jerusalem with candles (Zeph. i. 12.), and permit not the evil spirit to lurk in them, but grant them purity and salvation; give them everlasting salvation, regenerate them with the washing of regeneration and remission of sins and make them a temple for Thy Holy Spirit through Thy only begotten Son." (And again p. 156), "destroy in them all power of the enemy," &c. (and p. 157 and p. 162) "expel every work of Satan from him," (and p. 164, beginning as in p. 153), "and if any wickedness of Satan lurk in him, lay it open and expel it from the soul and body of Thy faithful servant, who believes in Thy Holy Name; renew his life, and make him fit to receive the light and seal of Thy Christ, and the gift of Thy Holy and consubstantial Spirit, and put on the robe of salvation, the shield of faith, against which our enemy cannot prevail" (and p. 165) "Save, O Lord, this Thy creature, and free him from the slavery of the enemy" (and p. 166) "Let the angels of light guard his life, that he may be freed from all the evils of the adversary, from the demon ofthemid day (Ps. xc. 5,6. Sept.) and the arrow that fleeth at noon-day. Take away and remove from him every unclean, every malignant spirit, which troubleth his heart; the spirit of error and of all wickedness; the spirit of love of money and idolatry; the spirit of lying, and every foul thing, which is practised from the teaching of Satan: make him a sheep of the holy flock of Thy Christ, an elect member of Thy holy Church," &c.
This varied and repeated reference to the doctrine of the power of the "prince of this world," over such as are not rescued from his dominion, implies a conviction of its reality, as strong as even the direct and formal Exorcism.
In the Armenian Liturgy again (altogether very brief) is the prayer, "O Lord God, great and glorified by all creatures, this Thy servant, fleeing to Thy Almighty and terrible name, hath humbled his head to Thy holy name to which every knee of things in heaven, and in earth, and under the earth, doth bow; that every tongue may confess that Thou, Jesus Christ, art the Lord, in the glory of the Father and the Holy Spirit. May he be partaker of the fruit of that Thy terrible name, which hath repelled the snares of the enemy, and the perverseness of idolatry. and baffles all the snares of the devil. Look upon him, O Lord, in Thy mercy, and through the all-powerful invocation of Thee drive far away from him all secret thoughts, words, and works, which come from unclean spirits; and all fraud whereby deceiving spirits are wont to deceive and destroy men, so that, terrified by Thy victorious might, they may be restrained and tormented by invisible chastisements: let them be banished from him by (this) adjuration, as as never to return. Fill him with heavenly grace," &c.—Assem. p. 170, 1.
RITE OF LEADING THE CHILD INTO THE CHURCH WITH PRAYER
Sacramentary of Gelasius and Gregory I. | Old Ambrosian. | Sarum. | Edward VI. First Book. | ||||
No. 1. | No. 3. | No. 4. | No. 5. | No. 6. | No. 7. | No. 8. | |
The priest puts the end of the stole upon the infant, and brings it into the Church, saying, Enter into the temple of God, that you may have part with Christ to life eternal. Amen.—Assem. t. ii.
p. 5 and 8. (Italian Church, ap. Assem, p. 77.)—In the name of the Father and the Son, and Holy Ghost. Amen. Enter into the Church of God by the hand of the priest, that, &c.—And see Old Gallican above. |
Enter, my son, into the house of God: hear thy Father teaching thee the way of knowledge.—(Assem. t. ii. p. 46.) | Enter * into the temple of God that you may have eternal life, and live for ever and ever Amen. *—into the joy of thy Lord, & enter, &c.—Old Ritual of Limoges, ap. Assem. t. ii. p. 86. |
"The Lord vouchsafe to receive you into His Holy household, and to keep and govern you alway in the same, that you may have everlasting life." | ||||
RITE OF PUTTING ON THE WHITE VESTMENT AFTER BAPTISM. | |||||||
Old Gallican, from MS. above 1100 years old. | The same.—(Assem. t. ii. p. 47.) | Syriac. | Constantinopolitan. | ||||
Take this white vestment, which thou mayest bear unspotted before the tribunal of 1Christ.—(Assem. t. ii. p. 42, also pp. 71, 74, 76, 78, 81, &c.) 1Our Lord Jesus Christ. (Old Gothic, ib. p. 36.) |
"Thou hast received white garments, as a token that thou hast put off the mantle of sins, and hast put on the pure robes of innocency."—(St. Ambrose, de iis qui initiantur.) | "Take the white* and unspotted vestment, to bear it before the tribunal of the Lord Jesus Christ, to life eternal." *"Holy and"—Ebor. Old Latin, ap. Luther. "That thou mayest have eternal life and live for ever and ever."—Ebor. |
For the rite of clothing the newly-baptized in white see Assem. t. ii. p. 213. | "The servant of God is clothed with the robe of righteousness, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, now and ever, throughout all ages. Amen."—Ap. Assem. t. ii. p. 145. "Grant me the shining robe. Thou who puttest on light as a garment. All-merciful Christ, our God. Amen." — ib. |
"Take this white vestment for a token of the innocence which by God's grace in this Holy Sacrament of Baptism, is given unto thee, and for a sign whereby thou art admonished so long as thou livest, to give thyself to innocency of living, that, after this transitory life, thou mayest be partaker of life everlasting. Amen." | ||
RITE OF ANOINTING CHILD AFTER BAPTISM WITH PRAYER. | |||||||
Sacramentary of Gelasius. | Old Gothic.—Assem. t. ii. p. 34.) | Coptic. | Syriac. | ||||
Almighty God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath regenerated thee by water and the Holy Ghost, and who hath given unto thee remission of all sins1, He anoint thee with the2 unction of salvation in Christ Jesus our Lord, unto life eternal.—(Assem. p. 5. See also p. 17. and in the old Gallican Church, p. 39, 55, 58, 59, 63, 66, 70, 73, 76, 79, 81, &c. See also the old German form, ap. Luther.) 1 † "By the washing of regeneration and blood."—Old Gall., very old MS. ap. Assem. p. 42. 2 "With His Holy Chrism."—Ibid. |
"I anoint thee with the unction of holiness, the robe of immortality, which our Lord Jesus Christ received as delivered from the Father, that thou mayest bear it pure and undefiled before the tribunal of Christ, and live for ever and ever." "Let us pray, very dearly beloved brethren, our Lord and God, for His regenerated ones, that, as they have been baptized, so, when the Saviour shall come in His Majesty, He may clothe with everlasting salvation, those whom He has regenerated with water and the Spirit." "We pray for the baptized and crowned in Christ, to whom, asking, our Lord has vouchsafed to grant regeneration, that, O Almighty God, they may bear the baptism which they have received, undefiled to the end, through our Lord Jesus Christ." |
The same as col. 1. | as in col. 1. † in the same His Son Jesus Christ.—Ebor. |
"I anoint thee with the oil of gladness, a defence against all the works of the evil adversary, that thou mayest be engraffed in the root of the fruitful olive-tree which is the Holy Catholic and Apostolic Church of God. Amen."—(Assem. i. p. 163.) | "This lamb is marked in the flock of Christ, who hath come to Holy Baptism, in the name of the Father, Amen, of the Son, Amen, of the Holy Spirit, Amen, for all ages. Amen." And again, as in the Coptic, i. p; 240, and p. 254, and ii. p. 304, and p. 285, "is marked with oil of gladness, that he may become worthy of the adoption of sons through regeneration, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost."—ii. 302. |
"The servant of God is anointed with the oil of gladness, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, now and ever," &c.—Assem. ii. 142. | Same as col. 1. |
(C.)
SPECIMEN OF MODERN LANGUAGE,
INTRODUCED BY
BUCER INTO HERMANN'S FORM,
AND EXCLUDED
BY THE REFORMERS OF OUR BAPTISMAL LITURGY.
"Almighty and merciful God and Father, Thou didst promise to Abraham our father, and the father of all that believe, and in him Thou didst promise us also, his children, that Thou wouldest be a God to us and our seed. Wherefore, as Thou didst receive the infants of the old people into grace, and into Thine own people, by circumcision; and Thy Son Christ Jesus, our Lord and Saviour, admitted children, offered unto Him, right gently, and blessed them, testifying that the kingdom of God pertaineth to such; so let it be Thy pleasure to beget our infants again, to adopt them into sons, unto the fellowship of everlasting life, by the sacrament of Baptism. Grant then, Heavenly Father, that we may earnestly require so great riches of grace, set forth in Baptism for Thine infants, that we may acknowledge and receive them with true faith, being offered both in Thy word and in the sacrament. Finally, that we may ever thank Thee, and magnify Thee for them. And impute not to these infants the sin of Adam, issued into them and engendered by their parents; and regard not the merits of their parents, and of all this people; but let the Death and Merit of Thy Son our Lord Jesus Christ prevail in them, and impute unto them His righteousness and obedience. Plant them into His Death and Resurrection; make them members of His body; put Him upon them, that they may be Thy sons and heirs, and continue for ever. Grant us also,
that, after Baptism, we may acknowledge them Thy children, and members of the body of Thy Son; that we may godly bring them up in the fear of Thee, unto Thy glory; that we may help them in all corporal and spiritual things; that also by them Thy holy Name may be the more magnified, the kingdom of Thy Son enlarged, Thy will be done in this earth as in heaven. Furthermore, keep them safe, give them bounteously the necessaries of life, and preserve them from all evil. Amen."
Note (N) on page 144.
Burges (Baptismal Regeneration of Elect Infants) produces three passages from the Fathers, to prove that though they speak of regeneration as universally accompanying Baptism, yet they are to be understood as limiting this to the elect. "It is true," he says, (p. 129) "that the Fathers except none; but this proves not that they therefore held none as excepted by God, nay they often declare the contrary." The three passages he produces are of course the strongest he could find: they are from St. Chrysostom, St. Jerome, and St. Augustine.
The passage of St. Chrysostom is mistranslated. Burges translates "Some, when ready to breathe their last, run unto Baptism, and yet are never a whit the more purged by it;" and argues that "these persons are not such as resist the Spirit by a wicked heart and corrupt life: but men, even at the point of death, apprehending a necessity of remission of sin by Christ, and hastening to initiation, which argues an earnest desire after the grace of Baptism, and yet they go away without it. Therefore they of whom he speaketh are not such as do resist the Spirit, when they are baptized." But St. Chrysostom says, "How am I pained when I see others hastening to their last gasp, and not even thence coming to a better mind!" And he is speaking of those who delay Baptism, and at last receive it ungratefully, and "even if they recover, think that an injury has been done them;" [in that they could not now again have the full remission of Baptism.]
St. Jerome, in Gal. iii. 27, is speaking manifestly of adults, of those "who, whether heretics, or hypocrites, or living in sin, (qui sordide victitant,) appear to receive Baptism, but he doubts whether they have the clothing of Christ;" and with these he joins Simon Magus, who "had received (acceperat) the washing of water, but because he had not (habebat) the Holy Spirit, had not put on Christ." "There are many washings," he says on Ezek. xvi. 4. "which the heathen in their mysteries, and the heretics promise, who all give a washing, but not to salvation. Wherefore it is added, 'and thou wast not washed in water to salvation.' Which may be understood not only of heretics, but of members of the Church, who do not with full faith receive saving Baptism: Of whom it must be said, that they received water, but not the Spirit, as also that Simon Magus, who wished to purchase the grace of God with money, was baptized with water, but by no means to salvation." St. Jerome then looked upon Simon Magus' sin as commencing with his Baptism, not as a subsequent relapse; that he came to Baptism feignedly; not led by the Spirit of God, but for filthy lucre, and therefore he of course received not its grace. This all Christians who adopted the same view of Simon Magus' case (see above, p. 172 sq.) would alike hold. But it is not thereby implied that he failed of receiving that grace, because God had not chosen him to receive it: rather, he received it not on account of his own sin.
The statement of St. Augustine is not taken directly from his works, but (as Burges says) from Peter Lombard (Sent. L. 4. Dist. 4. A.) and with some misgiving that "P. Lombard may have wronged him." The statement is "Sacramenta in solis electis efficiunt quod figurant." "The Sacraments work what they shadow forth in the elect only." And for this the 'De Baptismo parvulorum' is alleged. This same sentiment, in the same words, and probably on the same authority, is also alleged to be St. Augustine's by Calvin, (Institt. 4. 14. 15.) But neither in the three books "de peccatorum meritis et remissione, et de Baptismo parvulorum," nor in the Homily so entitled (Serm. 294. alias 14. de verbis Apostoli), nor, as far as I can discover, in any other work of St. Augustine, is there any such sentiment. And not this only, but it appears to be in contradiction with St. Augustine's genuine sentiments. On the contrary he uniformly contrasts (as above said, p. 88.) the case of infants baptized and those unbaptized, the one being elected to the gift of regeneration, and so (if they die early) to the kingdom of Heaven; the other, as being unregenerated, being 'left.' "Rightly thou sayest, he answers Julian, 'that justice lies in the depth of Deity.' In this depth is it, that it is 'neither of him that willeth, nor of him that runneth, but of God that showeth mercy.' In this depth is it, that that little one is adopted to honour by the washing of regeneration, that other is left in dishonour, not to be admitted into the kingdom, where there is no merit or demerit in either by any choice of will. Behold, two little ones lie there; one of them dies baptized, the other unbaptized: to which of them will you say that God is merciful? If to the one, show wherein is the ill desert of the other, thou who deniest original sin: if to both, show me any good deserts of the baptized, thou who deniest grace, where there is no accepting of persons; and say, if thou canst, why He would not adopt both, who doubtless created both in His own image? Neither of them refused, so that you might suppose the Divnne power hindered by the demerits of the human will: here then to neither can God say, 'I willed and thou wouldst not.' And yet one is taken and the other is left, because great is the free mercy of God and true is the justice of God. But why the one more than the other? 'The judgments of God are unsearchable.'" (Op. Imperf. c. Julian. L. 1. § 38, 9.) And so he on each occasion shuts up the question by the appeal "Oh the depth of the riches!" (e.g. de Bapt. Parv. § 7.) but doubts not that all baptized children are regenerated, and have the full benefits of Baptism.
St. Augustine's opinions may be still further illustrated, by observing who, in his opinion, miss of the grace of Baptism, or receive the grace without any benefit. They are two classes only; first, those who receive it with a wrong disposition, either unholiness in those within or without the Church, or want of love in those who separate themselves from her; 2d, those who having received it fall back into their evil courses. He imagines then no other obstacles than the whole Church would account such, want of sincerity and of charity: and these the whole Church would regard as precluding the grace of Baptism, as well as of the Communion; as the whole Church (with the exception of a very small section) would suppose that all grace, and so that of Baptism might be forfeited; but St. Augustine does not in the least imply that God does not make His own Sacraments effectual means of grace in those, who place no such obstacle. St. Augustine's views on this point were particularly brought out by the Donatist controversy The Donatists, namely, proceeding on their principle that the purity of the minister was essential to the validity of the Sacraments, contended that the Catholic Baptism was invalid, since their communion was not pure; and that their own communion must by the Catholics be allowed to be pure, and themselves to be the true Church, since these admitted the Baptism administered by Donatists to be valid, (c. Donat. L. 1. § 13. 15.) The Donatists also had the further object to show that it was safer to receive Baptism among them than in the Church; since the Catholics also allowed that their Baptism was valid, while they disallowed that of the Catholics: thus they sought to draw people over to their schism, by inviting people to accept as truth what both parties were agreed in, the validity of Donatist Baptism, and not to notice what was alleged by one only, either the actual invalidity of the Catholic Baptism, which the Donatists asserted, or the unprofitableness of valid Baptism in schism, which was maintained by the Catholics, (Ib. § 4.) St. Augustine answered, that the Sacrament had its validity not of men but of God; and that therefore it was a valid Baptism, if rightly administered, but that it followed not that it was efficacious to those who received it; for that its benefits might be intercepted or suspended. "Can a dead man give life to any—a wounded heal—a blind enlighten—a naked clothe—a polluted cleanse?" asked Parmenian, wishing from these effects of Baptism, administered through them, to prove that they were neither dead, wounded, blind, naked, nor polluted, but the true Church. St. Augustine answered, "Why claims he what is not man's to give? For the Lord raiseth the dead, the Lord healeth the wounded, the Lord enlighteneth the blind, the Lord cleanseth the polluted." (c. Epist. Parmeniani, L. 2. § 32). Again they urged him, "If one receiving Donatist Baptism, receives the Baptism of Christ, he puts on Christ; and if so, he is regenerate, and if regenerate, his sins are forgiven, and if this, then the Holy Spirit is there present, (Mat. xxviii. 19. Job. xx. 22.) and then our communion is the Church of Christ, (since the Holy Spirit does not work the forgiveness of sins except in the Church,) and then also, since the Church of Christ is but one, your (the Catholic) communion is not the Church of Christ." (Ibid. 9. § 15, 16.) St. Augustine answers this partly by an appeal to their own principles, partly on his own. "What," he asks, "is the case of one who comes feignedly to Baptism? Are his sins forgiven or no?" If the Donatists were to say they were, then they could no longer urge the principle upon which they objected to Catholic Baptism, that "the Holy Spirit of discipline flees deceit;" (Wisd. i. 5.) as if the Holy Spirit could not be imparted through Baptism, when administered by an unworthy minister:—if they answered they were not forgiven, St. Augustine again asks, "is such an one then to be re-baptized, if with real grief of heart he confess his hypocrisy?—and since it were madness to say this, then they must confess that a man may be baptized with the Baptism of Christ, and yet that his heart continuing in malice or profaneness (sacrilegio) would preclude his receiving remission of sins; and so the Donatists might understand that in communions separated from the Church men might be baptized, where the Baptism of Christ was given and received according to the same form of the Sacrament, and yet this Baptism first begin to avail to the remission of sins, when one being reconciled to the unity of the Church, was freed from the sacrilege of dissent, whereby his sins were retained and could not be remitted. As in the case of the hypocritical receiver, he is not baptized again, but that sinfulness is cleansed by correction of life and faithful confession, which could not be without Baptism, so that what was before given them begins to avail to salvation, when that hypocrisy is removed by a true confession: so also he, who being an enemy of the love and peace of Christ, has received the Baptism of Christ, (which they who have separated have not lost in a heretical or schismatical communion,) by which sacrilegious guilt his sins were not remitted, when he have corrected himself and come to the communion and unity of the Church, he is not again to be baptized, because by that very reconciliation and peace, the Sacrament, which received in schism could not profit him, now in the unity (of the Church) for the first time avails to the remission of sins." (Ib. § 18.)
Another view of the Donatists gives occasion to a further explanation, which throws great light on St. Augustine's views of Baptism. "It may be," they said, (ib. § 19.) "the sins of him, who came hypocritically to Baptism, may, through the holy power of so great a Sacrament, be for that moment forgiven, but return immediately on account of his hypocrisy; so that the Holy Spirit were both present with the baptized, so that his sins should depart, and fled from his persevering hypocrisy, so that they returned; whereby both sayings would be true; 'As many as have been baptized into Christ have put on Christ,' and 'the Holy Spirit of discipline will flee the feigned soul,' i.e. the holiness of Baptism would clothe him with Christ, and the evil of hypocrisy would strip him of Christ. As when one passes from darkness to darkness through light, the eyes are constantly directed to darkness, but the light cannot but bedew him as he passeth through.'" This of course admits of the same application to want of love as to want of faith; and St. Augustine so applies it: but in so doing, he enters more largely into the subject, and justifies the position itself by the parable of the unforgiving servant, whose debt was once forgiven, though he had not yet forgiven his fellow-servant, but on his unforgivingness was again required of him. "Thus," says St. Augustine, "the grace of Baptism is not hindered, but that it remits all sins, yea, though he to whom they are forgiven continue to hate his brother in his heart. For yesterday, and all before that, and also the very hour and moment before Baptism and in Baptism is remitted. But afterwards, he begins immediately to be guilty, not only of subsequent, but of past days, hours, moments, every thing which was forgiven, again returning;" "and this," he adds, "often happens in the Church." (§ 20.) These cases then St. Augustine clearly puts forth, either that a man may through some defect at the time, whether of faith or love, prevent the effect of the Sacrament of Baptism, or after he have received it, may again extinguish it; which last, unhappily, was a frequent case in the Church. And this he expresses again (§ 24.) most explicitly: "At whatever time then in this life men begin to be such, that though they have been imbued with the Divine Sacraments, according to the dispensation of the times (Eph. i. 10.) they are carnally minded, and hope and desire of God carnal things, whether in or after this life, they are natural men (animales). (1 Cor. ii. 14.) These are not to be despaired of:" but "whether they seem to be within the Church, or are openly without, that which is flesh is flesh: whether they continue on the floor in their barrenness, or on occasion of some temptation, are carried out, as by a wind, what is chaff is chaff." (§ 26.)
These passages fully exhibit St. Augustine's views, as to what characters miss of or lose baptismal grace, as his writings against the Pelagians (above p. 85–89) declare, whom he believed to obtain it, and their privileges; for, as has been observed, whereas the Greek fathers principally regard Baptism with reference to the subsequent life, and so as a birth, St. Augustine regards it mainly with reference to the past condition of subjection to sin (whether by nature or actual transgression), and so comprises all the blessings of Baptism under that one, the remission of all sin, original and actual; he considered Baptism principally as the "death to sin," whereof "the new birth to righteousness," was a part and a consequence, since sin separates us from God; and the death to sin is reunion with God: (as Bp. Davenant well says, ad Col. 2. 13. ap. Gat. p. 94.) "With this forgiveness of sins, which restores life to the soul, there must always be understood as connected with it, an infusion of sanctifying grace, which, in another sense, gives life. For, when sin is remitted, not only is guilt taken away, but the will, which had been disordered by sins and slain, is restored to life and order through grace. An infusion then of grace is always united with forgiveness of offence.") Often then as St. Augustine speaks of those who miss of Baptismal grace, they are always these two classes, those who are wanting in faith or love, hypocrites or heretics. (Ep. 93. ad Vincentium Rogatistam, § 46. Ep. 108. ad Macrobium. In Joann. Evang. c. 1. Tract. 6. § 14. Serm. 268. § 2. c. Faust. L. 12. c. 17. against the unfaithful, Quæst. ad Num. L. 4. § 11. against both, in Psalm 77. § 2. Serm. 90. in Evang. Mt. 22. § 5.) and so also in this passage of the Hom. de Baptismo Parvulor. in Ps. 78. which alone has any reference to the matter for which it is alleged—"and yet," he says, "the grace of Baptism is not alike to all," "for," he adds, "heretics have the same Baptism, and false brethren in the communion of the Catholic name." The parallel between these two classes runs through the whole of his books against the Donatists; of which might be named, especially, the De Baptismo contra Donatistas and the Contra Cresconium Donatistam. If then, innumerably often as he specifies these classes, he names no others, one should infer, on this ground alone, that St. Augustine held, that all baptized persons, of whatever age, received the benefits of baptism, those excepted who placed a bar of unbelief in heart or life against it. Even these, St. Augustine maintained to have received real baptism, (since it could not be repeated,) and that its benefits lay, as it were, in them, then to be realized, whenever they should, in heart and mind, turn to God. "When Baptism," he says, "is given in the Gospel words, however perversely he may understand it, through whom it is given, or he, to whom it is given, it is in itself Holy, for His sake, Whose it is. But if he who receives it be a perverted one, neither does that which is given, avail such to salvation, and yet that which is received remains holy in him, nor is repeated to him, if he be reformed." (de Bapt. c. Don. L. 4. §. 18.) There can, then, be no ground why we should limit St. Augustine's full and positive language, wherein he declares the undoubted regeneration of all baptized infants; and if St. Augustine not only doubt not, but assert thus earnestly, the Baptismal regeneration of all infants, it will not be readily supposed, that any other teacher of the Ancient Church hesitated thereon. Two short declarations of his belief may yet be subjoined. "In little ones born, and not as yet baptized, be Adam acknowledged: in little ones born and baptized and therefore (ob hoc) regenerate, be there acknowledged Christ." Serm. 74. (al. 8. de verbis Ap.) §. 9. "From the little one just born, to the decrepit old man, as no one is to be kept from baptism, so there is none who does not die to sin in Baptism; but little ones only to original, the elder sort to all those also, which, by living ill, they have added to what they brought with them by birth." Enchirid. c. 43.
St. Augustine's theory, namely, of Predestination, did not involve the doctrine of the indefectibility of grace: this he explicitly and fully states, (de Corrept. et Grat. §. 20.) "Nor let that move us, that God does not give that perseverance to some of His sons. Far be it that it should be so, if they were of those predestinated and called according to His purpose, who are truly the sons of the promise. But they, while they live piously, are called sons of God; but because they are about to live impiously and to die in that impiety, the foreknowledge of God does not call them sons of God. For there are some, who are by us called sons of God, on account of their having admitted grace, if but for a time; but they are not so in God's sight; of whom John says, 'they went out from us, for they were not of us; for if they had been of us, they would have remained with us'—they were not sons, even when they had the profession and name of sons, not as if their righteousness were feigned, but because they remained not in it For he does not say, 'for if they had been of us, they would have maintained a real, not a feigned, righteousness with us,' but 'would have remained with us.' Doubtless what he wished them to remain in was good. They were then in it: but because they remained not in it, i.e., did not persevere to the end, they were not of the number of sons, even when they were in the faith of sons." The very title "deserter," with which St. Augustine often says (e. g. in Ps. 39, 1. de Symbolo §. 15.) that Baptism brands those who neglect to profit by it, or destroy its efficacy by schism, attests his belief that they once had its grace.
In like manner his disciple and defender, Prosper of Aquitaine, who, in some respects, carried his theory of Predestination further than his master, yet says explicitly upon this point, (Prosper ad object. Gallor. c. 2.) "He who denies that one who has relapsed, after Baptism, to infidelity and a wicked life, was freed from sin, thinks as falsely as he who asserts that he will not be condemned to eternal death. If any one recede from Christ, and ends this life, alienated from grace, what doth he but fall into perdition? yet, he doth not fall back into that which was remitted, nor will he be condemned in original sin; but for his last sins, he will receive that death, which was due to him for those, which were forgiven him." And, again, (pro Augustin. ad Capitul. Gall. Obj. 70 "Of the regenerated in Christ Jesus, that some, abandoning the faith and a holy life, apostatize from God, and finish an impious life in aversion of Him, is, alas! proved, by many examples." And this dreadful truth furnished St. Augustine with matter of solemn warning to others, whom yet he held to have been regenerated. Hence, also, it happens, "that having fallen and abandoned themselves to hurtful pleasures, not only do they cease to be temples of God, but become even ruins, in which evil demons dwell, whom they begin to worship and to serve, and 'to them,' as was said, 'the last state becomes worse than the first.' Wherefore, ye who have 'been born again of immortal seed,'" &c. (Sermo 353, in die octavar, Infantium, T. 5. p. 1374); and again he thus concludes a sermon preached on the day of a public Baptism, with a prayer for those who had just been baptized.
"O Lord, hear us! make us, for Thou hast made us. Make us good, for Thou hast made us men enlightened. They, in white apparel, enlightened, hear Thy word through me. For, enlightened by Thy grace, they stand by Thee. 'This is the day which the Lord hath made.' But let them labour and pray, that when those days are gone, they may not become darkness who are now made the light of the wonders and goodness of God." (S. 120. in Joann. al. de Divers. 84. fin.) The solemnity of the warnings of the fathers are proportioned (as is natural) to the greatness of their conception of the gift bestowed upon us all.
This view is remarkably confirmed by the Baptismal Liturgies of the Antient Church, wherein the title for the newly-baptized is the elect "the newly-elect," as in the Latin Church (Assem. Cod. Lit. T. i. p. 110, sqq.), and Greek (T. ii. p. 133). Election to Baptism is also implied in the Armenian (ib. p. 194. 199, 200) and the Coptic (ib. T. i. p. 149. 160. 167.). They felt the blessedness of being elected to be members of Christ, and sought no further.
Note (O), on page 161.
The holiness, which we learn, from 1 Cor. vii. 14, to belong to the infants of a Christian parent, is, by the Fathers, generally understood of "baptismal holiness;" actual holiness conferred upon them in Baptism: by the school of Calvin, generally of a covenant-holiness, and so of a title to the privileges of the covenant. The two interpretations nearly meet, except that the antients regard, more prominently, God's institution, as the means whereby Christian holiness is first conferred upon us; these moderns regard children as being holy by the will of God, whereof Baptism is the seal or attestation only. Yet, though the expression used by some moderns, "those born of faithful or believing parents," would be in itself ambiguous, it seems certain, that, under this name "believing," all are generally meant to be included who are, by profession. Christians; and so this holiness would belong to all children of Christians. This is, in fact, only to say, that moderns, when expressly commenting on this passage, have not ventured to limit the universality of St. Paul's declaration. The antients, as was said, universally explain this "holiness" of the benefits of Baptism. Thus, Tertullian—"So, truly is no birth, at least, no heathen birth, pure. Hence, also, the Apostle says, that of either sex which has been made holy, holy children are born, as well through the prerogative of the seed, as by the control of the institution;" "'otherwise,' says he, 'they were born unclean;' yet, wishing that the sons of believers should be understood as being destined for holiness, and thereby also for salvation; so, as by the pledge of this hope to maintain the marriages, which he judged right to be retained. Else he well remembered the saying of the Lord, 'Unless one be born of water and the Spirit, he shall not enter into the kingdom of Heaven;' i.e. shall not be holy. Thus, every soul is so long accounted in Adam, until it be accounted anew in Christ; and so long impure, until it be so accounted, and sinful because impure." (De Anima, c. 39, 40.) St. Augustine further shows, that he understood the former part, also, of the verse, "hath been sanctified" of Baptism. "I believe," he says, "it had already happened, that some women had come to the faith through believing husbands, and husbands through believing wives [such had been the case with St. Augustine's father]; and although he does not name them, yet, by their examples, he strengthens his advice. Then follows. Else were your children unclean, &c. For already there were Christian little ones, who, either by the direction of one of their parents, or by their united approval, had been sanctified" (baptized.) De Serm. Dom. in monte, S. i. c. 16[363]. In like manner, Pelagius paraphrases "are holy," by "are made Christians" (Ap. August, de Peccat. Merit. L. 3 c. 12.) St. Jerome relates, that this saying was verified in the family of the daughter of a priest of Jupiter, whose father was a candidate for the faith, his children and grandchildren believers. (Ep. 7. ad Laetam.) Paulinus (Bp. of Nola) takes for granted, that the former part is to be understood of Baptism. "How," he enquures of Jerome, "are they holy, who are born of believing, i.e., baptized parents, since, without the gift of grace (Baptism) afterwards received and kept, they cannot be saved?" imagining, apparently (as Wall conjectures), St. Paul to declare the children to be holy from their birth, whereas their parents' hohness would not make them holy. And Theodoret—"Even if either party continue in their disease, the seed shall partake of salvation (i.e., by admission into the fellowship with Christ, which is at Baptism);" so, also, the author of the Quæst. ad Antioch. Q. 114, quotes this text, with Matt. xix. 14, in proof that "the infant children of believers, if baptized, enter into the kingdom of heaven, themselves spotless and believing."
Ambrosiaster also implies that this holiness arises from a dedication to God. "They are holy, because born amid the worship of the Creator. For, as whatever takes place amid dedication to idols is unclean, so, whatever amid the profession of God the Creator, is holy." (ad loc. ap. Ambrosii Opp.)
The above are quoted by Wall, art. Tertullian, St. Austin (c. 15. § 2.) Paulinus (c. 18. § 4.), Pelagian Controversy (c. 19. § 19.) In the following, although he names the authors, he hardly does them justice; Chrysostom (ad Heb.) Spurious but ancient books, c. 23. § 3.
It is useful, however, for the present times, to show (as above stated, p. 163), that the "reformed" writers, although they, for the most part, exaggerated the holiness which the infants of Christian parents brought with them into the world, still held that this belonged to them, because their parents were outwardly in the covenant, not on account of their personal holiness.—"Wee speake not of the inherent holinesse of the child as regenerate, i.e., immediately from God, but of holinesse federal and ecclesiastical, which may be applyable to persons unregenerate, as Ps. l. 5. 16, 17. The parents visibly believing and inchurched, are instiTimentall causes of that holinesse of their children; yea, whether believers in veritie or onely visibilitie, it sufficeth thereunto; nor are little ones thus in covenant with God and His Church, without the visibilitie of faith in the parents, either past or present: personal holinesse consisteth not with living in known sinnes, but federal hohnesse may. Ezek. xvi." Cobbet's Vindication of the Covenant and Church Estate of Children of Church Members, and of their right to Baptism, p. 20.
"We say of our infants, that 'tis enough for us that their parents, or any other in whose power they are, do present them to the Church." P. Martyr. "The Apostle doth manifestly declare, that the children of believing parents are holy, yea, though but one of the parents believeth; by which holiness nothing else can be understood, than being within the covenant; whereby holy persons are distinguished from profane." Beza. "Upon this ground doth Paul strongly prove the believers might keep their unbelieving wives, because the children which they had by such, were (by reason that one parent was a Christian) holy; to wit, with holiness of the covenant made with the faithful and their seed. And in this respect, the children of those that are in the covenant are said to be born unto the Lord, and to be His children. Ezek. xvi. 8. 20, 21. And so the children of the Church are called the holy seede, differing herein from the seed of other people. Ezra ix. 2, 3." Ainsworth, Censure of Dialogue of Anab. p.67.
"This holiness is believed to consist in their belonging to the Church of Christ. For they are reckoned, as if both parents were holy. But if you ask how the sons of Christians belong to the Church or to Christ, we answer, no otherwise than the sons of the Hebrews, because they were of the posterity of Abraham, are said to be included in the covenant of God. For God promised to be not only his God, but the God of his seed. Gen. xvii. Therefore, our children are baptized, as those of the ancients were circumcised, because they are not to be accounted out of the Church." P. Martyr.
"Hereby is the phrenzy of the Anabaptists wholly condemned. For St. Paul has pronounced the children to be holy, on grounds of which men can judge; not from the working of faith, or election, or confession of faith, but from the promise of God, which was made to Abraham and his seed; I will be thy God, and of thy seed after thee; i.e., of the children who shall be born of thee. And we, in like manner, believe, that infants, born of believers, are holy; and, on that account, receive them into the Church, when offered for Baptism; yea, and offer remission of sins, which is of the promise of God, who, by that administration of the Sacraments, imparts Himself and His grace to us. We, as St. Paul, do not herein look to election, which is known to God only, nor confession of the lips, which infants cannot make, and which is not always true in adults, but mainly the promise of God. Then we look to that of which men can judge; that, namely, children who are born of a parent who calls upon God, are holy, and in the covenant of God, and therefore to be baptized." Bollinger ad loc.; so also Aretius.
The distinction between the two states of our children, before and after Baptism, is, in some measure, still expressed by Pareus (one of the reformed of Germany), who well says, "In the Church, we are born not Christians regenerated, but Christians to be regenerated;" and Ainsworth, l.c. p. 60. "The infants of the Church are, by the covenant of grace, of the body of Christ, even, as by nature, they are of the body and stock of Adam."
Note (P) on page 199.
In presenting this parallel between the interpretations of the Zuinglian or Calvinist school, and the early Socinians, on the subject of Baptism, no particular pains have been taken to select those in which there was most verbal resemblance: on the contrary, the writer recollects that he observed many passages in some principal writers of the reformed school, more exactly corresponding with the rationalist, or à priori, maxims of the Socinians, than those which he subsequently noted, and here exhibits: in other cases, he could not recover, without loss of time, the parallel passages to the Socinian statements, which had gradually drawn his attention to the similarity of the two schools. This appeared however of the less moment, and not worth a laboured research, inasmuch as it is the general similarity only of their mode of interpretation and their maxims, which is here held out as a warning: fuller identity, on this one doctrine of the Sacraments, might be established; but this, it is hoped, will suffice as a warning, and with that end only should such a parallel be presented. If the investigation is pursued as an historical subject, the interest which all inquiry, as such, involves, is likely to make the exhibition cease to be painful, and then it will probably be hurtful to those who engage in it.
Acts ii 38. | |
Zuingli-Calvinists. Piscator ad loc. "'for the remission of sins.' A metonymy of the subject: For it is not to obtain the remission of sins by this mean or instrument; since faith alone is that mean or instrument, whereby in the Gospel we lay hold of remission of sins;" and ap. Gat. p. 111. That those words 'for the remission of sins,' do not mean to obtain by this act remission of sins,' one may judge," &c. Calvin ad loc.—"Although, in the order of words, Baptism here precedes remission of sins, in reality it follows, since it is nothing else than the sealing of those good things which we obtain through Christ, that they may be established in our consciences. Since Baptism is a seal, whereby God confirms this benefit to us, it may rightly |
Socinians. Quoted with approbation by Wolzogen ad loc. Socinus de Bapt. Aquæ. c. 7.—"Since it is most certain that sins are effaced by repentance and faith, and that each must precede the baptism of water, if rightly received, sins being washed away by water-baptism can mean nothing else, than that it is declared by baptism that sins are already removed, and this is publicly as it were sealed." "The words washing, purging, cleansing, expiating, remitting, &c. in Holy Scripture often mean not the thing itself, but the declaration of that thing; so F. Vatablus in many places of the Old Testament." "Peter by no means attributes remission of sins to that Baptism, or solemn ablution, but |
"be said to be given to us 'for the remission of sins.'"
Sclater, in Rom. ii. 25. ap. Gat. p. 92.—"The meaning of Act. ii. 38. xxii. 26. is, that Baptism is to be received as a seal, for the greater certainty of pardon. For had not the Jews believed, and Paul repented, before they were baptized? But, who knows not that remission belongs, by the Divine promise, to those who believe and truly repent? Why then are they to be baptized? For a fuller confirmation." Walæus, Disp. 44. de Bapt. Thes. 27. 29. ap. Gat. p. 97.—"Scripture requires beforehand, in all who are to be baptized, faith and repentance, and so the beginning and seed of regeneration; therefore regeneration cannot be begun in Baptism; for the cause cannot be subsequent to the effect." Malcolm, ad loc. ap. Gat. p. 92. paraphrases "Receive Baptism, a sign of remission of sins." Peter Martyr, ad. 1 Reg. 8. f. 73. v.—"If the Divine Scriptures seem to attribute remission of sins or salvation to the outward symbols, that is to be understood as a metonymy, whereby what belongs to the things signified is given to the sign, and the things signified are expressed by their symbols." Ad Rom. p. 608. ibid. "Sacraments have the same relation to justification, as the preaching of the Gospel and the promise concerning Christ, which is offered to us to salvation. For frequently in the Sacraments, what belongs to the thing itself, is ascribed to the Sacraments." Danæus (adv. Bellar. t. ii. contr. ii. 42. c. 14. ad arg. ap. Gat. p. 103.) in answer to the argument that "Holy Scripture attests that Sacraments are instruments, not seals only," answers,—"Instruments and signs, yea, though they only seal and attest, are said by a trope and metonymy to do that which they |
"meant to ascribe every thing to repentance, before named; or, if he meant to take account at all of that outward washing, he did not mean the very remission itself, but a sort of declaration and sealing of the remission. And, in many places in the New Testament, in which sins are said to be remitted, or the like phrase, this is either by a Hebrew idiom, or by a simple metonymy common to all languages, and they signify not the thing itself, but the declaration of the things. This by the way, which will not however be useless to the right understanding of all those places, where remission of sins either is, or seems to be, attributed to Baptism." |
"seal." So Whitaker de Sacr. ib. p. 103. Ames, adv. Bell, ib. p. 112. Danæus, ib. "Not to obtain, but to attest, a real remission of sins." | |
Acts viii. 37. | |
Zuingli-Calvinists. |
Socinians. |
Acts xxii. 16. | |
Chamier, t. iv. 1. 2. c. 3. § 15. ap. Gat. p. 104.—"It is not necessary that remission of sins should here be attributed to Baptism; for there are three things, 'Arise, be baptized, wash away thy sins.' Nor is remission, or the power of remitting, necessarily attributed to Baptism, more than Baptism, or the power of baptizing, to the 'arising.' But if it be absurd to attribute that power to the 'arising,' it certainly is not necessary to attribute it to Baptism."
Piscator, ad loc.—"He does not mean, to obtain remission of sins by this mean or instrument, because faith alone is the mean or instrument whereby we lay hold on remission of sins in the |
Wolzogen, ad loc.—"It is not hence to be inferred, that sins are properly washed away by the very water of Baptism. For sins are the defilements of the soul, not of the body; therefore they cannot be effaced by material water, which only washes the body. But by the Baptism of water, as an outward sign, a declaration is made of what ought to take place within. Not unfrequently words which signify purifying are used for the declaration and attestation of purifying. This washing away and effacing of sins, with their remission by God, is not to be attributed to Baptism only, but to true faith, and profession of the name of Christ, whereof Baptism is an adjunct. And |
"Gospel. But Baptism is a mean or instrument which the Holy Spirit uses to confirm faith." Willett, Synops. Papismi, contr. 11. q. 2. "Wee answer, that the text joineth with the Sacrament the invocation of the name of God, to the which salvation is promised. (Rom. x. 13). Wherefore that place (Acts xxii. 16.) maketh nothing to your purpose," (that the Sacraments wash away sins). In nearly the same words, Fulke, Rhem. Test. Zuingli, ad Fridol. Dindov. t i. f. 204. "Baptism is here ( 1 Pet. iii.) taken for faith, for it alone saves us." Calv. ad loc. "Paul's sins were already remitted to him. He was not then washed by Baptism, but had a new confirmation of that favour which he had obtained." So Malcolm, ad loc. ap Gat. p. 104. See also above, pp. 47. 119, &c. | "those words, 'wash away thy sins,' may be referred, not to the preceding, but to what follows; so that the washing away of sins may be attributed, not to Baptism itself, but to the calling on the name of the Lord, and what is contained under it." Crell. Opp. Exeg. t. iii. p. 135. "Remission of sins is attributed to Baptism, not by virtue of the outward rite, but by the profession of the name of Christ, which is inseparably united with this rite, if duly performed." Socinus, de Bapt. Aquæ, c. 7. approves of the last expedient, quoted above, from Wolzogen, and again—"Though it should be admitted that Ananias, when he exhorted Paul to be baptized, and wash away his sins, calling upon the name of the Lord, meant that sins were washed away by Baptism, i.e. by that outward washing, it would not follow that he said that the sins themselves were really effaced by Baptism, but only that it was openly shown, and as it were sealed, that they were effaced." |
Gal. iii. 27. | |
P. Martyr, in 1 Reg. 8 f.73.v.—"On the whole, this is to be held, that outward signs do not in anywise unite us with Christ, but are given to us when so united. What is said to the Galatians is so to be understood. If 'to put on Christ,' is to be a member of Him, this precedes Baptism; if to express, in action and life, the character of a son of God, this follows after Baptism." | Crellius, Opp. Exeget. t. iii. p. 233.—"'To put on Christ,' is not only to take the disposition and actions of Christ, but His state and condition in the grace of sonship with God. Christ could and ought to be put on before Baptism, which took place doubtless in the house of Cornelius, to whom the Holy Spirit was given before Baptism (Acts x. 44.); and it may be repeated afterwards, as we |
Fulke, Rhenish Testament.—"The Apostle reasoneth from the signe to the things signified, to prove that by faith in Christ we are the children of God, because Baptism, representing our putting on of Christ as a garment, is a seal of justification by faith, as circumcision was to Abraham—no cause, but a testimony of his justification. As also Cornehus, and they that were with him, had their hearts purified by faith, and received the Holy Ghost. Whereby God testified that Baptisme giveth not grace, of the work wrought, but is a seal of grace," &c.
Piscator ad loc—"Baptism is a divine testimony to believers, that they have put on Christ, or are engraffed into Christ. But they err who infer hence, that all who are baptized put on Christ." See also P. Martyr on Cornelius above, p. 138, Note. |
"learn from the Apostle's exhortation, Rom. xiii. 14. The Apostle, in that in this place he joins this 'putting on of
Christ' with Baptism, or rather with the baptized, does not mean that Christ is properly put on through Baptism itself, but that Baptism is an argument, that they who received it have put on Christ; which itself, lastly, is to be favourably interpreted, not that it is always so, but that it ought to be, and is therefore by the charity [the 'ex judicio charitatis' of the Reformed school] which suspecteth no evil, to be presumed to take place also, unless any thing prevent." Opp. Exeg. t. i. p 44, and ad loc. "The Galatians, by the means of the faith and religion which they had embraced from his teaching, were altogether united and engraffed into Christ. By Baptism, they attested that they put on Christ, i.e. thoroughly embraced His religion and manner of life, were conformed to Him, and so engraffed and united with Him. For in fact, Christ is put on out of Baptism, chiefly by the very manner of life; whence Paul exhorts the Romans, who had long ago been baptized, to put on the Lord Jesus Christ; but by a certain shadowing out and profession, it takes place in Baptism." So also Slichtingius, ad Rom. xiii. 14. F. Socinus, although on the whole he inclines to the interpretation, "that the Galatians, when they were baptized into Christ, of necessity professed that they had put on Christ, and wished to put Him on;" yet he is well content with that other, which would deny any reference to water-baptism, in that it had been said before, "for ye are all sons of God |
"through faith in Christ Jesus." "Herein faith is expressly treated of, whereby we are made sons of God, which is obtained not by the Baptism of water, but of the Spirit, and without which there may be Baptism of water, but of the Spirit there cannot be. Whereas then there is immediately subjoined, 'For whoever,' &c.; which words are the ground of the preceding, according to the force of the particle 'for,' [see on the contrary Chrysostome above, p. 30.] "not water Baptism, but some spiritual Baptism seems to be the subject." | |
Rom. vi. 3. | |
Zuingli-Calvinists. | Socinians. |
Zuingli ad loc.—"In the outward sign of Baptism ye may understand how ill sins become you. The dipping of your body into the water was a sign, that you ought to be engraffed into Christ and His death; that as He died and was buried, so you also should be dead to the flesh, and your old man, i.e. yourselves."
Peter Martyr, ad loc,—"Being baptized into Christ, means nothing else than to be initiated, under His command, direction, auspices. And by this figure of speech it is signified that we pass into Christ, so as to be united with Him most closely in faith, hope, and charity. As soldiers to a commander, so we are bound to Christ in Baptism, and swear that we never after will fall away to the devil." |
Crell. Opp. Exeg. t. i, p. 342. "Christians profess, by the rite of Baptism, that they wish to become as dead." Id. t. ii. p, 122, 123.—"The Baptism of Christ not only represents repentance and remission of sins, i.e. is received as a sign of repentance to be performed, and remission of sins to be obtained; but moreover as a sign that Christ is to be put on; and with Him we must die to sin, and rise again to newness of life."—Slichtingius, ad loc. Opp. t. i. p. 210. "We bound ourselves by Baptism, yea, we expressed, as it were, by a sort of figure and similitude, that we would become partakers of Christ's death, or die with Christ. But what other death to which all we, who are Christians bound ourselves by Baptism, can be meant, than to die to sin? This alone engraffs all Christians into Christ by the likeness of death." |
Tit. iii. 5. | |
Piscator in anal. c. 3. Tit. "God saves us by regeneration | Socinus Elenchi Sophistici. Fratr. Pol. t. 1. p. 644, "People, |
"and renovation of the Holy Spirit, as it were by a sort of bath, whereby we are cleansed from the defilement of sin, of which bath, Baptism is a seal." Thes. Theol. vol. i. loc. 25. § 20. "By 'the washing of regeneration' the Apostle does not seem to mean Baptism, but regeneration itself, which he compares with a bath." Sclater in Rom. ii. 15. (ap. Gat. p. 102.) "It is doubtful whether (Tit. iii. 5.) the Sacraments be spoken of, or the Spirit only." Zuingli resp. ad Luther, confess. "That theologians have, and do, greatly err herein, matters not. For they understand not that those sayings of Paul, Tit. iii. Ep. v. 'of the washing of water by the word' and 'the bath of regeneration' are enallages, i.e. interterchanges of functions, whereby there is attributed to the signs, what they merely signify." Gataker, l.c. "It may well be doubted whether the Sacrament of Baptism or the internal washing be here meant." Vorstius anti-Bellarm. ad t. 3. contr. 1. Thes. 1 et 2. ad rat. 2. ex Eph. v. Tit. iii. (ap. Gat. p. 121.) p. 350. "Those of our side answer, that these testimonies (Eph. v. 26. Tit. iii. 5.) are foreign to the purpose, since they declare, metaphorically, the things which are signified in the Sacraments, but do not treat of the Sacraments properly so called." "The Evangelicals (Calvinists) answer, that this | "not observing the ambiguity, have believed that Baptism is meant by the washing of regeneration; and that thereby, if it be received rightly, men are regenerated; whereas, unless I am greatly deceived, Paul, by the 'washing of regeneration,' means that regeneration, whereby we are washed, i.e. cleansed from our sins, and that in two ways; 1st, because he who is regenerated puts off his sins, and is thus freed from the defilements of sin; 2dly, because he who is freed from sins escapes all penalty for past sins.' Crellius, de Satisfact. Christi. Opp. t. 4. p. 167. explains it "a bath of that sort, whereby we become new men, yea, or new creatures in mind, will, and actions, which washing St. Paul ascribes to the Holy Spirit. 1 Cor. vi. 11. For to this same action there concur the death of Christ, the Holy Spirit, the word of the Gospel, which is proximately employed to effect it." And ad loc. "The 'Holy Spirit' implies that, whereby that washing takes place which produced regeneration and renovation. And this is nothing else than the application to ourselves of what the Holy Spirit, putting itself forth in the word of God, dictates to us, and thus the laying aside of the defilements of the mind and will. Hence results a regeneration or renovation, i.e. such a change of |
"is a petitio principii, in that those effects are referred to the outward water of Baptism, which, in the passages cited, (Eph. v. Tit. iii. &c.) are directly adapted to Christ Himself and His blood and Spirit by the intervention of faith, conceived from the Gospel," &c. Ib. Contr. 2. thes. 6, 7. p. 376; and again p. 367. "They speak of the things signified by the Sacrament, not of the Sacra** ment;" and p. 357. "There is in the allegation of these passages a fallacy arising from an ambiguous term, and a figure of speech: since Baptism is often not the sacramental sign, especially taken apart, but the internal purifying or ablution of the mind, either alone, or again regarded together with its sign." P. Martyr ad 1. Reg 8. f. 73. v. "The soul, which is a spirit, and incorporeal, is not cleansed with these palpable and bodily things." So Willett, Synops. Papismi Contr. 11. Q. 2. and Fulke, Rhem. Test. "God hath saved us by the renewing of the Holy Ghost, which is testified by the Sacrament of Baptism," &c. | "the man, that, as to mind and will, you suddenly appear a new, yea, a different man: as to the mind, by knowledge of the Divine will, as to the will, by executing it." Slichtingius, ad loc. Opp. t. 2. p. 287. "We are saved, says the Apostle, by a washing, which is regeneration, whereby we are made other men, and renovation, whereby we are made new men. He shows that he is not speaking of the washing of the body, which does not reach the mind, but of the spiritual washing, whereby the defilements of the mind, not of the body, are done away. The defilements of the mind are vices and sins. That the Holy Spirit is spoken of as water, the word 'washing' shows; and that it is said to be poured upon us most abun dantly. He does not then here treat of material water, or water properly so called, which is employed in Baptism, but of the washing of water, which is the Holy Spirit. For Christ alone has the power and efficacy of regenerating and renewing us. The washing of water, which is contained in Baptism, only so far belongs here, as it is a sign and Sacrament instituted by God of the washing of the Holy Spirit, or of the regeneration and renovation which take place through the Holy Spirit." |
Heb. x. 22. (1 Pet. iii. 21.) | |
Calvi ad loc. "What follows | Crellius ad Heb. Opp. Exeget. |
"of the 'body washed with pure water' most understand of Baptism, but it seems more probable to me that the Apostle alludes to the old ceremonies of the law, and so under the name of water designates the Spirit of God, as in Ezek. xxxvi. 25. This is sanctification, not what consists in the visible pomp of ceremonies, but a firm faith, a pure conscience, cleanness of body and soul, which flows from, and is affected by, the Spirit of God. (Coll. 2 Cor. vii. 1.") Piscator ad loc. finds the same reference to legal ablutions only. Zuingli is, as usual, the source; (ad libell. D. Balthazar, f. 100.) He paraphrases thus: "If ye wash your hearts, and so your inner man, by purity and innocence, then are ye indeed washed and purified by a far better bath than those of old, (under the law,) who, washing away the filth of the body, neglected, altogether, the contagions and pollutions of the mind." The whole argument of Crellius is indeed what we have above (p. 98, 99.) seen in Zuingli, who also speaks of the water that is the heavenly doctrine." De Pecc. Orig. Opp. t. ii. f. 121. v. and the "spiritual water." Ad loc. "water is the symbol of doctrine and instruction." Id. t. i. P. 2. p. 404. and p. 142, 143. 172. "Baptism is teaching." De Bapt. t. ii. f. 61, 78. de vera et falsa relig. f. 201. v. | t. ii. p. 176. "There is no occasion, in this allegory, to suppose that any thing directly corresponds to pure water, since the sacred author seems to allude to the custom, under the law, of washing the body with pure water. But if any one seeks a fuller resemblance, the spirit and doctrine of Christ, or that spiritual water, wherewith Christ bedews His, not excluding His blood, will be to be understood. For by this water is it, that the filth of sins are washed away. For water-baptism is only an outward sign and shadowing of that ablution which the author here means; whereby neither our hearts can be sprinkled, nor the filth of sins be really washed away. That Spiritual Baptism then, which indeed saves us, is here to be understood: that, I say, which, according to Peter, is not the putting away of the filth of the flesh, or the outward washing of the body, but the answer of a good conscience towards C, (1 Pet. iii. 21.) which is not effected by any elemental water, but by that heavenly and spiritual, whereof we spoke." So also Socinus de Bapt. Aquæ c. 12. Crell. Respons. ad Grot. Opp. t. iv. p. 218. "'To sprinkle from an evil conscience' is to free and purge the mind from sin, as to have 'the body washed with pure water' is to be pure from outward sins, which are done in the body." |
1 Cor. xii. 13. | |
Zuingli-Calvinists. | Socinians. |
P. Martyr in 1 Reg. 8. "This is not to be explained as if we first pass into the body of Christ by outward Baptism, since we were of the body of Christ before, and were outwardly baptized, that this might be attested and sealed, as the token given to a soldier does not enroll, but is given to him when enrolled."
Zuingli de Bapt. f. 62. "Those Baptisms (water, the Spirit, outward teaching, the whole Gospel) do not always come together, nor is there any reason that they should." Zuingli Hist. Dom. Ascens. p. 404. "The Baptism then of the Spirit, which is faith, follows that of water." |
Socinus de Bapt. aquæ, c. 8,—"He sets forth the Baptism of the Spirit, which is wont to be opposed to the Baptism of water; so far from our being obliged, or justified in understanding a water-baptism, when we find that expression."—"And if any one would think with himself, and abstract himself awhile from inveterate opinions, he will see and confess that Christians are united into one body by the Baptism, not of water, but of the Holy Spirit. For, since water-baptism is an outward thing and visible to all, it cannot be said to join together and form the true body of Christians, (whereto the argument of the opponents must needs relate,) i.e. the true Church, which is not seen with bodily eyes; but the Baptism of the Spirit, which is an interior thing, and can only be seen in its effects, can rightly join together and constitute the Church of Christ, which is in like way invisible. For neither does the Baptism of the Spirit always accompany the Baptism of water. But who will deny that he is indeed a Christian, who shall have been washed by the Holy Spirit, although (as we have read of and must believe to happen daily) he shall not have been dipped in the water-baptism which the Apostles used? Some even of those, who thought that Paul in this place spoke of water-baptism, have seen that it is not through water-baptism that Christians are united into one body: so great is the power of truth: and treating of these words of Paul, have said that they are not to be taken as if we passed into Christ's body by Baptism, for we first pass over, and then are signed by Baptism to testify this."
"He (Castalio) saw, I suppose, two things; 1st, that no other Spirit is here meant than that which, for the most part, does not precede, but follows water-baptism, and through which Baptism is not received, but is declared either to have |
"been, or also that it may be rightly received, i.e. of spiritual gifts, as every one, reading the whole Chapter, accurately may see." | |
1 Pet. iii. 21. | |
Zuingli-Calvinists. | Socinians. |
Vorst Anti-Bellarm. ad t. iii. contr. 1. thes. 6. § 4. "The testimonies quoted, as to Baptism, are in truth altogether foreign (sc. Joh. iii. Eph. v. Tit. iii. and 1 Pet. iii.) where the power of cleansing sins is not attributed to the outward water of Baptism, but to the word of life, apprehended through faith, and to the internal renovation of the Holy Spirit."
Zuingli in Hist. domin. ascens. t. iii. P. 2. p. 404. "Ye have hitherto been baptized with the Baptism of John, but now ye shall be baptized with another Baptism, i.e. with the Holy Spirit." (The Baptism of John and that of the Christian Church he held to be the same). Ad Fridol. Lindov. t. i. f. 204. "Baptism does not save us, as far as it washes the surface and filth of the body, but as far as our conscience answers itself well. De vera et falsa relig. t. ii. f. 178. "And that we may understand not the water-baptism, but an internal change of the old man by repentance, he adds, this does not take place thereby that the filth of the body is washed away, (for this is all which water can do,) but when the conscience, examining itself, answers itself satisfactorily as toitsstate with God." |
Crell. Opp. Exeg. t. iii. p. 329. "The Apostle teaches, 1st, what Baptism is not; 2dly, what it is. 1. Not the putting aside the filth of the flesh. The matter is plain: wherefore they are the more to be blamed, who, when they hear Baptism spoken of up and down in Holy Scripture, and that as a thing necessary to salvation, although there be no indication of an outward water-baptism which washeth away the filth of the flesh, forthwith understood this? Why not rather the Holy Spirit, or spiritual Baptism which Peter explains to us, and asserts that by the grace of God it bringeth salvation? Or why not rather the Baptism of the Spirit, since this is the peculiar Baptism of Christ, and is opposed to the water-baptism wherewith John was wont to initiate his disciples?"
Slichtingius ad loc. Opp. t. ii. p. 329. "Baptism so far saves us, not as it contains any laying aside of the filth of the flesh, but as it contains that, whereof the outward washing of the flesh is a sign and sacrament, namely, the interrogatory of a good conscience towards God." Socinus de Bapt. aquæ, c. 12. "What else can 'Baptism saves |
Whitaker de Sacr. ap. Gat. p. 109. "Faith is required in adults before Baptism, whence it is manifest that it is faith which saves us, not Baptism." | "us, not, &c.' mean but 'a Baptism saves us, but by Baptism, I mean, not the putting off of the filth of the flesh, but the answer of a good conscience,' 'or a Baptism which is,' &c.? So certainly the author of the truly golden notes on the New
'* Testament in the Bible of Vatablus; as if he said, the Baptism whereby we are saved, is not a washing whereby the filth of the flesh is washed away, but the declaration of a right and faithful mind towards God, whereby the filth of the soul is washed away, as by water that of the body. This explanation of the passage being retained, it is from this plea manifestly false that Baptism saves us; so far from this assumption being confirmed by the testimony of Peter. Nor is it true that the Baptism of water saves us so far as that interrogation of a good conscience there takes place." |
Eph. v. 26. | |
Piscator, Thes. Theol. t. i. loc. 25. § 17. ap. Gat. p. 119. "By the washing of water. Baptism is not necessarily understood, since there may be understood blood compared to the washing of water." Zuingli de Peccato Orig. 0pp. t. ii. f. 121. v. "Baptism is sometimes taken for the blood or passion of Christ; in 1 Pet. iii., he meaneth not the washing of water, but Christ Himself, or His blood and death; so that the sign is taken for the thing signified. How absurd, then, any one, who contends, on account of certain expressions, that we are washed from sin by the water of Baptism! So, also, Eph v. and Rom. vi. are not to be taken to the letter." Ad Fridol. Lindov. t. i. f. 204. "God ordered, that he who | Crellius de Satisfact. Christi, Opp. t. iv. p. 167. "If the Apostle had meant by 'purifying' expiation or freeing from guilt, and the punishment of sin, he would not have made mention of the 'washing of water in the word,' but of 'blood,' wherewith Christ expiated us, as is customary in Holy Scripture; especially when so good an occasion was furnished by the mention of the death of Christ, the end of which he is explaining. But since he is speaking of the washing away and purifying of the wickednesses themselves, and of that Baptism, which, as Peter says (1 Pet. iii. 22), is 'not the putting away the filth of the flesh, but the stipulation of a good conscience towards |
"had already believed, should be dipped in water, not as if He meant, that in this way the soul should be cleansed, for how should an incorporeal substance be cleansed by a corporeal element?"
Willett Contr. ii. Q. 2. "The outward element doth send and refer us back to the word and promise of God, whereof it is a seale." Calvin Institt. iv. 15.2. "Paul did not mean that our washing and saving (Tit. iii.) took place in the water, or that the water had the power of purifying, regenerating, renewing—for he unites the word of life and Baptism of water; as if he said, that by the Gospel, the tidings of ablution and sanctification were brought to us, and by Baptism were sealed: and Peter immediately adds, that that Baptism is 'not the putting away of the filth,' &c." Vorstius, Anti-Bellarm. ad t. iii. Contr. 1. Thes. 6. § 5. p. 356. "It were absurd to imagine, in bare elements, a divine virtue; of penetrating, namely, into the very soul of man, and of washing away sins." Zuingli de vera et falsa relig. t. ii. f. 198. v. "Sacraments are signs and ceremonies (with deference to all, moderns and antients), whereby a man proves himself to the Church to be a candidate or soldier of Christ; and they assure the whole Church of thy faith rather than |
"God,' therefore he mentioned the bath of 'water,' and that 'in the word,' i.e., which bath takes place through the word of the Gospel, which is wonderfully confirmed by the death of Christ." Id. Opp. Exeg. t. i. p. 276. "Washing of water, which is His word or teaching, for he explains that 'washing of water' by apposition." F. Socinus, in 1 Ep. D. Johann. c. 5. Opp. t. i. p. 237. "The meaning, to any unprejudiced person, is, that the word, i.e., the doctrine of Christ, has the power of cleansing us from all our sins and stains, no less than water has the power of cleansing our bodies from all their defilements. They, then, are very far from the Apostle's mind, and the meaning of the words, who, deceived by the mention of 'water,' think that the Baptism of water is mentioned here; whereas, no one is so dull, as not to see and acknowledge, that a Baptism of water cannot effect such a cleansing."
Socinus de Bapt. Aq. c. 3. "Which cleansing (so to speak) takes place through the word, i.e., through the preaching of the Gospel, which produces faith (quoting Vatablus.") "What can be better understood (under Baptism) than true repentance, which is the washing of the soul and spirit? Or the pubhc profession of the Gospel, and of the name of |
"thee. By them we are in such way initiated, as in Baptism to enroll ourselves." | "Jesus Christ, since the water-Baptism itself, used by the Apostles, had principally for its object, that persons should enroll themselves under Christ." |
Col. ii. 11. | |
Zuingli de Bapt. t. ii. f. 96. v. "What was circumcision to the antients, than an outward symbol, whereby |